La Casa de Mailly
La Casa de Mailly
La Casa de Mailly
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online at
www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you will
have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using
this eBook.
Language: English
Credits: Al Haines
By
Illustrated by A. I. Keller
CONTENTS
Book I
CLAUDE
CHAPTER
I. M. De Gêvres Entertains
II. The Toilet
III. The Gallery Of Mirrors
IV. Marly
V. The Chapel
VI. Claude's Farewell
Book II
DEBORAH
I. A Ship Comes In
II. Dr. Carroll's Idea
III. The Plantation
IV. Annapolis
V. Sambo
VI. Claude's Memories
VII. The Pearls
VIII. The Governor's Ball
IX. The Rector, The Count, And Sir Charles
X. Puritan And Courtier
XI. Distant Versailles
Book III
THE POST
I. From Metz
II. The Disgrace
III. November Thirteenth
IV. Claude's Own
V. Two Presentations
VI. Snuff-Boxes
VII. Concerning Monsieur Maurepas
VIII. Deep Waters
IX. The Duke Swims
X. "Vol-au-Vent Royale"
XI. "Thy Glory"
XII. One More de Mailly?
XIII. The Hôtel de Ville
XIV. Victorine Makes End
XV. Deborah
EPILOGUE. A Trail on the Water
ILLUSTRATIONS
"THE PAPER DROPPED TO THE FLOOR" ... Frontispiece
CLAUDE
CHAPTER I
M. de Gêvres Entertains
It was the evening of Tuesday, January 12th, in the year 1744. By six
o'clock the gray of afternoon had deepened to the blackness of night, and a
heavy rain began to fall, so that the Sèvres road, a mile beyond the Paris
barrier, was shortly thick with mud. The only light here visible came from
the window of a wretched tavern at the way-side; and by this mine host, had
he been watching, would have had some difficulty in perceiving the two
riders who came to an uncertain halt by his door.
"It is late, du Plessis, and we have still three miles to go. More than that,
'tis the worst cabaret in France."
The two rode for some minutes in silence, though no one of the finest
apperception could have felt any enmity existent between them. The night
lowered. The rain pelted coldly from the starless sky; and horses and riders
alike shrank from the raw, streaming atmosphere. When the silence was
again broken the lights of Paris were visible in the distance. This time it
seemed that du Plessis—the Duc de Richelieu—addressed his companion's
secret thoughts as though he had been reading them for some time past.
"Believe me, Claude, you are unwise. She is not quite—quite of your
fibre. The elder branch, you will often find, if you study these things, is less
quick in sensibility, though perhaps not lacking in finesse. The King, dear
child, the King—"
"Ah, monsieur, I think you understand her even less than I. I do not dare
address her as my position admits. My cousin cannot be more proud of our
family than am I; and yet—and yet—"
Once in the city, with rivers of rain above and below, and filth, crime,
poverty, and utter darkness about them, Claude de Mailly and his illustrious
companion made their way with what rapidity they could down the Rue de
Sèvres, past St. Vincent de Paul and the Lazariste, through the little Rue Mi-
Carême, the Place du Dragon, Rue Dauphine, and so out upon the quays.
After riding for three squares along the river-bank, with the waters of the
Seine foaming below them, the two finally passed the Pont St. Louis, and,
turning down a short side street, drew up before a doorway wherein lanterns
were lighted, and before which two link-boys and twice as many lackeys
stood waiting. Above, upon a long iron arm, tossed by the ever-rising wind,
swung a great painted sign, a harlequin in cap and bells, throwing his parti-
colored cap above his head. Below, in uncertain letters, were the words
"Café Procope."
As the two gentlemen dismounted, Richelieu called to one of the
servants, who hastened forward to take his bridle. A second assisted Claude,
while another, evidently under orders, turned and called back to some one
inside. Instantly both doors were flung wide open, while the landlord of this
most popular resort himself braved the weather and came out, candelabrum
in hand, to greet his guests.
"Ah, Cressin," deigned the Duke, nodding, as he entered the house, "are
the rest not yet arrived?"
"Um. 'Twas the hunt kept us. Light the way up."
Claude lagged behind to throw off his wet riding-cloak, brush what water
he could from his hat, and shake out his hair which had flattened beneath the
protecting collar. Richelieu was kept waiting for some seconds, and the
landlord had become ill at ease before the young précieuse signified his
willingness to proceed to the room above, where his host waited.
"Parbleu, Baron, you will be calling Richelieu out to-morrow! Your carp
will be ruined."
"In such case, Marquis, I must order your cousin spitted. He will have
been swimming the streets long enough, by the time he arrives, to have
acquired an excellent flavor, of a kind."
"Oh, 'tis more likely that the Count de Mailly's flavor would be rather
cloying. All love is sweet; but his is so really violent, gentlemen, that—"
"For a month after you would sicken with the mere thought of a rissole,"
cried the Duke from the threshold.
"And the epitaph which you would place over my picked bones," said
Claude, from behind Richelieu's shoulder, "would be:
"Bravo! Claude. We will forgive the lost feet. You have purchased
pardon," cried d'Holbach, smiling. He and de Mailly-Nesle, Claude's cousin
and the brother of Mme. de Châteauroux, went forward to greet the late-
comers. D'Holbach, epicurean philosopher, and host of the small company,
gave them a genial welcome. The Marquis grasped his cousin's hands, and
bowed familiarly to the Duke, while the other two men in the room,
d'Epernon and de Gêvres, boon companions, both intimates of the King, the
one an amateur physician, the other an adept at embroidery, remained
languidly seated, deigning a nod and smile to the last arrivals.
After a few further words of greeting and explanation, the party of six
arranged themselves about the oval table, on which were already placed the
hors-d'œuvres and sweet wines, while Cressin hurried away towards his
kitchens to command the attendance of two waiters and the first course of
the supper. Only part of the evening's entertainment was being given by the
Baron d'Holbach. M. de Gêvres had arranged an amusement for the night
which promised some novelty even to these utterly blasé gentlemen. He
proposed conducting his friends across the river to his hôtel, which, by royal
permission, had, very conveniently for his pocket, been turned into a public
gambling-house. Its redoubtable owner, when not at Versailles, lived in
exquisite style in his château at St. Ouen; and, since there was always a place
for him in the Tuileries, the Hôtel Richelieu, or, more covertly, the Hôtel de
Sauvré, in Paris, he had not yet felt any poignant discomfort through the loss
of his ancestral house. On the contrary, the unique pleasure of appearing in
its familiar rooms furnished with the rows of tables, frequented by bourgeois
and dwellers in St. Antoine, with the presence of an occasional petty noble,
was really very refreshing to the jaded spirit of this vaporish child of highest
France.
It was a particularly select little company who gathered about the table in
the private salon of the Café Procope on this stormy night. All of them were
of the bluest of blood; all of them spent the greater part of their time about
the person of the King; to all, the doors of any and every house or salon in
Paris were open at any hour; and not one of them but had had hearts flung at
him from the night of his first appearance in the Gallery of Mirrors to the
present moment, when interest in the hors-d'œuvres was beginning to wane,
and the first course of the supper should have been making its appearance.
D'Epernon had commenced to bore them all with some remarks upon the
recent blood-letting of his Majesty after a rout at Choisy, when Claude
jumped unceremoniously from the table, crossed the room to a mirror, and
took out his patchbox.
Before any one had time to voice his curiosity, Claude turned quickly
from the mirror. "The Bastille, Richelieu! The Bastille! Surely—"
"Why not, my child? I have been there thrice for less; and the last time,
had it not been for my ever-honored Duchess of Modena—umph! I had been
carried out shorter by a head than when I went in!"
Forthwith the young fellow drew from beneath his waistcoat something
which even de Gêvres leaned forward to see. It was a glove, a white
gauntlet, weighted on the back with a crest heavily embroidered in gold, and
set here and there with tiny sapphires of the color lately known as œil du
Roi; while upon the smooth leather palm was painted a very good miniature
of his gracious Majesty, Louis XV.
The little group of courtiers glanced from the trophy to the face of its
owner, who was gazing upon them with a smile not wholly unconscious, but
wisely tempered with cynicism. Presently the Baron reached forward and
took the costly article from Claude. Holding it with a delicate touch in the
light of a waxen candle, he smiled as he observed:
"Madame should not have removed this ere she gave it to you, my dear
Count."
Four pairs of brows went gently up, but Claude's eyes met those of his
cousin with such an expression of affection and melancholy that for an
instant he seemed to be transformed to some other order of man.
The slight pause was broken by the entrance of the first course proper of
the supper. The Count took back his gage and thrust it again to the
conventional resting-place over his heart; and while the innumerable dishes
were being placed upon the table or passed about, he returned the patch-box
to his pocket and seated himself between his cousin and Richelieu.
"Now that Claude has given you his meagre idea of the crisis through
which he passed to-day," remarked Claude's companion, helping himself to a
fillet of partridge, "permit me to advance to him my own opinion of the
affair, as well as to lay the tale before you all. His coming fate shall be
surmised by you. Now hark: His Majesty and a little suite rode to
Rambouillet yesterday, in the afternoon. The hunters were to follow this
morning; but they say that de Rosset never permits the King to rise earlier
than eight o'clock, so that he is fain to be near the forest on the day of the
chase. I was with him; but, for some royal reason, Madame la Duchesse,
despite some very eloquent pleading on my part, had refused to go. Possibly
Mme. de Toulouse is of family too scrupulous to receive her."* The Dukes
and d'Holbach smiled. "Claude, however, was of the royal train, for, mark
you, gentlemen, Louis adores the Count at twenty miles distance from
madame his cousin. Well, then, at ten this morning the meet was called at the
edge of the forest. His Majesty was in a frenzy of eagerness, and looked—
did he not look like a little god, my dear Count? Hein? But for the point. The
first deer had not yet been started by the keepers when a diversion occurred.
His Majesty was talking with the head man. There was a murmur behind us.
I turned about, and saw—"
"'Twas not his beauty, Baron. I am most tender of his modesty. But, next
time I plead with Mlle. Mercier for life and hope, I shall imitate the look he
wore at that moment."
"Take care, my dear Richelieu. She will marry you if you do."
"On my faith, that would not be bad. 'Tis an excellent way to rid one's
self of a woman. Baron, the carp is marvellous. Madame, of course, offered
the glove that you have seen as gage of triumph. It is worth eighty livres.
Lesage himself did the miniatures. When we finally set off, Louis' eyes were
bright with certainty of success; for who would dare to engage in rivalry
with the King?"
"Come, come, du Plessis, finish the tale. You are straining the budding
nonchalance of de Mailly here to an alarming degree."
"Monsieur, you might dare Satan for a lady if you would; but no one
should dare the King."
"Dare the King he did. In five minutes all of us were far enough behind
to watch, while they two—de Mailly and de Bourbon, gentlemen—were
neck and neck among the hounds. Presently the Count fired, and—missed. I
hoped that it was purpose, for he did not reload. Then the stag ran through a
little clearing, so that for fifty yards it was a perfect mark. Louis fired, of
course, but the game kept on. I saw the King throw back his head with his
gesture of anger. Then de Mailly—oh! how couldst thou, Claude?—drew a
pistol from his holster and fired. That bullet was made for death, I never saw
a prettier shot. It went straight into the deer's neck. Another five yards. The
animal wavered. The King was reloading his weapon. Claude was like
lightning with his hands. Before his Majesty's gun was ready the pistol
sounded again, and the beast fell."
"Good Heaven, Claude! You have done badly!" cried Henri, leaning over
the table.
"Fear for the Count, du Plessis. The King needs small sympathy."
"Possibly thou'rt right, Baron. Who so happy as the King? What does he
lack? He is a King; he has France for his purse; he is as handsome as the
Queen is ugly; and the most stately woman in Europe inhabits the little
apartments. What more could he wish for?"
Claude bit his lip and his eyes sparkled with anger.
"Soho! I did well not to have a second course, then. Now, gentlemen, the
toasts. M. de Mailly-Nesle, I propose your marquise."
Henri flushed. The lady whom he deeply and sincerely loved was a far
tenderer subject with him than his reckless and heartless companions
dreamed of or could have understood. But he drank the toast without
comment, and was relieved to find that the conversation was straying from
her as well as from his cousin's affair. Claude, perhaps, was not so well
pleased. He was too young a lover, and too much in love, to rejoice that
other women were being brought up for discussion; and he was too heedless
of the delicacy of his position to care to contemplate its different aspects
while the others talked. For, as to the matter of royal disfavor, it disturbed
him not in the least; rather he looked upon the prospect of it as something
which should redound to his credit in the eyes of her who at present
constituted the single motive of his life. For the next twenty minutes, then,
he sat over his wine, drinking all the toasts, and joining in the conversation
when Mme. de Lauraguais, another sister of Henri's, was mentioned. But the
interest had gone out of his eyes. Richelieu marked him silently; d'Holbach
smiled with kindly humor on perceiving his preoccupation; and his cousin
the Marquis read his mood with regret. Henri de Mailly-Nesle had long since
given up any hope of control over his sister, the favorite; and, through a life-
long companionship, Claude had been to him closer than a brother. Thus,
whatever interest he felt in the latest developments of the Count's rash
rivalry with the King, was all on behalf of the weaker side, that of his friend.
The six gentlemen had not been more than twenty minutes over their
wine when de Gêvres finally rose from his chair, and, as host for the
remainder of the night, made suggestion of departure.
"How shall we cross to my hôtel? It rains too heavily for riding. Shall we
go by chair?"
"My dear Baron," expostulated d'Epernon, "my surtout would not stand
it, I swear to you!"
"And I also," added Claude. "I wish to ruin my boots completely. I have
given Rochard too many things of late."
"A bad idea, Count. Pay your servants, and they leave you at once; it is
such a bourgeois thing to do."
Richelieu and the Baron were already at the door. D'Epernon and Henri
followed. There was nothing for it but for the third Duke to accept the
companionship of the Count, and prepare to ruin his surtout also. As the
small party passed out of the door of the café, Richelieu called over his
shoulder:
"Your horse is here, Claude. I had mine sent to my hôtel. Surely you will
not attempt to ride back to Versailles to-night. Will you lodge with me?"
"Thank you; but Henri will house me, I think—will you not, cousin?"
"Certainly, Claude. Madame will scarcely have any one in my wing to-
night, I think; though I confess that I have not been there for a week."
"A bad idea," muttered Richelieu to the Baron. "I kept my ladies in better
training—when I had them."
It was fifteen minutes' rapid walk from the Procope to the Hôtel de
Gêvres. From the Quai des Tournelles the six proceeded to the Pont St.
Michel, over the river, across the island, and to the new city by the Pont au
Change, at the east end of which, near the Place du Chat, stood the most
recent and most noted gambling-house in Paris. Three or four lanterns,
shining dimly through the dripping night, lighted the doorways, which were
open to the weather. Richelieu, d'Holbach, d'Epernon, and Henri entered
together, with Claude and de Gêvres close behind. It was Richelieu who
accosted the manager of the house in the entresol; for the owner of the place
was not desirous of recognition. M. Basquinet, discerning that the new-
comers were of rank, in spite of the fact that they came on foot, at once
offered a private room.
"By all means, rum," nodded the Baron d'Holbach. "What other beverage
would harmonize with this scene? We are surrounded by those a step lower
than the bourgeoisie. For the time we also are lower than the bourgeoisie."
The rum was brought, however, together with dice, and those long-
stemmed clay pipes of which one broke three or four of an evening, and but
rarely drew more than one mouthful of smoke from a light. Still imitating the
manners of those about them, each two gentlemen played with a single cup,
thus doing away with any possibility of loaded dice. Unlike the common
people, however, they used no money on the table; perhaps for the simplest
of reasons—that they had no money to use. "Poor as a nobleman, rich as a
bourgeois," was a common enough expression at that day, and as true as
such sayings generally are. How debts of honor were paid at Versailles none
but those concerned ever knew. But paid they always were, and that within
the time agreed upon; and there was no newly invented extravagance, no
fresh and useless method of expenditure for baubles or jewelled garments,
that every courtier did not feel it a duty as well as pleasure to indulge at
once. For the last twenty-five years there had been, as for the next five there
would be, a continually increasing costliness in the mode of Court life, and a
consequent diminution in Court incomes, until the end—the end of all things
for France's highest and best—should come with merciful, swift fury.
Each member of the party, this evening, played with him in whose
company he had walked from the café: de Gêvres and the Count; Richelieu
and d'Holbach; d'Epernon and Mailly-Nesle. The three games were in
marked contrast to those carried on about them. Not a word relative to losses
or winnings was spoken. The stakes were agreed upon almost in whispers;
the cubes were rattled and thrown—once; then again from the other side.
The differences were noted mentally. Winner and loser sipped their rum,
drew at a pipe, and made a new stake. Sometimes ten minutes would be
spent in watching the noisy eagerness of men at a neighboring table, for that
was the chief object in their coming to-night.
The great hall was filled with those of an essentially low order. Coarse
faces, coarse manners, coarse garments, and coarse oaths abounded there,
though now and again might be found a velvet coat, a lace ruffle, and a
manner badly aped from the supposed elegancies of the Court. A strange and
motley throng gathered from all Paris wherever this common vice held men
in its grip. Here those from the criminal quarters, from the Faubourg St.
Antoine, from the streets of petty shopkeepers and tradesmen, from the little
bourgeoisie, came to mingle together, indiscriminately, equalized, rendered
careless of the origin of companions by their common love of the dice. Here
were men of all ages, from the fierce stripling who regarded a franc as a
fortune, to the senile creature, glued to his chair, the cubes rattling
continually in his trembling cup, and the varying luck of the evening his life
and death. All the pettiness and some of the nobility to be found in mankind
were portrayed here, could those who had come to study have read aright.
D'Holbach, the philosopher, doubtless did so, for men had been his mental
food for many years. Nevertheless he said nothing to Richelieu of what he
discovered; but took snuff when he lost, and puffed at his pipe when he won,
and cogitated alone among those whom he knew so well.
Time drew on apace and the evening was passing. There were few
arrivals now; the rooms were filled, and it was too early for departure. M. de
Gêvres wished, possibly, that the hours would hurry a little, for he was
losing heavily to Claude. Nevertheless he gave no sign of discomfort, and
even interrupted the Count's purposeful pauses to continue the game. Just as
de Mailly shook for a stake of five hundred livres, two people, gentlemen by
dress, entered the room. Claude threw high. The Duke, with an inward
exclamation of anger, gently received the cup. He shook with perfect
nonchalance, and finally dropped the ivory squares delicately before him.
The Duke started to his feet. His example was speedily followed by the
rest of the party, who, after bowing with great respect, stood looking in
amazement at the new-comer. His companion, who was bareheaded,
remained a little behind, grinning good-naturedly at the gamesters. Richelieu
spoke first:
"I, Sire, I think, since your coming has turned my luck," remarked
Claude, with the double meaning in his words perfectly apparent to every
one there.
"Do not stand," continued the King. "I am merely Chevalier to-night."
Louis seated himself beside Richelieu, with whom he evinced a desire to
speak privately. D'Holbach, perceiving this, began at once, with his usual
tact, to entertain the rest of the company by an anecdote concerning
d'Alembert and Voltaire. Immediately the King turned to his favorite
courtier.
"We rode to Versailles first, Sire; changed our clothes there, and came
hither immediately."
"And now the truth, Richelieu. I will brook nothing less. He did not see
madame after he left the hunt?"
The Duke opened his eyes. "We left Mme. de Châteauroux with you. We
have not seen her since."
The King drew a deep breath. "She left the hunting-party half an hour
after you, knowing that it was not in my power to follow her. I feared it was
to join—him. I have left everything to make sure of his whereabouts. The
fellow drives me mad."
While Louis spoke a gleam came into the Duke's eyes. He smiled
slightly, and said; with a nod towards de Berryer, and that daring which was
permitted to him alone, "Your Majesty brought a lettre-de-cachet in some
one else's pocket?"
"And he who throws twice best shall win?" repeated the Duke.
"Yes."
Claude's heart sank, while his cousin dared not allow his sympathy to
appear. It was frequently ruinous work, this gaming with a King; and the
revenues of the younger branch of the house of de Mailly were not great.
"The stakes," returned Louis, with a long glance at his opponent, "shall
be, on my side—" he threw back his cloak, unbuttoned a plain surtout, and
from his ruffles unfastened a diamond star of great value—"this." He placed
it upon the table.
Louis coughed, and waved one hand, with a gesture of deprecation at the
question. "Yours should not be so large. We play to the goddess of chance.
You—um—ha—you won, to-day, a certain gauntlet of white leather; a
simple thing, but it will do. I will play this for that. You see the odds are
favorable to you."
Claude flushed scarlet, and not a man at the table moved. "The gauntlet
was a gage, Sire."
The Count glanced round the circle, noting each face in turn. Baron
d'Holbach was engaged with snuff. The other faces, excepting only de
Berryer's, were blank. But Richelieu's eyes met those of Claude, and the
head of the King's favorite gentleman shook, ever so slightly, at the rebellion
in the Count's face. Then, very slowly, de Mailly unfastened his coat and
drew from its place the glove of Mme. de Châteauroux. He laid it on the
table beside the star.
"We play!" cried his Majesty, smiling as he seized the leathern cup. He
shook well, and dropped the dice vigorously before him.
Claude received the implements from the King's hands, tossed and threw.
The King bit his lip, and hastily played again. The cubes stared up at him
impudently. On one was a three, on the other a one. None spoke, for Louis
frowned.
Claude was very sober but very composed as he tried his second chance.
It seemed that he could not but win. The courtiers hung quietly on the play.
When the cup was lifted from the dice there was a series of exclamations.
Claude himself laughed a little, and the King drew a long sigh of relief. Two
and one had de Mailly thrown.
It was Henri who voiced the general interest. "You are even," he said,
quietly.
The King suddenly rose to his feet. "Not for long!" he exclaimed. For
some seconds he rattled the dice in the box, not attempting to conceal his
palpable nervousness. When the black spots which lay uppermost were
finally counted, a smile broke over the royal lips. Ten points he had made
this time.
De Mailly, who had also risen, looked at them for a second with
compressed lips, but did not hesitate in his throw. Like de Gêvres, he
dropped the squares before him with pointed delicacy. Then he stepped
quietly back, with a throb at his heart, but no change in his face. Not a
courtier spoke.
"We will play again!" cried the King, loudly, for they were, indeed, no
longer even. M. de Mailly had thrown six and six.
"DE MAILLY HAD THROWN SIX AND SIX
"Pardon, your Majesty," said Claude, in reply to the King's voiced desire.
"I could not play again against France and hope to win, though by but a
single point. Therefore I beg that you will spare my humiliation, and accept
the gauntlet as proof of your gracious forgiveness of my daring."
The small ceremony over, and the light of royal favor glittering in the
candle-rays over the Count de Mailly's heart, his Majesty, with tender touch,
took up the coveted gauntlet, put it inside his embroidered waistcoat, and,
placing his hand on de Berryer's shoulder, bowed a good-night to the party
and the Hôtel de Gêvres.
Immediately after the King left, the other participant in the struggle for a
woman's gage also rose. Claude was tired. He had no mind to be assailed
with the volley of epigrams, bons-mots, and various comments that he knew
would soon begin to be discharged from the brains of his companions.
Certainly, he should have considered the episode a happy one. Already, since
that talk of esteem and good-will from the King, he could feel the change in
attitude assumed towards him by de Gêvres and d'Epernon. But the sight of
these figures wearied him now; and he suddenly longed for a solitude in
which to face his rapidly growing regret that his cousin's glove had passed
out of his possession.
"What, monsieur!" cried de Gêvres, when he rose, "you will not give me
the chance to retrieve myself to-night?"
"Small hope for you with such luck as the Count's," returned d'Holbach.
"When a man wins two points off a king, by how much may he defeat a
duke? Reply, Richelieu. It is geometry."
De Mailly bowed. Then, turning to the Marquis, he held out his hand.
"Will you come, Henri, or must I beg shelter of Madame la Marquise
alone?"
"I come, Claude. Good-night, and thanks for a most charming evening,
and a comedy worthy of Grandval, messieurs."
"I am afraid so. I did not think to order my coach, and not a chair will be
obtainable on such a night."
They started at a good pace up the long, wide thoroughfare that bordered
the river, and walked for some minutes in a silence that was replete with
sympathy. It was some distance from the gambling-house to the Hôtel de
Mailly, Henri's abode, which was situated on the west bank of the Seine, on
the Quai des Théatins, just opposite the Tuileries, on the Pont Royal. The
wind was coming sharply from the east, bringing with it great, pelting rain-
drops that stung the face like bullets. Henri was glad to shield his head from
the cutting attack by holding his heavy cloak up before it. Ordinarily the
walk at this hour would have been one of no small danger; but to-night even
the dwellers in the criminal quarter were undesirous of plying their midnight
trade by the river-bank. The cousins had passed the dark cluster of buildings
about the old Louvre before either spoke. At length, however, the Marquis
broke silence.
There was a little pause. Then Claude said, in a tone whose weary
monotony indicated a subject so often thought of as to be trite even in
expression:
"Do you—ever regret—that Anne went the way—of the other two? Will
she—do you think, finish as did poor little Pauline? Or—will some other
send her from her place—as—she did—my brother's wife, Louise?"
As Claude had hesitated over the questions, so was Henri long in making
reply. "I do not allow myself, Claude, to wonder over might-have-beens.
There is a fate upon our family, I think. But of the three of our women who
have gone her way, Marie is the fittest of them all for her place. Little
Pauline—Félicité, we named her—her death—my God, I do not like to think
of it! And poor, weak Louise—your brother loved her dearly, Claude. And
he is dead, and she—is making her long penance in that great tomb of the
Ursulines. Heigh-ho! Thank the good God, my cousin, that you have neither
sister nor wife in this Court of France. There is not one of them can
withstand the great temptation. Our times were not made for the women we
love."
And for the rest of their walk both men thought upon these same last
words, which, through Claude's head, at least, had begun to ring like a dark
refrain of prophecy, of warning: "Our times were not made for the women
we love."
It was half an hour past midnight when the Marquis pounded the knocker
on the door of his hôtel by the Seine. It was opened with unusual readiness
by the liveried porter, who betrayed some surprise at sight of those who
waited to enter.
"As you see, we are here," returned Henri, adding, "My apartment is
ready?"
Five minutes later Claude was alone in his room. Henri had left him for
the night, and he refused the services of a lackey in lieu of his own valet,
who was at Versailles. The servant had lighted his candles, and a wood-fire
burned in the grate. His wet coat had been carried away to dry. His hat,
surtout, and gloves lay upon a neighboring chair. Amid the lace of his jabot
glittered the jewelled star which, two hours ago, had flashed upon the breast
of the King of France. Claude seated himself, absently, in a chair beside the
cheerily crackling fire, facing a great picture that hung upon the brocaded
wall. It was Boucher's portrait of Marie Anne de Mailly-Nesle, Marquise de
la Tournelle, Duchesse de Châteauroux. She looked down upon him now in
that calmly superb manner which she had used only this morning; the
manner that the Court had raved over, that women vainly strove to imitate,
that had conquered the indifference of a king. And as Claude de Mailly
gazed, his own air, shamed perhaps by that of the woman, fell from him, as a
sheet might fall from a statue. In one instant he was a different thing. He had
become an individual; a man with a strong mentality of his own. The
courtier's mask of imperturbable cynicism, the conventional domino of
forced interest, the detestable undergarments of necessary toadyism, all were
gone. Not the patch on his face, not the height of his heels, not the whiteness
of his hands nor the breadth of his cuffs could make him now. Perhaps she
whose painted likeness was before him would no more have cared to know
him as he really was than she would have liked the words that he uttered,
dreamily, before her picture. But it was the true Claude, Claude the man,
nevertheless, who repeated aloud the thought in his heart:
The Toilet
Dawn, the late dawn of a gray, wintry morning, hung over Versailles.
Within the palace walls those vast corridors, which had lately rung to sounds
of life and laughter, stretched endlessly out in the ghostly chill of the vague
light. Chill and stillness had crept also under many doors; and they breathed
over that stately room in which Marie Anne de Châteauroux was accustomed
to take the few hours of relief from feverish life granted her by kindly sleep.
Presently, as the shadows melted more and more, the woman's silken-
lashed eyes fell open, and the first of her waking thoughts was expressed in a
long, melancholy sigh.
As madame awoke, and the clock upon her mantel-piece struck eight, a
door into the room swung open, and a trimly dressed maid came in. She
pushed back the curtains from the window, looped them up, and crossed to
the bedside.
"At once."
For the following quarter of an hour, while the first part of the toilet was
being performed, the second and elaborate half of that daily function was
prepared for in the second room of the favorite's suite—the famous boudoir.
A remarkable little room this, with its silken hangings of Persian blue and
green and white; and a remarkable little man it was who sat informally upon
a tabouret, in the midst of the graceful confusion of chairs, sofas, consoles,
and inlaid stands, while in front of him was the second dressing-table,
whereon reposed the paraphernalia of the coiffeur, and beside him was a
small bronze brazier, where charcoal, for the heating of irons, burned. The
profession of M. Marchon was instantly proclaimed by his elaborate
elegance of wig. He had been, at some time, perruquier to each French queen
of the last three decades, from Mme. de Prie to the ill-fated sisters of the
present Duchess. Just now he was ogling, in the last Court manner, the
second wardrobe-girl, who stood near him, beside a spindle-legged table,
polishing a mirror. And Célestine ogled the weazened Marchon while she
worked and wondered if madame would miss her last present from
d'Argenson, a Chinese mandarin with a rueful smile, who sat alone in the
cabinet of toys, and ceaselessly waved his head. The courtly companionship
between the two servants had lasted for some time when there came a faint
scratch on the bedroom door. It was Antoinette's friendly signal. The hair-
dresser leaped to his place and bent over the irons, while Célestine forced
her eyes from the bit of porcelain and put away her polishing cloth as Mme.
de Châteauroux entered the room.
The Duchess seated herself before the first table, where Mlle. Célestine
administered certain effective and skilfully applied touches to the pale face,
and when these had rendered her to her mind for the hour, madame
surrendered herself into Marchon's hands, where she would remain for a
good part of the morning.
The preliminary brushing of the yellow locks had not yet been completed
when the first valet-de-chambre threw open the door from the antechamber
and announced carefully:
"I arose," remarked the man, pensively, "to find the world in gray. I
arrayed myself to match the sky, and came to seek the sun. When I leave you
I shall don pale blue, for you will drive the clouds from my day."
Madame smiled again. "Thank you. But the gray is marvellously
becoming. Pray do not attempt a second toilet this morning. One is
singularly depressing."
Madame shrugged. "I do not waste time in pity of his Majesty. At the
request of Mme. d'Alincourt, I spent last evening in the apartments of the
Queen."
"Madame desires, the King is at her feet. Madame requests, and the gods
obey. Where must one begin?"
"Well! The rest is, indeed, curious. In spite of the Count's heroic
gallantry, he appeared, later in the day, to have repented somewhat of having
so eagerly dared the royal displeasure. A company of my friends were so
good as to visit, with me, my hôtel—you know its condition—for play, on
this very evening. By great good fortune, his Majesty, together with a
companion, did us the honor himself to join our party a little later. When the
King beheld his successful rival, the Count, seated with us, he instantly
proposed that the two of them play a round for high stakes. Louis, madame,
offered a diamond star—valued, perhaps, at fifty thousand francs, or more,
against—"
"My glove."
"Even so. You have, perhaps, heard the tale?" queried the Duke, hastily,
with a suspicion of anxiety in his voice.
"As I said, his Majesty and the Count de Mailly were to play together for
possession of the glove. The King threw first—four and three. De Mailly
came next with five and two."
"Again Louis with ten, and the Count turned precisely the same number.
His Majesty was visibly tingling with anxiety. He was about to throw for the
last time, with a prayer to the gods, when the Count—um—took pity on
him."
He looked about him for a moment or two with some curiosity, feeling
the awkwardness of his arrival, and considering what it would be wise to
say. Maurepas, the diplomat, recovered himself quickly, remarking, in a tone
which relieved them all: "This brother's devotion, my dear Marquis, is
gratifying to behold. One is really never so certain of finding you anywhere
at a given hour as here, in your sister's boudoir."
Maurepas looked sharply at the speaker, while the others smiled, and the
Duchess made every one still easier by laughing lightly.
"You have certainly put it to strong test this morning," was the reply,
rather coldly given.
The two ecclesiastics entered from the antechamber and advanced, side
by side, towards the Duchess. The taller of the two, St. Pierre, was a very
desirable person in salon society, and could turn as neat a compliment or as
fine an epigram in spontaneous verse as any member in the "rhyming
brotherhood." At sight of St. Pierre's companion, who was a stranger here,
the Marquis de Coigny gave a sudden, imperceptible start, and Henri de
Mailly suppressed an exclamation.
"I am charmed to see you both," deigned her Grace, giving her hand to
St. Pierre, while she narrowly scrutinized the slight figure and delicate,
ascetic face of the other young priest. The mild blue eyes met hers for a
single instant, then dropped uneasily, as their owner bowed without
speaking, and passed over to a small sofa, where, after a second's hesitation,
he sat down. St. Pierre, who seemed to cherish some anxiety as to his new
protégé's conduct, followed and remained beside him.
"Unused to the boudoir, one would imagine. It is unusual for one of his
order. I am astonished that St. Pierre should have brought him to make a
début before you," observed de Gêvres to la Châteauroux, who had not yet
removed her eyes from the new priest.
"St. Pierre knows my fondness for fresh faces," she replied, indifferently,
picking up a mirror to examine the coiffure, just as her lackey entered the
room with small glasses of negus, which were passed among the party.
"By no means, monsieur," was the answer, given in a light tenor voice.
"Indeed, for the last two weeks I have been working in Paris."
Devries' blue eyes turned slowly till they rested on the slender figure of
the Duke, clad in his gray satin suit, his white hands half hidden in lace,
toying with a silver snuff-box. The eyes gleamed oddly, half with
amusement, half with something else—weariness?—disgust?—surely it was
not ennui; and yet—in an avowed courtier, that was what the look would
have seemed to express.
"I will, then, soothe your nerves, if you wish it, sir. My work certainly
was very real. For the past two weeks my abode has been in the Faubourg St.
Antoine, but my days were spent in a very different part of the city. At dawn
each morning, in company with my colleague—not M. de St. Pierre, here—I
left behind those houses whose inmates rejoiced in clothes to cover
themselves, in money enough to purchase a bone for soup daily, and who
were even sometimes able to give away a piece of black bread to a beggar.
These luxurious places we left, I say, and together descended into hell. It
might amuse you still more, monsieur, to behold the alleys, the courts, the
kennels, the holes filled with living filth into the midst of which we went.
There women disfigure or cripple their children for life in order to give them
a means of livelihood, that they may become successful beggars; there wine
is not heard of, but alcohol is far commoner than bread; there you may buy
souls for a quart of brandy, but must deliver your own into their keeping if
you have not the wherewithal to appease, for a moment, their hatred of you,
who are clean, who are fed, who are warm. Cleanliness down there is a
crime. Ah! how they hate you, those dwellers in the Hell of Earth! How they
hate us, and how they curse God for the lives they must lead! The name of
God is never used except in oaths. And yet a girl, whose dying child I
washed, knew how to bless me one day there. It seems to me that they might
all learn how, if opportunity were but given them. There has been some
bitter weather lately, when the frozen Seine has been a highway for trades-
people. Those creatures among whom I went make no change from their
summer toilets, gentlemen. Half—all the children—are quite naked. The
women have one garment, and their hair. The men are clad in blouses, with
perhaps a pair of sabots, if they can fight well to obtain them, or are ready to
do murder without a qualm to keep them in their possession. It is among
these people that I worked, Monsieur—de Gêvres—with my colleague."
"How eminently disgusting!" replied the Duke, calmly, but his remark
was not pleasing to the rest of those present, who had been actually affected
by the description. Henri de Mailly had risen to his feet, and, after a
moment's pause, asked, rather harshly, "Who was your colleague,
monsieur?"
The Marquis de Coigny shot a quick, warning glance at Henri, and raised
his hand. "Monsieur l'Abbé, I am interested in your story. Would you do me
the honor to breakfast with me this morning, and tell me more of this life?"
The little audience stared, and la Châteauroux lifted her head rather
haughtily. Devries appeared, for some reason, to be very much amused.
"Victorine!" cried the Duchess, starting from her chair. "Victorine, you
madcap! So you have come back again!"
The rest of the gentlemen sat perfectly still, staring at the little Marquise,
and trying, out of some sense of propriety or gallantry, to keep from joining
in her infectious laughter. Only Henri de Mailly sat near a window, his head
on his fist, staring gloomily out upon the barren, stone-paved court.
"My dear madame!" cried Maurepas, when she had grown tearful with
laughter, "your disclosure has done me an excellent turn. It has saved me
five hundred livres. I was about thus to impoverish myself that you might be
permitted to get still closer to heaven by spending another week in the
criminal quarter distributing them."
"Her Majesty, I believe, receives him at times into her most religious
coterie," put in de Maurepas.
"Well, since you know who he is, I will continue, if you will permit me. I
beg that you will all, at least, believe that what I have said concerning my
occupation in Paris was wholly serious. Indeed, indeed, I am in the highest
sympathy with the work of the Jesuit fathers among the people; and there are
few men in our world whom I—respect—as I do M. de Bernis."
At these words, so solemnly spoken that they could not but impress the
listeners with their sincerity, the eyebrows of St. Pierre went up with
surprise, though he remained silent. As a matter of fact, the reputation of the
Abbé François Joachim de Pierre de Bernis was not noted for its sanctity.
"Will you, then, permit me, madame, to double my first offer?" said de
Maurepas, with his mind on the treasury. "I will to-day send you a note for
one thousand livres, which I beg that you will dispense in charity."
"M. de Maurepas, I wish that you could imagine what your word will
mean to those poor creatures."
"And shall you yourself return to Paris with the money, madame?"
inquired de Gêvres, smiling slightly.
She did not finish. Henri had sprung quickly to his feet, but de Coigny
was before him. "Pardon, Monsieur le Marquis," said he, with great courtesy,
"will you allow me, to-day, instead. To-morrow I shall once more relinquish
all to you."
"Mme. Victorine's eccentricity and her terror of being bored are excellent
things. The husband seems to fall in love with her more violently than ever
after each adventure."
Henri, angry at the first word, turned upon the Duke: "Monsieur, I would
inform you that Mme. de Coigny is—"
"Ob yes, yes, yes! Pardon me," de Gêvres rose, "I understand perfectly
that Mme. Victorine is the most virtuous, as she is the most charming, of
women. Madame la Duchesse, I have been with you seemingly but one
moment, and yet an hour has passed. His Majesty will be receiving the little
entries. I bid you au revoir."
The Duchess held out her hand. The courtier kissed it, bowed to the three
remaining men, and gracefully left the boudoir. When the door shut behind
him a breath of fresher air crept through the room. Mailly-Nesle, who had
been restlessly pacing round and round among the tables and chairs, paused.
De Maurepas drew a tabouret to madame's side, and began to talk with her in
the intimate and inimitably dignified manner that was his peculiar talent. St.
Pierre was thoughtfully regarding nothing, when Henri approached and sat
down beside him. Just as they began to speak together, Marchon stepped
back a little from the chair of la Châteauroux.
At the same instant the door to the antechamber again flew open. "The
Comte de Mailly!" announced the valet.
There was a second's pause and Claude ran into the room. "My dear
cousin!" he cried, buoyantly, hurrying towards her.
Mme. de Châteauroux rose slowly from her place, stared at the new-
comer for an instant with the insolence which only an insulted woman can
use, then deliberately turned her back and moved across the room. Maurepas
was already on his feet, and now, seizing his opportunity, he bowed to the
woman, indicated Henri and the abbé in his glance, passed Claude with the
barest recognition, and left the room congratulating himself on his adroit
escape before the storm. Mailly-Nesle and St. Pierre sat perfectly still for an
instant out of astonishment. Then, happily, the abbé came to himself, rose,
repeated the performance of the minister, and hastened from the
unpleasantness. The instant that he was gone Claude broke his crimsoning
silence in a somewhat tremulous voice:
"Marie," said Henri, gently, "it is but fair that you let him know his
fault."
Again Claude flushed, wretchedly, while his cousin spoke: "He has it not
to return, Marie."
She turned then upon her brother. "So you, also, know this insult, and
you counsel me to—let him know his fault! Ah, but your school of gallantry
was fine!"
Count and Marquis alike stood perfectly still, staring at each other.
"Most willingly, madame! Afterwards, by the good God, I'll run him
through."
La Châteauroux bent her head, and there was silence till she lifted it
again to face her young cousin. His eyes answered her penetrating glance
steadily, eagerly, honestly. And thereupon madame began to turn certain
matters over in her mind. She was no novice in Court intrigue; neither had
she any great faith to break with de Gêvres. It was a long moment; but when
it ended, the storm was over.
"I gave the gauntlet to the King, when, man to man, he was beaten at
dice."
Claude was uncomfortable, but he did not hesitate. "Yes," he said, with
lowered eyes. "I have brought it to you. I hate it."
From one of the great pockets in the side of his coat he drew a small, flat
box, which he handed to his cousin. She received it in silence, opened it, and
gazed upon the royal star. The frown had settled again over her face.
Suddenly, with a quick impulse, she pulled open one of the small windows
which looked down upon the Court of Marbles.
De Mailly was at her side in two steps. Eagerly he seized the jewels and
flung them, with angry satisfaction, far out upon the stones. La Châteauroux
looked at him quizzically for an instant, then suddenly held out both hands to
him. He did not fall upon his knee, as a courtier should have done; but threw
his arms triumphantly about her and bent his powdered head over hers.
CHAPTER III
His vague and varied meditations were broken in upon by the appearance
of eight lackeys, who had come to light the room for the evening. Claude
rose from his place and slipped away by a side-door. He had nothing to do,
nowhere in particular to go. The Œil-de-Bœuf would be deserted. The Court
was dressing. An hour before, dismal with the loneliness of the gray sky and
the falling snow, he had left his rooms in Versailles. He was dressed for the
evening, but had had nothing to eat since the dinner hour. An idea came to
him presently, and he bent his steps in the direction of the Staircase of the
Ambassadors. At the head of this, on the second floor, he halted, knocking at
a well-known door. It was opened after a moment by a well-known lackey.
Claude thrust a coin into the man's hand, and passed out of the antechamber,
through a half-lighted salon, and into the Persian boudoir where sat Mme. de
Châteauroux and Victorine de Coigny, comfortably taking tea à l'anglaise
together, and talking as only women, and women of an unholy but very
entertaining Court, can talk. The little Marquise was dressed for the
assembly. The duchess was coiffed, patched, and rouged, but en négligé. She
rose nervously at Claude's entrance.
"And did you hear what we were saying of you, monsieur?" asked
Victorine, smiling mischievously, as she gave him her hand.
Mme. de Coigny sprang up. "At least, monsieur, give me time to retire!
Your ardor is so remarkable!"
The Duchess laughed and gently withdrew her hand from Claude's grasp.
She was in excellent spirits. Never had she passed a more uniformly
successful week at Court than the one just ending. If she had purchased
much royal devotion, and much toadyism from hitherto lofty personages at
Claude's expense, why—that was Claude's affair. His career was not in her
keeping; but she could, and did, treat him very amiably in private for the
sake of the fierce jealousy which he was inspiring in her royal lover. It was
one of her cleverest manœuvres, one that had been tried before, this playing
some quite insignificant little person against Louis of France; for the King
was ardently in love for the first time, and had not yet grown old in the
knowledge of woman's ways.
"Come, Claude," entreated madame, "sit here, and take at least one dish
of this charming beverage. And the patties are by Mouthier himself. You
must taste them; and Mme. de Coigny shall entertain you, while my dress is
put on."
"Ciel, Monsieur le Comte! Do you protest that you are a lover, with such
an appetite? 'Tis more worthy the Court of Miracles!"
Claude put down his tea. "Ah, madame—the Court of Miracles! Do you
know that for the last days I have heard nothing on every side but
conversations about the last experiment of the Marquise de Coigny? May I
ask if it proved a really successful remedy for your deplorable ennui?"
Mme. de Coigny slightly smiled. "Indeed, monsieur, its efficacy was but
too great. At the time, I was in a dream of pity and of—happiness. Since my
return, my wretchedness is greater than ever before. Pouf! How can you bear
the air of this hideous place? It stifles! It poisons! It kills!"
"I hear," remarked Mme. de Châteauroux, from her toilet table, "that
Griffet will, in a few days, formally present Monsieur l'Abbé de Bernis to
her Majesty as eligible to the post of third chaplain to the Dauphin. Now, if it
were desirable, it is possible that the King might"—she touched an eyebrow
—"might be prevailed upon to ask him to supper with the royal family."
Victorine de Coigny moved uneasily, and Claude noted, from beneath his
lids, that a sudden color, which did not quite match the rouge, had started
into her face. "Do not jest, Marie," she murmured, half to herself.
"Oh, it is quite a possibility, my dear! If you ask it, I will—give him a
salon here on a Tuesday evening. Will that please you? You will be able,
then, to—"
"Madame," he said, softly, "why will you not make a pilgrimage with me
into the Court of Miracles?"
And, while Claude colored with displeasure, Victorine turned her head to
hide an irrepressible smile.
By this time the candles in the great gallery were all lighted, and the
mirrors reflected the brilliant colors of a richly costumed and continually
increasing throng that passed and repassed in endless procession before
them. No woman here was untitled; few of the men had less than five, and
many had twenty, generations of unsmirched aristocracy behind them. Many
were there who did not own the clothes upon their backs; and many others
whose debts would have impoverished a half-dozen of the wealthiest of the
bourgeoisie. Yet few ever went abroad with an empty pocket; and money
was generally their last source of worry. Here passed the Marquis de Sauvré,
a member of the King's intimate circle, a page of the Court, whose estates
were mortgaged, and whose Paris hôtel was almost dismantled of furniture,
in an unpaid-for dress of cherry-and-white satin, with pearls worth fifty
thousand livres on him, arm in arm with M. de la Poplinière, a farmer-
general, worth forty millions, but not attired with half the extravagance of
his companion. In a corner, taking snuff, and commenting on the degeneracy
of the grand manner since the last reign, were the old Duc de Charost, who
had attached himself to the Queen and the religious party; the Duc de Duras,
who lived on the influence of his wife's implacable etiquette; and M. de
Pont-de-Vesle, a successful diplomatist in a small way, and the most
disagreeably ubiquitous man at Court. Opposite them the Marquis
d'Entragues, a man whose scutcheon had come into existence two hundred
years before, beginning with a bar sinister to the discredit of a certain King
of France, and M. Marchais, at whose hôtel could be found the best vin d'Ai
in the kingdom, and who was a favorite with Louis on that account, were
discussing, with the Comtesse d'Estrades, the pompous intrigues of Mme. de
Grammont. Every one waited, more or less eagerly, first, for the appearance
of the favorite; secondly, for the arrival of the King.
"Possibly. But where is the favorite of the old Court with the presence,
the magnificence, the carriage of the present Duchess?" cried Duras,
popularly.
"It is not difficult to perceive that she means, at all events, to wreck her
cousin as she did the little d'Agenois."
"It is de Mailly's own fault, then. He is mad, to betray such devotion.
One would never believe that he had been brought up at Court."
"You are quite right, M. de Charost. Such honesty and truth as his are
absurdities that we do not often discover here," observed de Coigny,
shrugging his shoulders.
He stood still for a moment where she left him, till he saw her quite
surrounded with men and women. Then he moved away, dreading the next
hour, but buoyed up with the thought of a promise she had given before they
left her apartments. There were few people about him whom he did not
know, and he bowed continually from right to left as he walked aimlessly
through the throng. Oddly enough, however, as it seemed to him, the salutes
that were returned were coldly formal. No one addressed him beyond a
chilly "Good-evening," and Mme. de Grammont passed by with her eyes
fixed on some distant goal. Claude's heart was beginning to throb a little, and
he could feel the color surge over his face. Presently there was a touch upon
his arm. Quickly he turned his head. M. de Berryer was beside him.
They had drawn a little to one side of the greatest press while Claude
spoke. De Berryer stopped an instant to think before he replied; but when he
did so it was evidently with perfect honesty.
"My dear Count, you are experiencing these little and very disagreeable
cuts, in my opinion, first, because of your reckless attentions in spite of his
Majesty's open displeasure; secondly, because of an unpleasant mistake in
the story of your game with the King on Tuesday evening. The first matter
you alone can rectify, but the method is simple. In the second, I will try to
assist you. As to the—possible danger of your position—well, let me advise
you to—do what may be done while it still is possible. Your pardon. Au
revoir."
The Chief of Police, bowing courteously, turned aside and was lost in the
crowd before Claude could say anything further. To tell the truth, the last
words had nonplussed de Mailly not a little. Presently, however, he flung up
his head, and, passing his hand over his forehead, muttered to himself: "You
may be right—God knows you may be right. But no honest man gives up the
woman he loves because his rival is a king. And, from my soul, I believe that
in time Marie must love me in spite of all!" And so the lights grew a little
brighter as Claude passed on again through the Gallery of Mirrors.
It was a quarter to nine, and the company grew slightly bored. In three-
quarters of an hour two hundred people can easily dispose of ten new
scandals, redigest twenty ancient ones, and anticipate as many as the
remaining minutes will permit. But undiluted gossip, spiced with epigram
and heated with wit though it may be, grows nauseating after a while, if
taken in too great quantities; and, through the great room, to-night, there
were enough chronic dispeptics of this class to make conversation finally
begin to lag. The abstract murmur, to which Claude was moodily listening,
changed in character. Suddenly, as the cries of the ushers at last rang out, it
became as present wine to former tepid milk:
"Mesdames, messieurs, their Majesties! Way for the King! Way for the
Queen!—Will you have the goodness to move just here."
The four royal ushers, with their white staffs, passed down the room,
forming an alley for the passage of the King. No ribbons were used, as in the
days of the fourteenth Louis. The courtiers were better trained now. They
pressed back voluntarily on either side, leaving a very well-formed lane
between the two crowds. A quick silence fell over the room and the circling
throng was still. Each one had sought the company in which he or she
wished to stand. For none knew just how long it would take his Majesty to
reach the other end of the room, where he would open the first minuet.
Claude, by a series of delicate manœuvres, had reached the side of Mme. de
Châteauroux, and, despite the silence, found opportunity to whisper:
"You will not forget—that you have promised me the first dance?"
And the favorite, looking into her cousin's eyes, felt, even in her
heartless heart, a little throb of pity for the utter abandon of his infatuation.
"I do not forget, mon cher. But thou shouldst have kept away from me
till the progress was over."
Two more ushers entered and passed rapidly down the aisle, backward.
Louis and his wife, hand in hand, followed after. The King was, as usual,
magnificently dressed and glittering with jewels. His face, however, was as
unpropitious as possible. He wore his most bored and fretful look, and he
walked straight down the room for a distance of twenty-five feet, heedless of
his wife, without glancing at a soul. Marie Leczinska, on the contrary,
carelessly attired in a costume of deep brownish-red brocade, pale of face,
tired-eyed, yet wearing a curiously contented look, bowed timidly to three or
four of her dames du palais and some of her abbés, who had the grace to
return the salutes with a show of respect that was born of pity. The company,
however, quickly felt the chilling breath of the master's ill-humor.
"Parbleu!" muttered de Gêvres to Richelieu, as they stood together at the
far end of the gallery, "madame herself is to be ignored to-night."
But the Duke was mistaken. His Majesty, in his rapid walk, had seen
many more things than one might have imagined. He knew that Claude was
beside the favorite, and he accurately surmised Claude's intent. Therefore,
when he came abreast of the Duchess, who was not in the front row, he
suddenly stopped, turned his head towards her, and remarked, in a perfectly
expressionless tone:
And before she had time to courtesy her thanks he had passed on again.
"Ah, de Gêvres, take note," murmured Richelieu, cautiously, "'tis two
forms of the same expression that her Majesty and Claude de Mailly are at
this instant wearing."
"You are right, my friend. You should propose something of the sort as
the next subject for the competitive philosophical essay at the Academy."
"Oh. You might amuse her, then, with some anecdotes of your past
sanctity."
"She knows them too well. She will merely insist on talking to me of the
frightful improprieties of Mme. de Coigny."
"Oh, by-the-way, as to that, I hear that de Bernis did not even know her
sex."
"I have met him at Mme. Doublet's; and I give him credit for rather more
brain than that."
"Such tears appear to run in the family. You've been rather unkind to
Claude of late—and, moreover, it was dangerous to garble the story. His
disfavor with la Châteauroux certainly did not last long."
"No—silly boy! Really, Richelieu, that little invention should have done
him a good turn. If the Duchess had refused to speak to him for a week, he
would have been saved. As it is—um—I am glad that my position is not
his."
Richelieu hurried away, and de Gêvres also moved more rapidly than
was his wont in search of his partner. While the hours of that long evening
passed, the emotions varied with them. As la Châteauroux had her triumph
with, so had her cousin his revenge upon, the King. The third dance—
menuet des sabres—Louis performed with his wife. Under cover of imitating
royalty, de Coigny sought Victorine for his companion. Henri, biting his lips,
watched de Gêvres lead madame forth, and then, totally indifferent to every
unengaged woman in the room, sought out his Marquise, who left M.
Trudaine with a little laugh, and devoted herself prettily to the husband with
whom she had, as she said, merely a casual acquaintance. Meantime the
King was frowning furiously on the presumption of his still dauntless rival.
For Claude, in the face of a dozen competitors, under the very shadow of a
warning glance from de Berryer, which unmistakably spelled lettre de
cachet, had, with scarcely so much as a by-your-leave, triumphantly carried
his cousin off from her admirers to the head of the third twenty, and
proceeded to make two wrong steps during the dance, much to the
amusement of la Châteauroux and the disgust of the King: who, though
France were tottering, had never been guilty of such a misdemeanor.
The grand supper, which began at midnight, was virtually ended at one
o'clock by the departure of the King; although Mme. de Châteauroux, at
Richelieu's side, still stayed at table, and the Court, from curiosity, remained
with her. There was a murmur, whether of disappointment or surprise, when
the de Mailly cousins, Henri and Claude, with merely the customary salutes,
passed together from the room. Five minutes later the Duchess, refusing
escort, departed unattended, and the lingering Court, heartily sick of its own
dull self, bored, sleepy, with aching eyes and feet, rose from the horseshoe
table, and went its way to a dubious rest.
For an hour every apartment on the upper floors of the palace was ablaze
with light. In the city of Versailles those streets which, during the great
season, were the abodes of the lesser nobility, were still alive with coaches,
chairs, and link-boys; while not a window in any of the tall, narrow houses
but glowed with the mild fire of candles. In one of these streets, the Avenue
de St. Cloud, within the building called by its owner the Châtelet Persane, in
half the apartment of the third floor, Claude and Henri kept rooms together.
Just below them, more luxurious in fashion and less in content, were the
court apartments of the Marquis and Marquise de Coigny.
Victorine, nearly ready for the night, with a silken négligé thrown over
her elaborate white gown, sat before her dressing-table, brushing with her
own hands the clouds of powder from her dark hair. This hair, comparatively
short, according to the dictates of fashion, was still her only claim to beauty.
Thus at night, when the soft, natural curls could cluster unreservedly about
her pale face and neck, the little Marquise was far prettier than in the
daytime. She was not beautiful even now. The mirror showed her a delicate,
oval face, pallid and hollow-cheeked; two abnormally large eyes, that were
green and weary-looking to-night; the brows above them lightly marked, and
too straight to harmonize with her great orbs; a nose delicate, short, and
tilted piquantly upward—a feature more worthy of a coquettish grisette than
the daughter of one of the oldest families in France; and a mouth indefinite,
long, pale, sometimes very full of character, that would have rendered
Boucher and the miniature painters desperate.
Victorine had sent away her maid as soon as she was ready to sit down
quietly. It seemed to her that, sleepy as the girl appeared, she would be able
to read too much from her mistress's face, to see too far into her mind.
Besides this, it was a relief to be alone. During the strange month which she
had just lived, Mme. de Coigny had fallen suddenly in love with freedom.
The suffering which she was enduring from bondage was the penalty she
paid for her reckless wilfulness. But had it been ennui now, as of old, under
which she chafed, she might have made further effort to dispel it by means
of another of those startling escapades which, since she had amused the King
with one of them, the Court had become reconciled to. This was not ennui,
then. This, she thought vaguely, and with a kind of rebellion, was the
haunting image of a single person, the unchanging recurrence before her
mental eyes of a man's face—the face of François de Bernis, as she had seen
it first a month since at Fontainebleau.
The brush in her hand had almost ceased to pass over her hair, and
Victorine was staring fixedly into the mirror, without, however, seeing
herself. Presently the door to her boudoir swung gently open. She started
slightly and turned about in her chair. M. de Coigny, her husband, in his long
lounging-robe of green and gold, stood upon the threshold. She regarded him
silently. He hesitated for a moment, and then asked, deprecatingly:
He walked lingeringly into the delicate little place, and seated himself at
some distance from her, upon a small chair. Then the silence fell again,
lasting several seconds. Victorine waited; her husband was nervously at a
loss for words. Finally, seeing that she did not know how to help him, he
began, in a low, impersonal tone:
"Madame, it is now four days since your return from your little journey
to this abode, and—and to my nominal protection. During the month in
which your place of retreat was unknown to me, I confess to having
experienced extreme concern for your welfare. I believe that I have never
spoken to you upon the subject of those short flights to freedom which, from
time to time, you have been accustomed to take, in order to overcome, as I
have understood, your always unfortunate tendency towards ennui. This one
just passed, however, having been of so much longer duration than usual, I
have taken the liberty of questioning your old servitor, Jérôme, whom you
were so wise as to take with you as attendant. He has informed me that, so
far as he has been able to determine, your conduct as regards any of my sex
whom you chanced to encounter in that month, was eminently reserved and
dignified. Upon this, madame, I venture to congratulate you. I have come to
you to-night, however, with a proposal on which I have meditated carefully
for some weeks. At first it will not improbably appear to you to be too
unconventional and perhaps too uninteresting to be desirable; but I beg, for
my sake as well as yours, that you will consider it from every point of view.
"I have thought, Victorine, that perhaps one reason for your carelessness
about existence at Court was due to your entire indifference to any of the
cavaliers there at your disposal. I should have surrendered my supposed
rights to M. de Mailly-Nesle had I ever perceived that you desired him for
your comrade. I have been impelled to the belief that you do not care for
him. Therefore it is, madame, that I approach you to-night with the offer of
myself to you, as devoted to you in heart and feeling, to be your companion
as well as the protector of your name, or, as the Court understands the word,
your lover. With this request I couple the assurance that my love and esteem
for you are now far stronger than two years ago, when we were united in
marriage."
The Marquis de Coigny had heard her in silence. Now, at the close of her
unintentionally pitiful recital, he repressed an exclamation, and sat still,
looking at her, for a long moment.
His wife raised her hand. "Oh, monsieur, I beg of you, do not reproach
yourself! I would not dream, indeed I would not, of blaming you in any way.
It was only that I was young to the way of the world."
She returned his glance, and smiled, dreamily, as though her thoughts
had flown far. "Monsieur, it is not in your power; for I am happy, now, at
last."
The Marquis de Coigny rose. His face was passive. Only his mouth was
drawn a little straighter than usual. His bow was in perfect form. "I have the
honor to wish you good-night, Victorine."
Marly
The prior had finished his second bowl of tea, and sat absently
meditating on the excellence of its flavor. It was not a thing of which he
partook daily. De Bernis lay back in his chair, the dish in his hand steaming
unheeded, legs crossed, eyes staring into space, and a smile stretching itself
over his countenance.
"Thy thought, François! I would give something for the recipe of that
smile at Mme. de Tencin's. I might tell what tale I liked to explain it, and
they would credit every word."
De Bernis returned to the present, and directed the smile at his two
companions. "It is a tale," said he. "A very charming tale. However, our
coach will have arrived before I have finished it with proper adroitness."
"Ah, my dear Coyer, 'tis not the first time that you will have made your
bow to his Majesty and to the favorite. Consider my agitated eagerness."
"The sang-froid of M. de Bernis is known to be imperturbable," ventured
the prior.
"It began upon a certain morning five weeks past, the week of Christmas,
when, as you know, I was at Fontainebleau. At ten of the morning I started
out, on foot, my destination being the hut of one of the forest-keepers, my
road through the forest's centre. I had some écus in my pouch, together with
some food and some medicine of herbs, for the woodsman was wedded and
was poor. The morning was frosty. There was some little snow on the
ground, and here and there a wolf-track. I went slowly, composing
consolatory speeches, and meditating—on holy matters. Presently I looked
up, with the sense of some one near, to find myself facing a companion of
the vows, dressed like myself. I stopped, saluted, and bade him good-
morning. He returned my greeting in a pretty tenor voice, unusually high. I
looked again at the man's face. It was peculiar, but pleasing—small, oval,
white, and smooth. He was very young, and his eyes were remarkably large
and blue. He had been fasting, I thought."
Coyer laughed.
Here St. Perle started with surprise, and Coyer took snuff with a little
impatience at the coup anticipated by him from the beginning.
St. Perle was troubled at the doubtful propriety of the story related, in
which he had been too much interested to refuse to listen. He now folded his
hands resignedly, and meditated a little lecture to come a day or two hence.
The Abbé Coyer was still indifferent, or apparently so. He stirred his tea
and stifled a yawn before he remarked, casually: "Your road to knowledge,
de Bernis, is also that to Marly, where I trust you will recover your sang-
froid in the presence of your inamorata, who happens to be Mme. la
Marquise de Coigny. You will meet her to-night. Come, the coach is at the
door."
His Majesty, who had been more than usually bored during the past
week, occupied his mind during the Sunday-morning sermon in thinking
over all the grievances of kinghood, the uselessness of affairs of state, and
the possibilities of some amusement on the morrow as recompense for the
prayers of to-day. In the afternoon he sought his Châteauroux, and, happily
finding her Claudeless, asked her aid in planning a diversion. Madame, with
more tact than originality—in which factor her nature was lacking—
proposed a hunt at Sénart in the morning, a sleighing-party from the forest to
Marly in the afternoon, a supper and salon at that stiff château in the
evening. His Majesty received the idea graciously, since it did away with any
possibility of morning mass; and so, though he remarked later that he
preferred Choisy to Marly, and madame alone to madame's salons, the
programme was carried out as arranged, and the King seemed, in the
morning at least, to be having a very good time, indeed.
The first course of the evening meal was served at six. It was a less
elaborate affair than had been the custom under the old régime; but surely no
man who had not inherited the appetite of a Louis XIV. could have
complained of a scarcity in the number of dishes set forth. The company had
apparently forgotten its weariness. The room rang with laughter; the air was
alive with conversation, with toasts, with the relating of anecdotes, with
snatches of verse, with low-voiced compliments; and the candle-light was
dimmed by the flash of diamonds and the sparkle of champagne.
At the head of the first table sat the King—kingship dropped for the
evening. Upon his right hand, more royal than her liege, was the
Châteauroux; on his left, through some whim of his own devising, sat Mme.
de Gontaut, who had once rivalled the Duchess for her position, and came
dangerously near to winning it. Louis was supposed to be not over-fond of
this lady, who possessed that worst of all feminine attributes, an indiscreet
tongue. But to-night he was fanning her long-smouldering hopes with such a
breeze of devotion that the Duchess, seeing, first of any, the newly rising
flame, openly showed her anger and disgust by turning her back upon the
King to talk inanities with d'Epernon, her neighbor.
By the time that the first course was over madame was exceedingly
uncomfortable. Never, since the beginning of her reign, had she known the
King to treat her so inconsiderately. Once or twice, from beneath her eyelids,
she glanced at her rival. Mme. de Gontaut was radiant. She was racking her
brain, she was tearing her nerves, to keep Louis entertained for an hour—one
little hour—more. She was not a pretty woman, this Gontaut; but Marie
Anne de Mailly perceived, with a pang, that she could carry off a kind of
light espièglerie, which was amusing to the King because of its novelty. The
glance of the Châteauroux shifted to Louis' face. His Majesty was leaning to
the left, his blue eyes brilliant, his lips curved into the most charming of
smiles, his hands, which sparkled with jewels, lying close beside those of the
other woman. La Châteauroux forgot d'Epernon while she watched the
hands. The King drummed lightly on the table. He was repeating an
animated bit of gossip to his companion. His head was thrown back, and a
curious smile lurked in his face. Presently his eyes, also, fell upon his hand.
One of the rings that he wore was a solitaire ruby of great value, set in a
band of finely chased gold. Still smiling, he slipped the ring from his finger,
and contemplated it for an instant, knowing well how two women were
watching him. He was not usually prodigal of gifts, this most Christian king.
But this time there was a score to be paid off, a score of jealousy; and
revenge is worth more than rubies. Louis leaned forward, still speaking,
gently took Mme. de Gontaut's hand from the table, and slipped upon its
third finger the ring he had been wearing.
"Oh, Sire!" murmured the woman, her heart throbbing with a wild hope.
Louis, unable to resist the temptation, turned his head towards the
Duchess. She sat so that he could only see her profile, but from it he knew
that her face was flushed. He noted the stiff poise of her head, the pure
immobility of her shoulder, the slight dilation of her nostril, the mouth
firmly closed even while she smiled at a witticism. Louis was satisfied. His
anger with Claude de Mailly was dispelled. Surely no woman would have
the effrontery longer to encourage a petty cousin while her position wavered
in the balance. Already the King released the hand he held and took a
different tone of conversation with the Gontaut.
But Louis of France did not yet realize what things an offended woman
will be reckless enough to do. Mme. de Châteauroux was furious, and her
fury knew no prudence. She was accustomed to her way, a way which was
not that of submission. Her pride was greater than the King's own, and woe
to the king who affronted it! In the instant after she had watched Louis'
carefully prepared scene, her eyes fell, by accident, on the figure of Claude,
who sat far down the table. The sight of him showed her her opportunity for
satisfaction. While she ate, while she laughed, and talked, and quaffed
champagne and the new Bordeaux, she planned all in her mind. What matter
if she lost one man his freedom? She, Marie Anne de Mailly-Nesle, would
make a king suffer the consequences of his malice, and would once more
make sure of her own place, her position as Queen of France.
At eight o'clock the King rose from the table. Generally speaking, the
supper had not been particularly enjoyable. Every one was wearied by the
long drive, and a long continuance of gayety over the food proved
impossible. Besides this, the favorite had not set the tone of conversation,
and those who knew her expression were aware that she was in the worst
possible humor. Mme. de Gontaut was displaying her short triumph so
openly that his Majesty frowned and actually left her side as the company
adjourned in informal groups to the salons next the banquet-room. Mme. de
Châteauroux, still assiduously attended by d'Epernon, sought out Victorine
de Coigny, who stood beside Henri de Mailly-Nesle. The little Marquise
very well knew the reason for this meeting, and she was suddenly seized
with a chill of terror. Looking up at her friend, she found the Duchess's eyes
fixed on her in kindly interest.
The Duchess nodded and smiled. "With Coyer. It was my command," she
answered. And Victorine, impulsively seizing her hand, carried it to her lips.
The King failed to perceive the glances that passed from man to man
about him at the words of the Duchess. Neither was he aware of the fact that
de Bernis' presentation at Court had been delayed for eight endless years
because the flagrant irregularity of his life had so displeased Fleury that the
Cardinal had refused to give this priest an entrée to the circle of the Queen,
whom he respected, or to that of the King, whom he loved. Mme. de
Châteauroux was perfectly aware of all this; but Fleury had been dead a
year, and any qualms that she might otherwise have felt were lost in the
interest of watching the face of Victorine de Coigny, who had just perceived
the approach of the new-comers.
"His Majesty had graciously expressed a desire to meet you," said the
Duchess at once, turning slightly towards the King.
Louis, who was impatient to have done with the ceremony, stepped to
her side.
"Any man who had the great good-fortune to be beloved by the Cardinal
Fleury, Monsieur l'Abbé, cannot but be at all times welcome at our Court,"
remarked the King.
"To which lady will you be presented next?" she inquired, laughingly.
"To none, madame, if you are merciful," was the reply, accompanied by
one of those looks upon which de Bernis came afterwards to depend for
many things. "Dare I ask that you will grant me an hour of your
companionship?"
"Madame has been very cruel of late. The time, and especially the place,
are unsuited to proper expression of my lasting esteem. Will madame be so
generous as to receive me in her own apartments? The heat and the people
here are highly annoying."
"If your Majesty commands," returned the Duchess, without moving, "I
can, of course, but obey. Otherwise, I would suggest that your Majesty
remain here for at least an hour longer. At that time a disappearance would
be less remarkable."
The King sighed. "As you please—always as you please, Anne. But I am
wretchedly bored with all this."
"Au revoir."
With a bow and smile peculiarly his own, Louis moved away in the
direction of the little salon, and madame turned about to find Claude de
Mailly close at her side.
"Dear Claude! Where have you sprung from?" she asked, smilingly.
"I have been hoping all day that you might deign to speak to me. You
have been very cold of late."
She looked down upon him, and the smile died from her lips. "It is you
who have made me so. Surely you must have realized, cousin, that you have
been near to wrecking your own position."
"Then let me tell you, Claude, that were you not indiscreet you might see
far more of me than you do now."
Madame turned away for an instant, and a resolution came into her eyes.
"It is difficult, my Claude, to talk seriously with you here. I wish to see you
happier. Listen. In three-quarters of an hour go to my apartments. Antoinette
will let you in. There, when I can escape from this, I will come to you, and
we shall have a little consultation. You shall lay bare your heart to me, if you
will; and I—will turn adviser."
Claude seized her hand. "You will do this? You will let me tell you all?
You will listen to what I shall plead for? My God! It is more than I could
have hoped. Marie, Marie—I shall make you believe me, I shall make you
consent!"
"Chut! Some one will hear you, my child. There, that is enough. Remain
here while I go. Behold, de Gêvres is coming. Au revoir, then."
She parted from him with a smile as easy as that with which she had
begun the conversation. What was one to think of her? A woman without
heart, nerves, senses? No. Only a woman of the Court, a woman of the
world; a woman whose heaven was Versailles, whose god was called Louis
XV., whose hell would be dismissal with ten thousand livres a year.
Claude stood looking after her as she gave her hand to the lisping Duke;
and then, tingling with excitement, with delight, with hope, with faith in his
words and in her, the boy started upon the way she had pointed out to him.
He went slowly across the room to the spot where stood Henri and a little
group of ladies and gentlemen. He laid his hand upon the Marquis' arm and
drew him a little away from the rest. Henri looked with curiosity and
surprise upon his comrade's excited face, the brilliant green of his eyes, and
the spasmodic manner in which he breathed.
"What is it, Claude? You look as though you had an inspiration, or were
about to be seized with an illness. You have had too much champagne."
He started away, but his cousin darted after him and caught him by the
arm. "See here, my friend, you would better let me accompany you to your
room. You must not make a scene. I cannot imagine how you—"
Before Henri finished Claude broke into a laugh. "Mordi, Henri, didst
think me mad? I am a trifle excited. I am weary from the hunt—what you
will. I am going to retire. Do not disturb me to-night. See, there is Mlle.
d'Argenson regarding me. Let me go at once. There. Good-night!"
After these words the Marquis paused more contentedly, and saw his
cousin leave the room, going in the direction of the grand staircase. On his
way Claude passed the King, who was with Mme. de Jarnac, and the
Duchess, still with de Gêvres. He left the second salon behind and entered an
antechamber opening upon the central hall. Here, quite alone, side by side in
the shadow of a hanging, were Victorine de Coigny and François de Bernis.
The Abbé was toying with her fan, and laughingly answering her animated
questions and observations. De Mailly took mental note of her face as he
bowed in passing. Never had he seen it so absolutely free from discontent or
that little look of fretful weariness that neither Henri nor de Coigny himself
had ever been able to dispel. Now Claude had left them behind, and the
staircase was before him. Ascending rapidly, he passed along the corridor
above to the old apartments of de Maintenon. He knocked, was admitted
without delay, and conducted, by Antoinette, into the inner room.
"Monsieur le Comte will wait here. He is early," she said, as she slipped
away.
In the centre of the room in which he was left stood a round table. To this
Claude drew a chair, seated himself, and then, obeying an impulse, leaned
forward on the mahogany and laid his head upon his arms. Minutes passed,
and he distinguished them neither from seconds nor from hours. After a time
the maid once more went through the room. There was the murmur of a
phrase or two spoken in the antechamber, a door softly opened, the delicate
swish of satin, and then Claude was upon one knee at the feet of his cousin
of Châteauroux.
She raised him up and smiled slowly into his brilliant eyes. "You are
tired of waiting, and, indeed, I do not wonder. But I have not been able to
effect my disappearance till now. 'Toinette will bring a pâtê and a glass of
wine to us here, which we will take together, not as cousins, Claude, but—"
"Ah, no—Anne, no! Surely you could not think when you had granted
me so much—so much as this—that I would not dare more—would not risk
all, at last—"
"Chut! Stop, Claude! Why, would you finish our colloquy in a word? We
have much time before us. To hurry is ungraceful."
Was madame suddenly nervous? Claude heard her voice tremble, and
thought that her hand shook as she raised the delicate crystal goblet, with its
tracery of golden grapes and vines, filled to the brim with that foaming gold
which the court of the fifteenth Louis knew so well.
The glass was at his lips, and he drank the toast with his soul in his eyes.
He was blind; he was deaf. He did not hear that sound in the neighboring
room that had stopped his companion's hand and fixed her eyes. The door to
the boudoir was thrown violently open, and, at the same instant, there was
the crash of glass on the floor.
"Diable!" cried a peculiar voice; and then a silence, thick, terrifying, fell
upon the little room.
Slowly, so slowly that the woman was fascinated with the sight, Claude
carried the glass from his lips back to the table. His eyes had met those of
the King, and both men hung to the glance. The boy rose, his limbs as steady
as his hand had been. And still no one spoke. Mme. de Châteauroux was not
acting now. Claude had not seen her first terror, but he knew when her hand
crept to her mouth, perceived the trembling of it, heard dimly the sharpness
of her breathing. Finally her voice came to him as if from a great distance, as
she faintly said:
"So early, madame," echoed the royal voice, suavely. "And does Mme.
de Châteauroux now make appointments for her evenings by the hour?"
But before she could finish Claude took the affair into his own hands.
Moving until he stood between her and the King, and looking straight into
her now impenetrable face, he spoke:
"Anne, when I came here to-night, I think you must have known what it
was to say; and you will let me speak it now. Anne—I love you. I love you
more dearly than anything upon earth. I offer you what I have to give—
marriage, and the devotion of my life. You have been mistress of France, but
I offer you an honester home, one in which you may obtain absolution.
Choose, then, here and now, between us two. I ask that the King, as a man,
will allow that choice—between marriage with me and freedom to live
where we choose, or—the other life."
"Choose, madame."
La Châteauroux bent her head. It was not what she had planned, this
situation. She herself it was who was bearing the difficult and the despicable
part in it; for madame was but twenty-seven, and had still traditions of the
family honor clinging to her. The answer came as though it cut her a little to
speak her words, there, with the King's cynical eyes upon her, and all
Claude's young, mad hope in his face:
CHAPTER V
The Chapel
Tuesday morning at Marly proved an ordeal for the army of valets and
maids attendant on the ladies and gentlemen who had taken part in the
amusement of the day before. His Majesty, indeed, could not be said to have
set a good example to his companions. He was sulky, he was depressed by
the weather, and he wanted de Berryer. While he was still in bed he was
informed by de Rosset, his first gentleman, that the Chief of Police could not
possibly be brought to Marly from Versailles under six hours. Louis made no
comments, but kicked the bedclothes aside and began to dress himself with
extreme rapidity, receiving his garments as willingly from the plebeian
hands of Bachelier as from those of de Rosset, whose business it was to
conduct matters properly. Being finally arrayed in a very much shorter time
than usual, the King adjourned to the conventional room and sat down to the
breakfast prepared for him. After gloomily striking off the tops of his eggs,
dipping a bit of bread into each yolk, and throwing the rest away, till he had
demolished seventeen of these commodities, without eating what one would
contain, he ordered his sleigh prepared, and, at nine o'clock, left Marly
behind, and set off at full trot for Versailles.
Behind him, at his grandfather's stiff old château, Louis left a pretty
disposition of human emotions. Mme. de Châteauroux was very anxious.
The more she brooded over the scene of the night before, the more she
regretted the affair. Certainly it had turned out as badly as possible. Claude
was inevitably ruined. He must by now have discovered how heartless and
how cruel she was; and as to Louis being more jealous, and therefore more
anxious to please her than before, why, that was a doubtful question. He
could be very ambiguous when he chose.
Claude by no means lay awake during the hours that were left between
his retirement and the dawn, on that night at Marly; but his eyes unclosed in
the morning more heavily than was their wont, and it took him but a second
to define the sense of weight at his heart when he was awake. Sounding the
hand-bell for his man, he made a rapid and silent toilet, and then hastened
off to the neighboring apartment of his cousin the Marquis. Henri was in
bed, still in that dream-stage between sound slumber and preliminary yawns.
Claude's repeated and vigorous knocks at the door succeeded at last in
bringing him to a realizing sense of all that is disagreeable in life.
"Run to my room, Chaumelle, and bring in the chauffier you will find
there. His Majesty's too tender of his forests to provide us with wood for
burning. It's abominably cold."
"No," answered Claude. "Set it there. Bring the water in half an hour
from now. He will be ready for you then."
The man bowed and disappeared, while Henri, from the bed, grumbled
discontentedly: "How in the name of a thousand devils dost thou know at
what hour I will rise? Wilt let me sleep again now, or not?"
"Not, Henri," was the reply, as Claude drew a tabouret up to the bed and
spoke in a tone so new that his cousin sat up and looked at him.
Claude leaned over the bed, took up the pillows, and fixed them, as a
woman might, at the Marquis' back.
"Sit there so, and pull the coverlet about thy shoulders, and then listen to
my history, and tell me—what the end will be."
Thereupon the younger de Mailly proceeded to recount, very accurately,
with neither exaggeration nor palliation, all that had occurred on the
previous night, together with certain incidents which had gone before,
unthought of, but which now stood out from the tangle of life with
significant relationship to the present situation. The Marquis listened closely,
with increasing anxiety in his expression; and when Claude ceased to speak
there was a silence between the cousins. It was this silence that forced upon
the Count his first twinge of real dread.
"Has lived since then near Geneva, while Mme. de la Tournelle was
created Duchesse de Châteauroux.... I meant that one, Claude,—yes."
"And you think," said the young fellow, turning about, and squarely
facing his companion—"you think that I shall—be invited to undergo the
same—fate?"
Mailly-Nesle listened with a face more serious than ever, and, when
Claude finally stopped, he shook his head. "Do not put your faith in her,
Claude. I, her brother, warn you. She gave up everything in life to win the
place she obtained. Remember how d'Agenois was her promised husband
when he was exiled with her consent. Remember that she drove her own
sister, Alexandre's wife, out of Versailles, to the Ursulines, for life. She—no,
Claude, she will not help you. She cannot."
The younger sighed. "Ah, well—I ask too much, perhaps. At any rate, it
may mean nothing more than a month in the Bastille. That would not be at
all difficult. Indeed, I should indulge in a much-needed rest. You and de
Coigny should come to tell me all the news; I would invite Monsieur le
Gouverneur, and, possibly, my turn-key to dine, and we should all be merry
with feasting and fasting by turns. You see, Henri, my spirit will not be
shaken till the final blow. This room is like a furnace. When, dear Lord
Doleful, are you going to rise?"
"At once, Claude. My friend, your buoyancy is worth rubies. Even now I
am mourning for you more than you for yourself. How are you able to move
hand or foot?"
"Come, you are aping d'Epernon. You make a bad lover. No woman likes
a man with a face so long. Ah! And that reminds me—but what shall you do
when you are dressed?"
Claude burst into a shout of laughter. "On my soul, Henri, you are a prig.
Use a little indifference towards her. 'Tis only that can save you now. Why,
positively, you are absurd. How is it that you arrange the 'gallant' now?"
"A trifle smaller than you have it there, and farther down towards the left
ear. There. That is better."
Chaumelle more than won his prize, for it was but just half-past when the
cousins, having finished their coffee and eggs, were announced at the
apartments of the Duchess.
"Ah, Monsieur le Comte! How rash you are! You compromise me; you
—you make your own case infinitely worse. Henri, how could you have
permitted him to come?"
"I know. I know. Whom did you see in the hallway as you came here?
Any one?"
She fairly pushed them from her into her antechamber, pointing, as she
did so, to the outer door. Claude had turned scarlet, but Henri was very pale.
Both of them bowed in silence; for there seemed no words suitable for
bidding the "fair and haughty," now very tearful and eager Châteauroux,
good-bye. Once outside, the Marquis turned and looked at Claude.
"De Gêvres be—!" was the low reply. "I return to Versailles."
"And I accompany you.... Good Heaven, Claude, don't think that she
meant it all! You see how everlastingly she must work against all that is
generous in her."
"Ah, messieurs! Your morning interview with madame, your sister and
cousin, was short. You are leaving the château?"
Madame was divested of her wraps and resigned to Marly for another
two hours. Richelieu seated himself comfortably in the historic boudoir, one
foot, prone to repentance for many truffles and overmuch vin d'Ai, reposing
tenderly on a cushion, his embroidery in his hands, and a snuff-box near by.
The favorite, gracious, but a trifle on her guard, placed herself opposite to
him and waited.
The Duke took several contemplative stitches before he remarked,
gently: "Madame, you look unwell this morning. Now, were I you, I should
not be nervous. As I imagine, you were slightly rash yesterday—did not
manage quite so perfectly as usual. You have, no doubt, sacrificed the
cousin; but you are still secure."
"By no means. But the mad haste with which he departed this morning
portends extreme disease of mind. It is his fear that, after all, Claude may
hold charms which he does not possess."
The Duchess raised her eyes to the ceiling. "Dear uncle," she said,
"Louis is perfect. I adore him!"
"Ah, but you either make him doubt too strongly or you let him know it
too well. You are too impassioned, Anne. I have always told you that. I
assure you I should have been married twenty times, instead of only twice,
had I not been able to have any woman for the asking."
"Ah, madame, life is cruel to us all. But now, Anne, come, confide in me,
as your good counsellor, certain particulars which the Court but guesses.
What is the last madness of young de Mailly, and why did the King, after a
petit lever and a vile breakfast, without admitting a single entry, order his
sleigh an hour ago and set off for Versailles and de Berryer as if pursued by
all the furies? All knowledge is yours, my Anne. Share it with me."
Mme. de Châteauroux rose from her chair and swept two or three times
up and down the little room. Richelieu, examining her at his leisure, could
discover no trace of agitation in her manner. Suddenly she stopped still and
turned towards him.
"I do not deny that Claude is lost," she said, slowly. "But, if he is, is it
not his fault alone? He is not ignorant of the ways of the Court. Why should
he put himself, his career, in my hands? He will reproach me, without doubt.
All will do that. Again I shall be called, as in the other case, without heart,
without generosity, without love for my family. Mon Dieu!—you remember
the scandal when my father left Versailles? Bah! Put me out of my position,
uncle. Imagine me as a mere bourgeoise—of the people. Well, then? What
woman but will become selfish, forgetful of all, for the man she loves? What
are those others, who stand in her way, to her? And I, Monsieur le Duc, am a
woman who loves. I love—I have the courage to love—the King."
A flicker passed through the eyes of the Duke as he bent over his
embroidery. Was it amusement, or was it revelation? Could it be but a
recollection of certain common Court memories that appertained to the
"love" of Marie Anne de Mailly? Was it a fleeting remembrance of the brief
and stormy careers of the two older sisters of this woman, both of whom had
held her place, the one dying in it, pitifully enough, the other dismissed by
the open command of the Marquise de la Tournelle, then just coming into
power? Was it a vision of the angry helplessness of the old Marquis de
Nesle, driven away to die in exile, because his pride of family was too great
to sanction his daughters' dishonor? Was it a thought for a brother's hidden
shame; of the merciless flouting of a helpless queen; of the dismissal of
every minister who held at heart the best interests, not of the mistress, but of
France; of the ruin of every courtier who had not paid his court to her; of the
fate of the hapless d'Agenois; the impending ruin of young de Mailly? Was
it, perhaps, a vision of prophecy concerning others to come, on whom
disfavor should fall—Belleville, d'Argenson, Chartres, Maurepas, the
Dauphin of France—nay, finally, after all, before all, himself, the great, the
incomparable Richelieu, estranged from the King and the Court through the
"love" of this woman? After all, the flutter of many thoughts takes but an
instant, and madame had scarcely time for impatience when her good
"uncle" was answering her with well-calculated lightness.
"You are right, Anne. And how drunk with the happiness of such love
should our most gracious Majesty be! Perhaps he has flown away this
morning that he may reflect in happy solitude on his great good-fortune."
"Well, Sire, you have work for me?" inquired the official, with badly
concealed irritation. De Berryer had been forced to leave certain matters
relative to the farmers-general in a distressingly unfinished state in Paris, had
been harassed all through his ride with details of the King's anger, and
finally arrived at Versailles tired, nervous, and out of sorts, to be summoned
instantly before Louis, who would probably occupy him till seven with his
usual tiresome and fussy budget of Court intrigue, gossip, and grievances.
And at such times there was certainly one minister of France who cordially
hated his position.
"Yes, yes, yes. I want a lettre-de-cachet at once, and you to deliver it,"
was the reply.
The poor servant groaned inwardly as he drew from his pocket an ever-
ready bunch of these conveniences, prepared for filling out. "What name,
Sire? It is immediate?"
"Yes. No. Wait. I will tell you about it," responded the King, leaning
comfortably back in his chair and munching a gâteau purlaine.
De Berryer passed the back of his hand over his forehead and resigned
himself. Louis began to speak, recounting in a leisurely but not
unentertaining fashion the last developments of the affaire de Mailly, as it
was called at Court. Presently, despite himself, de Berryer grew interested in
the tale. He remembered his last conversation with Claude at the assembly,
perceived that the young man had not taken his advice, but had gone along
upon his own career of audacious fidelity to a foolish cause. On the whole,
de Berryer rather admired him, and certainly regretted his approaching fall.
Besides this, there was that other amusing phase of the matter—that of
Louis' furious jealousy of this two-penny Count for whom the favorite
doubtless cared not the least in the world, save for the fresh fires of royal
devotion that she could kindle at his hands. All things considered, de Berryer
had spent duller hours than this in his Majesty's presence.
"What!"
The King blasphemed below his breath, and the minister smiled covertly.
"Precisely so, your Majesty. No, it is not bolt, bar, and stone walls to
foment his passion that our young Count needs. On the contrary, it is space,
time, other courts, other women, new comrades—in fine, a second case of
d'Agenois—that will fit the amorous M. de Mailly. He—"
"Bravo, bravo, de Berryer! Excellent, by my faith! It is enough. Wait."
Louis touched his bell, and a lackey appeared.
Lights were brought and set before the minister, who drew from a drawer
in the table some paper, quills, a sandbox, wax, and the small seal.
Mass, to the relief of every one present save, possibly, Marie Leczinska
and her son, came presently to an end. In a measured press the many-colored
throng passed down the aisle after the sovereigns, bowing, chatting,
shrugging, smiling, retailing the last bit of gossip as they might do to-day,
happy in the knowledge that twenty-four hours intervened between them and
the next chapel. Mme. de Châteauroux, who, to the end, had resolutely
avoided her cousin's entreaty, was among the last to set forth for less
depressing apartments, surrounded, as usual, by a group of the King's
gentlemen. Behind her, aimless, objectless, speaking to few, addressed by
many, for a high interest centred around him now, went Claude, with Henri
still close beside him. They arrived together at the door, and Mailly-Nesle, a
pace ahead, was whispering a compliment into the ear of Mme. de Coigny,
when a light hand fell upon Claude's shoulder. The young fellow started
under the touch as though thrilled with a sudden presentiment. The Count de
Maurepas was beside him.
Claude turned and placed himself beside the other. They waited together
till the last stragglers had left the chapel. Dim light, and silence that was a
relief, fell about them. Up at the far end of the room an acolyte was
extinguishing the candles at the altar. Then de Mailly quietly faced his
companion.
Without further ado Claude took from Maurepas' hand the letter that he
held, with its dangling brown seal.
Claude bowed bravely, but ungracefully enough, and looked towards the
Marquis. His lips were dry, his cheeks suddenly flushed, his eyes very
bright. Henri understood the look, and passed with him out of the chapel. De
Maurepas was left alone to gaze after them. When they were gone he shifted
his position slightly, but made no move to leave the room. Presently de
Berryer appeared from the vestibule and joined him.
Maurepas shook his head. "I am not certain, but I think it was hard for
him. I imagine that he was not very sure of what he did. He asked me to say
'au revoir' to the King. Bah! You might have done this yourself, de Berryer. I
don't like such work."
"And do you think, Monsieur le Comte, that I like it better?" queried the
King's favorite minister, with a weary frown.
CHAPTER VI
Claude's Farewell
Certainly the room was in a state. All about it, on every chair, on the
bureau, the desk, the tabourets, and upon the floor, lay clothes—court-suits,
riding-suits, hunting-suits, every-day suits, dressing-gowns, boots, shoes,
slippers, long stockings of silk and of thread, laces, ruffles, fine linen shirts,
undergarments, wigs, a peruke, two swords, hats, cloaks, gauntlets—every
article known to the masculine wardrobe of that day. From the various heaps
Claude, by means of a riding-whip which he held, designated what he
wished packed, Chaumelle would pick it out and carry it to Rochard, who
folded it and placed it, with melancholy care, in the little coffer.
"I must have one court-suit, but I vow I'll take no more. Which shall it
be, Henri—the peach-colored or the white satin? Speak, man!"
The Marquis, with an effort, raised his head. "Both. You will need the
white one for your wedding."
Claude stared at his cousin for an instant, and his lips twitched with
laughter. Then, with a sudden change of expression, he pulled from his
breast, where it had lain all night, the letter that Maurepas had delivered to
him. He had not read it since leaving the chapel.
"Owing to certain circumstances which of late have had the misfortune greatly to displease S.M.,
the King desires to inform Count Claude Vincent Armand Victor de Nesle de Mailly that the absence
of the Count from the château and city of Versailles after the noon of Friday, January 22d, in this year
of 1744, will be desirable to S.M.; and that after the first day of the month of February, Monsieur the
Count, if he has not already crossed the line of the French Kingdom, would of necessity be placed
under the escort of one of his Majesty's officers. The King wishes Monsieur the Count a delightful
journey, and begs further to add that when monsieur shall desire to present Madame la Comtesse his
wife to their Majesties at Versailles, his return to his present abode will be most pleasing to
"Louis R."
As Claude for the second time perused this curious letter his face
darkened, and, at the last lines, flushed.
"I heard your 'au revoir' sent to his Majesty," observed Henri, "and, after
I read the dismissal, I understood it. You will discover some pretty child in
Madrid or Vienna. In six months you will be back again with her for
presentation; and here she will quickly find some marquis or duke for
cavalier, while you return again with your rashness to the little apartments."
The Marquis spoke these words by no means in raillery, but with such a
tone of solemn prophecy that Claude turned a serious and questioning gaze
upon his cousin. Then he shook his head.
"Ah, Claude, it is too far! Where wouldst thou go? To our colony of
Louisiana, or the settlements of the South coast—the flower-land that is
pestered with Spanish and English pirates? Be sane, my Claude. Remain
nearer home. Surely some day you will return to us. Think, think of the
homesickness. Without thee here, Claude, I—I—" Henri went no further. His
voice had broken, and he suddenly hid his face in his hands and bent over
the table.
The Count sprang from the bed, crying roughly to the two servants to
continue their work. Then, standing by the chair of Mailly-Nesle, he put both
hands affectionately on the two bent shoulders.
"Henri, look at me. Thou shalt not take it in this way. I have got no more
than has come to a thousand others. I have loved too well. And since I may
not have that one thing for which I would sell the soul from my body, 'tis
small matter, after all, where I live, or what my portion is. Some day I shall
return hither, doubtless—when—when—or thou shalt come to me. Things
may occur, perhaps, that shall make all right. Take courage. Thou art a man!
There is no time for this. We must talk together of many things. There is my
money, my rents—"
The Marquis raised his head, and Claude nodded with satisfaction to see
that he was again in control of himself.
"'Tis better, hein? Thou knowest, Henri, I get from Touraine and
Languedoc together some fifty thousand livres yearly. I have made that
suffice me here, with what I could win at play. My debts, as Fortune wills,
are paid. Can the King say as much? What has paid for this life will stay me
better abroad, in whatsoever land I may find myself, than it has done here.
How to receive it—"
"That shall be my task, Claude. In May, as you have done, and again
later in the year, I will go to both estates, as I visit my own. Your stewards
will accept me as master, I imagine. They are good fellows, both."
"So little? They are not good, then, but stupid. Mine, on my single estate,
costs me ten."
The Marquis shrugged. "Well—and each three months you will write to
me, that I may send the rents where you may be?"
"Yes. I will burden thee with news more often than that. Do you know,
my friend, I have a mind to set out from Flanders or England for King
George's colonies? It has been said that the summer is a paradise in Virginia,
or in Lord Baltimore's province."
"I do not love French to-day. I swear to you that I will perish at once
rather than go to swell the peopling of our Christian Majesty's damnable
colonies!"
"Chut! That is treason. Finish your selection of garments there, and let us
go out to seek a dinner. I perish of hunger."
"I come, I come. You must not die to-day. Is the suit of olive there,
Rochard? Then—"
Claude drew his dressing-gown about him and motioned his man to the
door. "Open—but not too widely," he said.
Rochard unclosed the door, pushed it open six inches, and peered out.
After a low-voiced colloquy with some one outside, he turned into the room
again, holding out to his master a note addressed in a handwriting which
Claude dreamed of. As he opened and read it, the boy turned very white.
Henri, who was watching him closely, hurried to his side.
"What is it?"
"Nothing," was the quick reply. "Rochard, it—it is the valet, is it not?"
It was two o'clock in the afternoon, and the Duchess was alone in her
dressing-room. She was alone, had been alone through the whole morning,
refusing admittance to the usual visitors of the toilette, in the hope that
Claude might come. She had learned, like the rest of the Court, of the letter
delivered in the chapel. But the reason of it, which was so well known to her,
the Court but guessed. Her desire to speak with her cousin again was
unaccountably strong, and she could not believe that he would make no
effort to see her—for the last time. Nevertheless the hours had passed, and
Claude neither sent her any word of farewell nor came himself. She was
anxious, and she was bored. The King, who had that morning been informed
that she was ill, had gone hunting. Versailles was deserted. Even Victorine
was at Rambouillet. And so madame, more restless with every passing
instant, was at last guilty of the imprudence of sending for the man whose
banishment was caused by his having dared to enter too closely into her life.
Her note finally despatched by the only man in her household whom she
could trust, she drank a second cup of chocolate and ate a fillet of venison,
of royal shooting, with some appetite. Afterwards, with the assistance of
Antoinette, she made one of her most careful négligé toilets, in which the
carelessness was obviously becoming. Her dress was entirely of white. She
wore not a single jewel, wiped off every trace of rouge, took the ornaments
from her hair, and brushed its powdery locks till the bright gold lay in
natural waves about her neck, and Mme. de Châteauroux had become as
beautiful as flattery itself could have painted her. She was, at this time,
nearly seven and twenty years of age. Her face was still young, but her
manner was old—older than that of the King. She had acquired long ago the
carriage of a King's consort, and that was, indeed, a role which she had
played so much that it had become a natural part of herself. She had faced
difficult situations since her childhood; and never, save once with her dead
father and once with her husband, the old Marquis de la Tournelle, had she
lost control of herself and of the affair in hand. It had made her too self-
confident in appearance—a fact which she realized, but could not change.
She would have liked to-day to play a younger part with Claude, but she
sighed and shook her head as Antoinette finally tied back the shining hair
with a white ribbon, and the grand manner descended upon her like a pall.
It was now a full half-hour since she had sat in the little room, waiting,
and looking out upon the bleak courtyard below her window. She had ceased
to think, and her appearance was that of a statue in marble, when Antoinette
softly pushed open the door of her room and allowed a cloaked and hatted
figure to pass in. The door closed again after the entrance, and at the same
time there was a little click from the antechamber beyond, as the faithful
maid locked the door that opened upon the great corridor. In the boudoir of
the favorite two people were alone.
His reply was quick. "No, Anne. It is not the end yet."
"It was not the King told me that. Do you mean that the story of the letter
of banishment is not true?"
"Of what?"
"Love!"
"Yes."
The Duchess was puzzled. She drew slightly away from him. "Then
there is some one—some one of whom I know nothing."
"Yes, Anne, some one of whom you know nothing. Would you hear who
it is? No, remain where you are! That some one whom I love, whom I have
come to to-day, with whom now I am going to plead for life, is your real
self. You have forgotten it in life here, my Anne. You have forgotten, in the
midst of your estate, in the midst of the Court ways, what you were before
all that was part of you. Listen. We played together, you and I, and
Alexandre and Henri, and Louise and Pauline, in the gardens of the old
château, by the river-bank, and through the forest. We were the youngest,
you and I. Alexandre was our leader, and we obeyed him as our general. I
liked you then better than the other girls, though you always mocked at me
for a baby, while Louise was gentle, and Pauline always in difficulty. And
after—we separated, all of us. You were sent to the Ursulines, I to
Languedoc with a tutor, Alexandre to Paris. It was there in the old Hôtel de
Mailly, at Alexandre's wedding with Louise, that again we came together.
Ah, Anne, Anne, I think you have not forgotten what followed! The first
scandal, Alexandre's death, Louise's life in the little apartments, how the
King grew weary, how little Pauline was brought from her convent, how she,
too, was sacrificed to infamy, and how she died—how she was murdered,
Anne, you—"
"Stop, Claude!"
"All this is well enough if you wish it, little one. Neither do those long
'recollections' of thine disturb me, save that they are very stupid, my Claude.
But now, how shall you continue? Are there yet more of them?" Evidently
the Duchess was not overpleased with the interview, so far.
"I have done with the recollections, but I have more to say," returned the
boy, undaunted by her manner. "I have something to say which, once before,
you have heard, but which you shall listen to again. It is why I obeyed your
note. In other case I should have left Versailles without seeing you. It is
something that I am going to offer you, something that I have to give that is
not elsewhere, I think, to be found in Versailles. You will seek long, Anne,
before you find it again. It is something that you, and every woman about
you, make light of daily; and yet it is what women—ay, and men—sell their
souls for."
"Yes, it is love—my love, that I have to give. Anne, to you, here, being
as you are; what you are; belonging to none who has the right to guard you;
paid with much gold, it is true, yet with false gold; puppet-queen, without
real honor in any heart, your name a byword in many countries—"
Both her hands were in his, clasped so tightly that she was pained. Much
of the force of his passion had entered into her. It could not but do so, for it
was too real. She was trembling; her breath came unsteadily, and she could
not give her answer with his upturned eyes upon her. Gently, very gently, she
pushed him aside, rose from her chair, and, turning away from him, began to
pace the end of the room, steadying herself as she walked. De Mailly, a little
dazed now, the reaction from his nervous strain already beginning to
overcome him, passed slowly to the opposite side of the dressing-room and
stood there with his back to the door, one cold hand pressed to his damp
forehead. His face was deathly white. His body quivered. Presently madame
stopped, in her walk, before her cabinet of toys, opened one little drawer,
and took something therefrom. Then she went over to where her cousin was
standing, and, with an effort, spoke:
"Thank you," she said, dreamily, "for what you have said to me. May
God, in his goodness, bless you, little cousin. You know that it is all useless,
what you wish. Some day you will be glad that my place was here—that I
knew that I was not fit for you. Remember it. I am not fit for you. You spoke
truth at first. See, I grant you all that. You must go your way alone. Such as I
could not make you happy. I—give you only this—if you care to take it—for
memory. 'Tis all I have. As to my love—who knows what I love—or where?
Adieu."
She held something out to him, something white, and heavy with gold
and little jewels. It was the mate to that gauntlet which he had won from her
and given to the King ten days ago. He took it, mechanically, and placed it,
almost without looking at it, in a pocket. Then he picked up his cloak and his
hat. Slowly he put both on; and, once more, all accoutred, he turned to look
at her. Her back was towards him. Her head was bent. He could not speak
coherently. He put out his hand and felt for the fastening of the door. There
was a long, inaudible sigh. The door swung open. An effort, two steps, a
slight mist before his eyes—he was gone. In the antechamber Henri, with
haggard face and tears unconcealed, waited also for a clasp of the hand, to
bid him godspeed to his banishment.
Book II
DEBORAH
CHAPTER I
A Ship Comes In
All night the waters of the Chesapeake and those of the Atlantic beyond
had been tumbling under the force of a fresh east wind that was bearing an
incoming vessel straight up to her harbor and home. But with the first streak
of gray along the far horizon, Night ceased to flap her dusky wings, and the
wind fainted till it was but a breath. As the wavelets lapped against the ship's
side, her captain, longing for home, shrugged his big shoulders and ordered
out more canvas.
It was a fair dawn. The whole stretch of sky over the bay was flushed
with pink and beamy with gold; while beyond this the clear greenish
turquoise of mid-sky and the west grew so vivid that the last clinging night-
mist melted away, and the day waited only for the sun. He came at last, a
great, fiery wheel, dripping from a watery bath and pouring his splendor
back to the waters again till the river ran gold, dazzling the eyes of the gulls
that veered across its breast down to the bay and out towards the salty sea.
And the sun woke the forests of birches and poplars and spruce, colored the
dandelions in the grass all over again, drank dew from the flower-cups,
played with the breeze among the peach-blossoms of the orchard on the
bank, and finally entered into the quaint breakfast-room of a colonial house,
Trevor Manor, that stood on the river Severn, three miles from the city of
Annapolis.
Adam, the house-butler, very black and very sleepy, was in this small
apartment, dusting. From the next room Lilith, his wife, hummed, in a rich
contralto, over her sweeping. Otherwise the house was still; for the sun rises
early in May.
Adam and Lilith, their first tasks ended, were now setting the table in the
breakfast-room, with table-cloth of unbleached linen, the ordinary service of
burnished pewter, silver knives, and carving-set of steel, horn-handled.
When the six places at the oval table had been laid, Lilith disappeared
through the glass door, to return presently with a great platter of newly
picked strawberries, green-stemmed, scarlet and fragrant, and still glistening
with dew. These were set in the centre of the table, while on either side stood
an earthenware bowl heaped with sugar, patiently scraped by Adam from the
high, hard loaves that came, wrapped in bright purple "dye-paper," up from
the Spanish Indies.
The sun being by this time nearly two hours high in the heavens, the
breakfast-room was deserted by serving-folk to regain a more tranquil tone
for the reception of its ordinary habitants. Through the open door came the
breath of the May morning, heavy with the sweetness of the garden just
outside. Plato gazed mildly down upon the two or three lazy flies that
hummed over the strawberries, and once a robin from the woods near by
skimmed into the room, brushed past the decanters on the buffet, halted for a
second on a jar near King George, and made a darting exit through the open
southern window.
Finally, into the waiting solitude, came Sir Charles—Sir Charles, tall,
slender, graceful, freshly wigged and powdered, his lieutenant's uniform of
scarlet and white in harmony with the morning, the Gentleman's Magazine
in one of his well-kept hands, an eye-glass on a silken cord in the other. He
seated himself in an evidently accustomed place at the table, pushed back his
chair a little, comfortably crossed his legs, and began to reperuse an article
on the best methods of preserving fox-brushes, which had engaged his
attention the evening before. He was not a rapid reader, and he had not half
finished the column when he felt, unmistakably, another presence near him.
Thereupon he permitted himself an unmannerly luxury:
Then, quickly throwing aside his paper, the young man rose, bowed as he
should have done, and stood looking at her who was before him.
"THE YOUNG MAN ROSE AND BOWED"
Deborah stood in the glass doorway, half in and half out of the room. Her
face was slightly flushed, and her hair, as usual, in a state of delightful,
crinkly disorder. Otherwise her appearance was immaculate, and, for all Sir
Charles could have told, she might have been in a costume of brocade and
lace. It was no more, however, than a faded blue and white homemade linen
over a petticoat of brown holland, with a small white muslin kerchief
crossed upon her breast. She was bareheaded, and the hair that had been
tossed into a thousand rebellious ringlets was tied back with a blue ribbon.
Deborah Travis, Sir Charles Fairfield's second cousin, and Madame Trevor's
first, was, at this time, seventeen years old, and not yet so pretty as she gave
promise of being—later. Nevertheless, Sir Charles' poorly concealed
devotion in her direction was a matter that was not discussed in the Trevor
family. The tongues of slaves, however, are seldom bridled among
themselves; and neat things upon this interesting topic were not infrequently
spoken round cabin-fires on cool evenings in the quarters.
The girl's cheeks grew pink as she answered, quietly, "Quite, thank you,
Sir Charles."
"Of course," she responded, reluctantly, and in a tone that finished the
topic.
There was a pause. The Governor's lieutenant was finding himself again.
"Will not you come in, Mistress Debby?" he said, finally. "Or may I come
out and walk in the garden a little with you?"
"Thank you, I shall come in. Breakfast is ready, but the rest are late."
"I was hunting for a plant—but I could not get it. I brought home some
young tobacco instead."
"Thank you, Sir Charles, but in a month I shall pluck it for myself, at the
end of the huckleberry path. 'Tis spotted hemlock. I found one, young yet,
but well-looking, which I shall gather as soon as 'tis big enough."
"Spotted hemlock! Child, 'tis rank poison! I'd a horse die of it once in—"
He broke off suddenly and turned about as Madam Trevor, with her
younger daughter, Lucy, rustled into the room. The elder lady looked rather
sharply from her nephew to her young cousin as she came in; but she could
read neither face. Sir Charles bowed with great respect, and Deborah gave
her usual demure courtesy for the morning. Lucy was a slight, pretty little
creature, with thin, silky dark hair, lively blue eyes, and a waist as trim as
Deborah's own. She greeted the two cousins with equal grace, but seemed to
prefer Deborah's company, drawing her a little on one side to show a
spindle-prick upon her finger. Their whispered conversation was interrupted
by the entrance of the master of the house, Madam Trevor's only son,
Vincent. He was a well-built, muscular fellow, a trifle short for his breadth of
shoulder, with the family's blue eyes, and hair so black that the powder but
badly concealed its hue. He greeted his mother with profound respect, lightly
kissed his little sister's cheek, and nodded to Deborah in a preoccupied
fashion. Then, joining Charles at the buffet, he proceeded to mix their first
potation of the day, two Venice glasses full of Jamaica rum, sugar, and water.
Both gentlemen drank to the health of Madam Trevor, who acknowledged
the usual courtesy with a slight nod, and then, seating herself at the head of
the table, drew towards her the platter of strawberries.
"We are not to wait for Virginia?" asked Vincent, taking his place.
Madam was about to reply when, from the little passageway beyond the
library, came the crisp rustle of stiff petticoats, and Virginia Trevor, the belle
of Annapolis, tall, fresh of complexion, unrouged, of slender figure, and
delicate patrician features, came smilingly into the room. The gentlemen
hastened to rise, and Sir Charles lifted back her chair.
"Thank you. Your pardon, madam, for being late. Amanda was very
slow."
"After your wakefulness of last night, I had not imagined that you would
attempt to rise this morning," answered her mother.
Virginia glanced at Lucy, and a half smile passed between them. It was
over before Madam Trevor perceived it.
"Debby was the sick one yesterday," observed Lucy, gently. "But you
seem to be quite recovered to-day," she finished, turning to her cousin, just
as Adam entered from the kitchen, bearing with him a platter of fried
chickens, crisply browned and smoking, while Lilith followed with hoe-cake
and bacon.
"I was not of the opinion, Virginia, that Deborah's illness resulted either
from rose-water or from cordial. And, as to the still-room, who enters it to
know how it may be kept?"
"Madam Trevor, I have never refused entrance to any one of the family
or the slaves who has wished to enter the room you gave me charge over!
Indeed, Lucy—"
Sir Charles Fairfield, though to all appearances he had not been listening
to the short conversation, flushed a little at the manner in which it was
ended, and, raising his voice, he addressed Vincent:
"Will you ride into town with me to-day? I've not waited on his
Excellency for a week. On my life! they give us an easy time out here!
Fancy a full-pay staff-officer at home, in camp, not seeing his colonel for a
week! I must really ride in to-day. Come with me, Vincent, and see what
idea there is of a chase next week."
Vincent poured out another tankard of quince-cider and slowly shook his
head: "'Tis not possible to-day, Charles. They are just beginning to top the
tobacco. I am going over all the farther fields with Thompson—and there are
three new blacks to be graded. If you'll go to-morrow, I'll ride with you; but
not to-day."
"Pa'don, Mas' Trev'!" cried a black boy, in house livery, who came
running in from the front. "Docta' Caw'l and Mist' Cawlve't outside on the'
ho'ses, an' say, can they come in?"
"Go to meet them and bring them here at once, Vincent," commanded
Madam Trevor, at the same time sounding a hand-bell for Adam and Lilith.
Vincent and Charles together hurried out of the room, while the ladies
drew more closely together at the table, and two extra places were laid.
"Bring some fresh chicken and hot bacon and hoe-cake at once, Adam;
and have Chloe fry some oysters and tap a barrel of apple-jack."
The slaves scurried away to the kitchen again as the sound of deep
masculine voices was heard in the library. The guests entered the breakfast-
room side by side, and the four ladies rose to greet them; Madam Trevor
first, with her daughters just behind her, and Deborah, with suddenly eager
eyes, a little to one side.
"And now, madam, young ladies, Sir Charles, and our host," cried the
doctor, in a hearty voice, "we are about to repay your hospitality with news,
excellent news, for every one of you!"
"Ah! Let us hear it, doctor!" cried Vincent, while the others murmured
assent.
"Well, then, for the ladies first! The Baltimore is in port, after a bad
voyage. She sailed from Portsmouth on the 20th of February. I was on the
south piers as she came to anchor. Her cargo—or part of it—is all for
feminine ears to hear. She has with her the last fashions from home, and the
material to reproduce them. There are paduasoys and lutestrings, and satins
and laces, and damasks and silverware, and cheynay and glass, and ribbons
and combs, and shoe-buckles and silk stockings, and most wonderful garters,
I'm told; and—"
"Nay, now, doctor, 'tis far enough!" cried Sir Charles; and the gentlemen
laughed.
"Well, then, there are those things, and more. And on the morrow, at ten
of the morning, there is to be a public sale on the docks off Hanover Street,
where he who has the wherewithal may buy. And I am bidden to ask you all
to ride in and spend what moneys you can wrest from Vincent's hands, and,
after, to come to my house, where Mistresses Letitia and Frances will serve
you with a fair widower's dinner. How now—what think you of my first
news, damsels?"
"'Tis what none in the world but you could bring, Dr. Carroll," replied
Madam Trevor, beaming graciously.
"And we may go, mother?" asked Lucy, voicing the anxiety of her more
dignified sister and her silent cousin.
"Come, come, girls! 'Tis our turn now! Surely, doctor, you do not
imagine us interested in sales of silk stockings and satins? What is the news
for us?" asked Vincent, with a slight smile.
Benedict Calvert laughed. "Troth, sir, 'tis not every man that is so
unfeignedly disdainful of silk stockings and satins, whether for his own attire
or for a lady's. Howbeit, there is other news that you may like to hear. In the
assembly yesterday the matter of the commissioners for Lancaster was
finally settled. Word has come from Virginia that the council will open on
the 25th of June. Our men will probably leave here on the 20th; and—"
"I am elected to go, devil take me!" cried Sir Charles, ruefully.
"No such luck. Do not bemoan thyself, Charlie. Not one of the
Governor's staff, and only one official—Marshe—is of the number,"
returned Benedict, grinning broadly. "'Twas a prudent choice. Not a Radical
on either side."
"That am I not," returned the doctor with eminent good-humor. "But Mr.
Calvert—the worshipful Mr. Calvert—is; and so are Phil Thomas, and the
Reverend Mr. Cradock, and Edmund Jennings, and Colvill, and—ah, yes!
Bob King. There, at least, is one Radical for you. Well, well! Even such as
they should manage, together with their right honorable compeers from
Virginia and Pennsylvania, to buy the right of our colonial lands from the
Six Nations—after a hundred and fifty years of occupancy willy-nilly!"
"Quite so. And now that's all our news, Madam Trevor. Does it equal the
breakfast?"
"Not quite all, seeking your pardon! But the other matter is for the ears
of Mistress Debby here, whom, if you will permit me, madam, I will, after
breakfast, attend to her sanctum—the still-room."
Deborah did not move. Her eyes dropped, and sharp-eyed Calvert
himself could not have guessed the eagerness hidden under her perfect mien.
"Deborah has been too much with her drugs of late, Dr. Carroll. I think it
were better if you talked with her on some healthier subject. I am not over-
fond of her ill-considered ways. They are morbid, much of the time."
"Ah, madam, I am sorry for that! I look forward to the consultations with
little Mistress Deborah as the happiest reminiscences of my professional
days—before I abandoned physic for merchandise. Your young cousin has
remarkable talent about it."
Madam Trevor shrugged her shoulders. "If you put it in that way, Dr.
Carroll, how can I refuse you your pleasure in coming to our plantation? If
'tis a question of talking with Deborah or not coming at all, why—Deborah
is all at your service."
"Come now, doctor, hurry on! Conduct the damsel to your physicking-
room, and I'll wait here. You forget that our road leads on to the Kings'."
"To be sure. Well, Debby, let us be off. I must see your manipulation of
the new retort."
Thereupon the doctor and his protégée, leaving the others still at table,
went together out of the glass door, down the path, across the yard, with its
great poplar-trees and the groups of pickaninnies playing, as usual, about the
high well-sweep, to a small building a trifle northeast of the cabins and half
hidden in great lilac bushes that clustered before its very door. This was
Deborah's sanctum, the still-room; and into it she and her companion retired.
The single room contained three large windows, through one of which
nodded a thick bunch of purple lilacs, heavy with perfume, and still damp
with dew. Along the windowless wall of the room ran a stout pine table, on
which, among various utensils, stood two chemist's retorts, one the old iron
alembic, the other Deborah's greatest treasure, a glass retort for which Dr.
Carroll had sent to Europe. In one corner stood the charcoal box, a tall, iron
brazier containing some smouldering coals, and a keg for water.
While Deborah built up her charcoal fire and carried the brazier to the
table, Carroll went over to a corner cupboard, opened its door, and looked in
upon the five shelves where, ranged in orderly rows, stood all the phials and
flasks that Deborah had been able to collect. Only a dozen or so contained
more or less muddy-looking liquids, and on each of these was pasted a paper
label covered with fine writing. One after another the doctor picked them up
and examined them.
"Aha!" he exclaimed, finally, taking the cork from one, and smelling the
cloudy mixture within. "Aha! You have it here! I thought so. Now, this is
precisely the thing that I should advise."
Deborah went over to him. "What! The monkshood? 'Tis a poor solution.
For want of pure alcohol, I had to use rum."
"No matter. Let us manipulate this a bit, Debby, instead of your tobacco
there. For this is necessary. And while we are distilling some pure aconitum
napellus, I will tell you a little story, and weave for you a prettier romance
than ever you did find in The Chyrurgien's Mate or old Galen's Art of
Physick, that once I found you with—or even the Whole Duty of Man, which
I swear you have not read."
"Yes, I have. But the story, Dr. Carroll! Was't the news you had for my
ears?"
"Even so, mistress. Now—careful with the body. We mustn't spill this—
where's your filter? That's it. A slow evaporation will be best. Can you fix
the other end? Good! You have a deft hand.
"Well, now, the tale runs this wise. You heard me say that I was at the
piers when the Baltimore came in this morning. I'm half-owner in her, and,
besides that, Croft is a very good friend of mine, and 'tis four months since
he sailed from here. He—the captain, Debby—came off from the ship in his
boat, looking a bit tired and haggard, and more glad to get home again than
ever I saw him before. They'd a nasty voyage, been short of water for a
week, and, besides that, he had a tale to tell about one of his passengers. At
Portsmouth only four came on board, one of them a young fellow, a
Frenchman, known to Lord Baltimore, who commended him to the care of
Croft. It appears that the young man is of the nobility and high up in Court
society at his home—Paris, I suppose. But, for some reason unknown, he
packed himself on board the Baltimore and sailed for a place certainly far
enough away from his friends and his people, whoever they are. Croft says
that it can't be an unlawful thing he's done to make him come away, for the
Lord Proprietary himself came down to the ship with him and tried to
persuade him to give up the idea of coming. I suggested to Croft that, if it
were not outlawry, love were the thing to send a man flying like a fool from
civilization; and Croft vows I hit it. This noble Marquis de something-or-
other, Croft said, mooned about the ship like a soul in purgatory for the first
weeks out, and thereupon he fell sick in good earnest. It seems he's been in a
raving fever now for days past, sometimes delirious, sometimes in coma.
He's talked overmuch, from what I can hear, about Lewis, the French King,
and a lot of madames, and a Henry—his rival, perhaps—and I don't know
what all.—See, there's the first vapor. Now 'twill be just right.—Well, Croft
said he must see this man safe off his hands and in some place where he
could be cared for, before he'd make report of the voyage. So, Debby, I sent
a black up to the ordinary of Mrs. Miriam Vawse, and she came down herself
to the wharf, just as they got the man ashore—de Mailly, his name is. By the
great Plutarch, Deb, he's the man for us! Never have I seen a creature in such
condition! I think he must have been well enough looking once. But now!—
He's a skeleton from fever. His face is shrunken and as bright as a hunting-
coat. His hair—'tis long and black—tangled into a mat; and his clothes, of
excellent make they are, hang about him like bags. He was conscious when
he landed, but I didn't hear him speak a single time as we drove him up the
hill and to the ordinary, where Mrs. Miriam is to care for him.
"Now, Deborah, here's my part of the tale for you. To-morrow, when you
come in town for the sale, after you dine with us at noon, I shall manage so
that you go down to the Vawse house and yourself see this fellow, judge his
symptoms, and administer this very stuff—that is coming out fine and clear
now—to him, in your own way. 'Twill be the best practice you could have;
you could scarce make the man worse; and 'twould be a grand thing, eh,
Deb, to accomplish such a cure as that?—My faith, you'll be having me
return to the profession in a year more! But hang me if I'd not be found a
better practitioner—with your assistance—than Richards, dispenser of
poisons that he is!"
"And so are we, Dr. Carroll," returned Deborah, soberly, as she carefully
watched the process of evaporation in the retort. "Indeed, I think that I like
better knowing the things that will kill than those that will cure."
"I think, sir, that madam never would permit it. 'Twould be a most highly
improper thing."
Deborah was silent for a long moment. Then she sighed. "I'm not
indifferent. And—and I'd dearly like to see a gentleman from Court—even
though it were only from the French Court."
"Only the French Court! Why, child, 'tis the greatest in the world—for
courtiers and gayety. What more would you have?"
Deborah had no time to make answer, for at that moment one of the
house-slaves came to the open door of the still-room.
"Beg pa'don, Mist' Cawlve't sen't' say the ho'ses a'e ready, an' does
doctah want dinne' at Mist' King's, o' is he goin' eat Miss Deb's dis—dis—
something I done fo'got what."
Carroll laughed. "Troth, Debby, Mistress Lucy must have been less
entertaining than usual this morning. I must go, I suppose.—Can you finish
this alone? You seem to know all the processes."
"I'll try to see that she does. Will you bring the aconitum to-morrow,
then?"
"Yes." Deborah smiled and courtesied.
The doctor bent over and kissed her hand with affectionate gallantry.
"Good-morning, Hygeia."
"Good-bye, sir."
"Till to-morrow. At the French Court, I believe, they say 'au revoir,'" he
added, mischievously, while the girl smiled. Then Carroll strode off, with
David at his heels, leaving Deborah alone at her favorite occupation,
wondering a little, in an absent-minded way, over the unusual event that her
somewhat eccentric mentor proposed to bring into her life.
Mr. Benedict Calvert, with the Trevor family clustered about him, stood,
riding-whip in hand, in the portico of the manor, in front of which, on the
driveway which curved out towards the river, were the two horses, Carroll's
and his, held by one of the stable-boys. Mr. Calvert was laughing and talking
blandly with Lucy and Sir Charles; but madam, with her elder daughter ami
Vincent, stood a little to one side, and annoyance was very plainly readable
in the face of the mistress of the house. The doctor, with a cheery smile,
came briskly round the corner of the east wing. It took but one glance to tell
him who had really called him from the still-room.
"No. Shall I call her? I left her in the preparation of a little matter which I
had requested of her. Pardon me. I did not know that I was taking her from
—" he made as if to go after her, when Vincent interposed.
"Don't trouble, doctor. She will be only too glad to finish what you
asked. Afterwards there will be time enough for the spinning, or the
weaving, or whatever is necessary."
Carroll thanked the young man with a little glance, and began at once
making his farewells. He perceived that the time for introducing the project
of Deborah's visit on the morrow was eminently unpropitious. Mr. Calvert
made graceful adieux to the ladies, lightly saluted the master of the house
and the Governor's lieutenant, and leaped upon his animal. A moment more
and the two were cantering away, side by side, still looking back to the
portico. When they were at length hidden by the bend in the road, Madam
Trevor turned to the two girls.
"Virginia and Lucy, go you both and overlook your wardrobes and the
linen in the press, and think out what is needed that we may buy at the sale
to-morrow. Deborah may help you when she comes in. Charles, you ride to
town, do you not? And, Vincent, I would have a moment with you before
you go to the fields."
The little party dispersed as it was bid, Vincent following his mother into
the house and to the west passage, where hung her garden hat, her lace
mittens, her basket, and her pruning-knife. Thus accoutred, she led the way
through the breakfast-room and out upon the terrace that overlooked the
fairest spot in Madam Trevor's world—her garden. Here she paused, her
eyes wandering for a moment over the scene about them, before she turned
to her son.
"True. And what has that to do with us?" inquired the young man in
some perplexity.
His mother sighed. "Vincent, I confess to anxiety. You are aware, I think,
of the reason of Charles Fairfield's colonial appointment? You know why he
sailed with you in the autumn when you came home to us to take your
father's place here? You know why he has made his home in our house
instead of in Annapolis with the other aides?"
"Certainly, madam, if you wish it. Shall I take them to-morrow to him?"
"No. Not till just before the ship's sailing. They are too valuable to leave
in a captain's cottage. This is what I had to say, Vincent. Go, now, to your
fields, if you wish."
Vincent bent over and kissed her hand. Then he started towards the
house. After half a dozen steps he halted suddenly and looked back, as
though he would have spoken. His mother, however, had descended the
terrace steps and was already bending over her flowers. So, after a little
pause, he turned about again and continued thoughtfully upon his way.
CHAPTER II
Deborah's bedroom was extremely small. It was merely one corner of the
west wing, partitioned off from the spinning-room and the great hand-loom;
and there was barely room in it for her bed, dressing-table, chest-of-drawers,
washstand, and two chairs. Besides these necessities, there were two
windows and a strip of carpet, to be regarded as luxuries. Deborah herself,
however, curtained the bed and windows after her own fashion, in white
India muslin, put a ruffled cover over the dressing-table, displayed what
ornaments she possessed prettily about the room, and so regarded it with
satisfaction ever after. Her two windows both looked out over the back of the
plantation, the flower-garden being directly below, the woods to one side,
the tobacco barns at a distance. The room underneath Deborah's, which
occupied the whole of the west wing on the ground floor, had been given to
Sir Charles; and in the passage that connected this with the main house were
the stairs.
When Deborah woke from her dreamless sleep on the morning after the
doctor's visit, the first active thought in her brain was of the dock sale for
that day. It was rather later than her usual hour of waking, and she hurriedly
began her toilet. Presently, however, as she was loosening her hair, her eyes
fell upon the bottle of aconitum napellus which she had brought to her room
after its preparation on the day before; and at sight of it her hands dropped to
her sides, and she stood still for a moment in contemplation. Then a little
shiver ran over her, and she performed something very like a shrug. "I don't
like sick people," she muttered to herself, turning to sit down before her
mirrored table.
If Deborah's words were quite honest, then certainly this morning she
was looking forward to the dock sale with unusual pleasure. She had never
before manifested any strong interest in these things. In fact, she had been
known to say that they were tiresome. Men did not much frequent them; no
young lady was allowed money to spend for herself; and the good
housewives were always more interested in table-linens and utensils than
ribbons or jewelry. Nevertheless, here, this morning, was Mistress Debby,
plying her hair with more interest than she had had for it since the last
assembly; and when it was all ringletted and quite smooth, she saw fit to use
upon it a white ribbon that had never before been worn. Also, when Lucy
cried at the door that she was to wear her blue lutestring petticoat and white
muslin overdress, those garments lay ready upon a chair, though once or
twice before, on like occasions, there had been some spirited conversation
between Deborah and Madam Trevor before the young lady was willing to
give up the perverse idea that her every-day holland was quite good enough
for such an affair. When she was ready, and the lace mittens taken from their
drawer, Deborah carefully placed her phial of distilled liquid in the neck of
her dress, pushing it out of sight among the ruffles of her kerchief.
At nine o'clock the family coach, with four ladies inside it, left the house.
Sir Charles, in scarlet and white, and Vincent, in bottle green, accompanied
the vehicle on horseback. Vincent was reconciled to leaving his fields by the
prospect of meeting some of the burgesses in the city and learning the details
of yesterday's election of commissioners; while the lieutenant never needed
strong urging to give a day to the mild amusements of the colonial town,
with its coffee-house, its feeble imitators of English beauship, its jockey
club, and what few pretty women were to be visited in the daytime. The
clock on St. Anne's was booming the half-hour as the coach crossed the
bridge over the inlet at the foot of Prince George Street; and here, in the last
house of the town, a quaint wooden cottage in the midst of a well-shaded
yard, dwelt Captain Croft of the Baltimore. At its gate Vincent, with a little
nod to his mother, stopped.
The aide shook his head. "Thanks, no. I'll go to the coffee-house with
Curtis and Belmont, if I do not dine at the Governor's. Are you coming to the
assembly later?"
"Yes. Till this afternoon, then," and Vincent dismounted at the gate,
while the coach, with its single cavalier, all unconscious of the significance
of Vincent Trevor's errand, went on again. At the new Bladen Street Sir
Charles turned off towards the Governor's "palace," while the vehicle kept
on towards the water-side.
Hanover Street was thronged with coaches and conveyances of all kinds,
bringing in people from the country, while the ladies, and a few gentlemen
of the city, picked their way on foot to the wharf. Every one was known to
the Trevors, and madam and Virginia had their heads out of the windows
continually, bowing and speaking to those whom they passed; while Lucy
was now on one side, now on the other, peeping out with a covertly
expectant air; and Deborah watched her, knowing very well what she sought,
and knowing also that it would not be found.
Virginia saw her sister's restlessness with displeasure. She said nothing
till they left the coach, but when at last they had alighted at the crowded
dock, Miss Trevor took occasion to whisper into Lucy's ear:
"Lucy, had John Whitney seen you looking for him this morning, he
would, I think, scarce have been overpleased with the manner of it."
And Deborah's eyes chancing to fall on the younger girl's face, saw her
cheeks grow scarlet and her eyes fall with quick mortification.
The sight which met the eyes of the new-comers at the wharves was one
curious enough for a person of to-day. The broad wooden pier, at which were
fastened a dozen or so of pinnaces and small boats belonging to folk who
had come from far up the river or down the bay, had been converted for the
time into a mart. All up and down, in regular lines, it was dotted with little
platforms of wood, which were covered with articles taken from the ship and
arranged here for sale, on the day and night before, by salesmen hired for the
purpose from the various town shops.
The goods were the selection of London men who had made life studies
of the colonial trade, and who knew, moreover, the various tastes of the
various localities, north, south, tide-water, and inland. Certainly there was
variety to be had here. Down one side of the dock were set forth on their
platforms every possible household contrivance, with a good deal of
furniture, and enough kitchen utensils, china and glass, to have set up a
dozen ordinaries. Along the centre of the pier were materials, ready-
fashioned garments, fine damasks that could not be made at home, and fancy
articles of dress and the toilet. About these there hovered, throughout the
day, a fair sprinkling of gentlemen, pricing scarlet and gold-laced coats, silk
stockings, ruffles, and perfumed pomades with great interest. The third row
of booths held agricultural implements, tools, coarse materials, such as felt
and leather, together with a few books and papers.
When Madam Trevor, with the three girls, arrived at the pier, all
aristocratic damedom seemed to be about the silks and damasks. Now, while
carrying on a lively conversation with Mistresses King, Paca, Cradock, and
Chase, Madam Trevor busily priced tabby silk petticoats and India muslins,
of which she selected very pretty pieces for her daughters and Deborah. Mrs.
Chase was casting longing glances at a satin bodice that Mistress Harwood
held in her hands. But, as the two ladies did not speak, owing to the upper
story of the Harwood house, there seemed to be but small hope of attaining
to possession thereof.
"What monstrous pretty cloaks!" cried Mrs. King, turning over a pile of
short capes of crimson, blue, and white.
"'Tis too near summer now to purchase cloth," rejoined Mrs. Cradock,
pursing her lips regretfully as she held one up.
"They are but two guineas, madam; of the latest cut; will continue in
England just so for the space of five years—will wear longer than that,"
observed the salesman casually, with alluring indifference.
"I declare I'll take this blue one! It is of the most excellent texture, and
'tis always cool on the river in the evening."
"No, thank you, madam. I have cloaks and to spare. With your
permission, I will go look at the fans farther up. My last was broken at the
Masons' rout."
"You may look at them, and I will join you presently. This crimson cape
will suit Deborah. Would you like this, Debby?" She turned about to find
only Lucy at her side.
"On the other side of the pier, I think. Shall I call her?"
Lucy turned about and started to wend her way among the groups to the
other side of the dock, where Deborah stood over a little collection of
chemists' implements. Beside her, a sacred book in his hand, was a young
man, at sight of whom Lucy hesitated, her face crimson, her heart beating
unsteadily. She stopped almost still for a moment to watch them. Deborah
was lovingly handling a siphon, while the young Puritan minister talked to
her. Presently he caught sight of Lucy, who was constrained to move towards
him again when she perceived the quick light that came into his face and the
bow that he made. Deborah turned, and her mouth twitched a little as she
perceived her cousin's fluttering nervousness. "Master Whitney was
speaking of you, Lucy," she said.
"I did myself the honor to inquire after the health of you and Mistress
Virginia," said the young divine, embarrassment and pleasure adding a load
of stiffness to his manner.
"Oh, thank you!—As you see—we are very well.—Debby," she added,
reluctantly, "mother wants you at once to see if you would like a crimson
cloak.—I am so sorry—I mean—"
Lucy heard her, however. "I'll ask, if you like, Debby, and then, perhaps,
we may return and purchase it."
"I was just about to leave the wharf, having found the book I sought.
May I accompany you to Madam Trevor and pay my compliments to her?"
The crimson cloak was purchased, the siphon was not; Master Whitney
took a reluctant leave of little Mistress Trevor; and her mother, accompanied
by Mrs. Paca, started to rejoin Virginia over the fans.
"Surely, Antoinette, you'll scarce return home before dinner to-day. Will
you not drive up from here and take pot-luck—just a cold joint—with us?"
"Thank you for us all, vastly, Barbara, but we are bespoken by Dr.
Carroll. You're most kind."
"I am sorry. I declare I had thought to see the doctor here to-day, but he's
not been near the dock."
The four ladies alighted from their vehicle, leaving behind them, to the
care of the black footboy, a large number of bundles brought from the sale.
Their host handed Madam Trevor sedately up the walk and into the house,
where now Mistress Lettice Carroll, his sister, and Frances Appleby, his
sister-in-law, both in starched and flowered paragon, with powdered locks
atop of demure, quaint little heads, stood in the doorway to welcome the
guests. When the ladies had removed their head-gear and scarfs up-stairs
they returned to the drawing-room where, it being near the hour for dinner,
young Charles Carroll and Father St. Quentin awaited them with the doctor.
Madam Trevor, Virginia, and Deborah greeted the priest with reverent
friendship, for every Sunday they attended the mass which he performed in
the Carroll chapel, where the few families of the old faith in Annapolis were
accustomed to congregate; and, besides this, he had been kind enough to
give some instruction to the Trevor girls and Deborah in the art of
conversing in the French language. But Lucy hung uneasily back in the
presence of Père Aimé, till he himself went forward and gave her a few
gentle and impersonal words of greeting. Madam Trevor, beside Mistress
Lettice, cast an annoyed glance at her daughter, but nothing was said on the
subject. When Deborah, however, left St. Quentin's side, the doctor placed
himself in her way and managed to ask, in a lowered voice, as she passed
him:
And the girl nodded, gravely, "Yes." The next instant she was seized
upon by young Charles, who regarded her less as a piece of femininity than
some pretty thing, excellent to talk to, and a very good walker, produced by
a beneficent nature for his especial benefit. They had wandered over to the
window together, speaking of a forthcoming sail up the river, when
Deborah's attention was caught by the voice of St. Quentin, who was
addressing the doctor on an interesting topic.
"If it would not displease you, sir," St. Quentin had begun, "I should like
to give Charles an hour's holiday this afternoon."
"And so, thy curiosity being roused by the dame's, thou canst not wait
thy visit till after vespers, eh?" And the doctor laughed.
"Seeing that it is a case of distress on the part of one of my countrymen, I
would go at the first opportunity, on whatever pretence," returned the father,
calmly.
"Well, then, you shall be off directly we finish dinner," answered Carroll,
devoutly imploring Providence to come to his aid. "And—"
Come back! Yes, there must be a coming back. Dr. Carroll, however, was
rubbing his satin knee in an ecstasy of good-humor; and Deborah herself,
who, after a respectful bow to Madam Trevor, had shot one swift glance at
the doctor, felt, as she returned to her conversation with young Charles, a
curious quiver of the heart which she afterwards decided to have been one of
the most delightful sensations ever known. A moment later Mrs. Appleby,
who had left the room several moments before, entered with a little courtesy
to announce dinner.
"As a matter of fact," confessed the doctor, willing to tell what he knew
of the matter now, "it was I who sent him up to Mistress Vawse. I went down
yesterday directly the ship was in, and, Croft having told me of the fellow, I
got to see him. Faith, he was in a most execrable way! And besides, from
what I could guess from his manner, and what Croft told me, he was a
gentleman of rank. 'Twould have been pitiable enough to have had him die
there on the docks; so I packed him, with my compliments, his box, and my
black, up to Miriam, who had him in excellent shape when I went there this
morning."
"Charles, really, you are monstrous disagreeable," ventured Mrs. Lettice,
gently. "Why did you not bring the poor man here? I vow Miriam Vawse can
never manage alone, and—"
"Nay, Lettice, he is too young for thee. Ten years ago 'twould have been
a pretty enough romance, but—"
"La! 'Twill be as bad for him as the time I had at the last assembly ball,
when at supper I sat by old Master Randal, who cannot hear thunder, while
on the other side was Carleton Jennings, who had next him Lora Colvill,
that's to marry him in the autumn."
"And where was Sir Charles Fairfield?" queried little Mrs. Appleby, with
unfortunate would-be slyness.
"Miss Travis, my curiosity still burns. Will you take pity upon it and
accompany me as soon as you can down to the ordinary?"
"I will come at once, if Madam Trevor permits," was the reply.
"Yes, get your hat and scarf, Deborah. In half an hour the coach will be
here to drive us home. If the doctor will excuse your presence, you need not
come back. We will stop for you on the way. You can wait in the sitting-
room if Mistress Vawse is much occupied; for you would not, of course, go
up-stairs."
Madam Trevor made the last remark in a tone that required no answer.
Deborah merely courtesied and ran away for her hat; and, while the five
ladies returned to the parlor, Dr. Carroll laid his hand on the priest's arm and
said a few words to him in a low tone. St. Quentin raised his brows slightly,
but gave no further sign of surprise. Then, as young Charles came loitering
up, his father took possession of him, fearing that he might propose to
accompany Deborah to the tavern. Five minutes later the priest and the
young girl were on their way, Deborah with the warm phial, filled with her
extract, pressing close over her steady heart.
St. Quentin spoke but once. "Dr. Carroll tells me that at his request you
are to see this Frenchman," he observed, looking down at her; but he saw no
sign of interest in her face as she answered, briefly:
"Yes."
As the two approached the quaint little building, with the small,
swinging sign of "ordinary" over the door, its mistress, looking out of the
window of the sick-room, witnessed the approach of her visitors. She ran
quickly down-stairs to meet them, leaving her patient for the moment alone.
Claude was lying perfectly still on his clean colonial bed, conscious of
nothing about him, vaguely feeling the change of air, perhaps, and the
improvement of his surroundings over those of the dismal ship's cabin. But
he was burning with fever, and, though the tossing of the vessel had got him
into the habit of being still, he yet talked incessantly in his own language,
while his wide-open eyes, roving aimlessly as they did, noted everything
about him, and changed it into some familiar object of his rooms "at home."
He saw Mistress Vawse leave the window, and cried after her anxiously:
"N'oubliez pas, chère Marquise, que vous m'avez promis le deuxième
menuet!"
Then, through the stillness, came the murmur of voices from below. For
an instant he listened intently. "Henri—tu es tard. Quelle heure est-il? Hein?
Mesquin! Est-ce que votre Victorine est enfin moins cruelle?" Footsteps
sounded on the stairs, but the sick man turned away his head impatiently.
"Ne faites pas un tel bruit. Ma foi! J'ai une tête! Apportez-moi de l'eau,
Chaumelle.—Ventre bleu!"
Claude sat suddenly up in bed with a new vision before his eyes. Very
distinctly he beheld, entering the room, far in advance of his Marquise, and a
step or two before some abbé, a floating picture of blue and white, with
delicate ruffles, a matchless throat, grave bluish eyes, and hair neither dark
nor light falling in confusion about two slender shoulders. More and more
intently he sat and gazed, while his scattered senses strove at last to adjust
themselves, and his breath came rapidly through his parted lips. Deborah, St.
Quentin, and Miriam Vawse had stopped still, just as they entered the room.
Deborah's eyes fell upon the rapt look of de Mailly, and were held
spellbound. She scarcely saw what he was like, what were the color of the
eyes she looked into, nor was she conscious of any part in the scene till
Aimé St. Quentin quietly laid a hand upon her arm. She quivered and turned
her head, till she beheld the priest's face. Then, suddenly realizing where she
was, she passed her hand over her forehead and stepped slowly back, while
the father, with an unreadable expression, advanced to the bedside, and
Mistress Vawse, unable to comprehend just why she had stopped so long at
the door, came into the room.
"CLAUDE SUDDENLY SAT UP IN BED"
"You've some medicine, Miss Debby, the doctor told me," she said,
going to the girl's side.
At the same moment Claude dropped back upon his pillows, muttering,
with dry lips: "Du vin, Armand—pour l'amour de Dieu—du vin!"
"Ay. There's fresh water and a tankard here," responded Mistress Vawse,
hurrying over to a small stand in one corner, where stood a pewter pitcher
and mug.
"Then let me have the cup for a moment," said the girl, in a low voice,
taking from her breast the little bottle of brownish liquid. Into the water
which Dame Miriam brought, Deborah, with a steady hand, poured five
drops of the aconitum napellus. "Now, make him take it—all," she said,
recorking the phial.
St. Quentin took the cup and pressed it to the lips of de Mailly, who was
still groaning with thirst. He drained the draught eagerly and lay back on his
pillows murmuring thanks and closing his eyes for the first time since early
morning. The priest, attracted by his manner and his face, lifted a chair to the
bedside and sat down. Deborah, after looking at him once again, drew a long
breath, and moved over to the window, when Miriam touched her arm.
"Leave the medicine here and come with me, Miss Debby, till I show
you some of his things."
"What things? Wait. You must know about this, first. Never give him
more than four drops in half a cup of water—and that not too often—twice a
day, I think."
"Mercy on us! I'll be careful, then. But come, now, to the best room.
There I've laid some of his things that were all rumpled with bad packing.
My faith! Such satins and laces you never did see, and linen—as fine as your
India muslin—and shoe-buckles!" With which information good Miriam led
the way on tiptoe from the room, Deborah, half reluctantly, half eagerly,
following her.
Across a narrow passage-way on the other side of the house was the
"best bedroom" of the little old inn. Here, upon the high bed, carefully
covered from the sun and any stray atom of dust with a clean linen sheet, lay
half of Claude's wardrobe. As Mistress Vawse threw the cover aside
Deborah uttered a little exclamation. Before her were the two court-suits of
pink and white satin, with their delicate silver and silken embroidery, their
elaborate waistcoats, point-lace ruffles, and silk stockings. Beside them lay
orderly little piles of red-heeled slippers with paste buckles, linen shirts, a
jewelled scabbard, two or three pins of diamonds, of which neither woman
guessed the value, some rings, a white, three-cornered hat, two wigs, and an
ivory snuff-box, in whose cover was the miniature of a woman, surrounded
with pearls.
There was a silence as the two colonial women stood over the courtier's
wardrobe, in this little bedroom of the far new world. Then again Deborah
said, more to herself than to her companion:
"Oh, Miss Debby! Have you forgot Madam Trevor's wedding satin, with
the veil and train? And the brocade she wore to the Governor's ball?"
But the girl shook her head impatiently. "Madam has nothing in the cedar
chest so wonderful as this," she answered, lifting up a ruffle of Venice lace,
as delicate as frost upon a window-pane. She looked at it lovingly for a long
moment, and was about to replace it, when her eye fell on something which
had lain beneath. It was a white kid glove, its back embroidered in tarnished
gold and set with little blue stones, while in the centre of the arabesques was
a crest, also in gold, unstudded. The girl turned it over, mechanically. Yes,
there was something on the palm—the painting of a man's face and
shoulders, a handsome face, if distorted a little by the brush; the face of a
man comparatively young, something dull of expression, with a pair of great,
sapphire blue eyes, and curling locks of bright gold tied loosely back, but
unpowdered.
Deborah raised her eyes till they met those of Mistress Vawse.
"No, Miss Debby. When I took off his old suit yesterday, I found that
glove pinned to his shirt on the left side, over—"
"His heart."
Mistress Vawse nodded. The glove dropped from Deborah's hand, and
Father St. Quentin suddenly appeared at the door.
"The coach is coming, Deborah. Have you told Mistress Vawse of the
cherries yet?"
The father smiled. "Luck is against my practice of French for the day, I
fear. I must come to-morrow. It may be Mistress Deborah's medicine. He is
sleeping like a child."
CHAPTER III
The Plantation
It was nearly four weeks since the Baltimore had set sail on her return
voyage to England. The June days were flying. Peach-blossoms had long
since fallen; cherries were daily reddening; and the turkeys had been turned
into the tobacco fields for their annual feast off the insect life so destroying
to young plants. In nine days more the commissioners from Annapolis were
to make their departure for Lancaster in Pennsylvania, for the purpose of
settling the long-delayed matter of purchasing charter rights from the
Indians. It was, moreover, a Monday afternoon, and very warm, when
Virginia Trevor came languidly up from the rose-garden towards the wide
and shady portico of the house. In her hand she held two magnificent red
roses, which she now and then raised to her face, they being in perfect
contrast to her white gown and petticoat of palest yellow.
The portico was furnished in the fashion of a room, for in summer the
family were inclined to spend more time there than in the house. Upon it
now, in one of the comfortable chairs that surrounded a wicker table, sat the
solitary occupant of the portico—Sir Charles. He had been here for an hour
or so, ever since dinner was over, half awake, bored, wishing for amusement,
but without energy to go in search of it. On Virginia's approach he rose,
bowed, and went to the edge of the porch to hand her up.
"Thank you," she said, smiling a little. "It was a condescension. You look
very sleepy."
"Troth, you are in a bad way," responded the young lady, seating herself
at the table and taking therefrom a reticule which held some silken knitting-
work.
There was a pause before Fairfield observed, idly, "My aunt's roses must
be highly successful this year."
"And are you going to be so selfish as to keep the two of them, when not
even one is needed to complete your beau—"
"Take both the flowers if you like"—she tossed them over to him—"but
forbear any remarks on my appearance. I—I am not in the mood."
The young lady shrugged her shoulders. "In no way at all. This is a
Monday. Have you never noticed that I am always vaporish on Mondays?"
"No, I had not noticed. Oh! as I remember it! Tell me, what did you think
yesterday of M. de Mailly? Is't the first time you have seen him?"
"Yes. And I think him a gentleman, and that his English accent is good.
He looked rather pale. For the rest—why should I think of him at all, since
his eyes are only for Deborah?"
"Several times. Didn't you know? Carroll told me 'twas her doses—
medicines—that probably saved his life."
"Ah! So that is what has made her so eager over Miriam Vawse."
Virginia gazed thoughtfully out among the trees towards the river, of which a
flashing glimpse was now and then to be caught through the feathery foliage.
"I thought you knew, cousin, or I would not have spoken. There was no
wrong in the matter. Only Deborah is peculiar. She—"
"Oh, have no fear! I will not speak of the matter. But—I am not too fond
of Deborah Travis; therefore I say nothing of her affairs. It might be better
for her if I did."
"I think not," he answered, coolly. "Hark! There is some one coming up
the road. Do you hear the beat of the hoofs?"
"Yes."
At that moment Jim, the groom from the stables, came running to the
portico, and stood there expectantly facing the road, down which the sound
of horses' hoofs was becoming plainly audible.
"Mas' Thompson shout f'um road, minute ago, dat Mistah Rockwell
ridin' up."
"Oh—Mr. Rockwell!" Virginia rose with a cold expression settling over
her face, and Sir Charles shrugged indifferently as the visitor came in sight
and presently halted his mare at the portico.
"Vincent is in the fields, Mr. Rockwell. I will have him sent for."
"Pray do not do so, my dear young lady. I would not for the world put
you to such trouble. No doubt he will be in later. I will see madam, your
mother, first. If you could tell me where I may find her—"
"Will you step into the parlor, please? If Sir Charles will excuse me, I
will call my mother at once."
The lieutenant bowed politely, and the two passed into the house, leaving
Fairfield to sit down again with another shrug at the interruption that left him
once more to his boredom. Presently, to his mild surprise, he perceived
young Charles Carroll hurrying through the shrubbery in the distance, across
the road.
"Carroll! Oh, Carroll!" shouted Fairfield; but, if the boy heard him, he
made no reply, merely quickening his pace a little till he was out of sight.
As a matter of fact, young Charles did not want to hear. It was for
Deborah that he had come to the plantation, and he was going to seek her in
the spot where she was most likely to be found. Having happily escaped the
continued notice of Sir Charles, he reached the back of the Trevor house, and
there came upon the object of his search, seated, Turk-fashion, by the still-
room door, surrounded by a group of black, wide-eyed pickaninnies, to
whom she had been telling ghost-stories in their own dialect. It was one of
her favorite forms of amusement when she was a little lonely; and the small
mental effort required in concocting the endless tales was more than
compensated for by the unwavering devotion to her of every black imp on
the place. It was no great acquisition, perhaps, to one's acquaintance, but it
was one of Mistress Travis' pleasures, and one not yet forbidden by Madam
Trevor.
"SURROUNDED BY A GROUP OF PICKANINNIES"
Young Carroll was close upon her before he was perceived; and when
she beheld his expression, she burst into so sudden a peal of laughter that her
audience jumped in terror, imagining it to be the latest demoniacal
accomplishment of the ghost. At sight of Master Carroll, however, they
realized that their afternoon was over, and all but one ran off to the quarters.
This small fellow, Sambo by name, aged five, elegantly clad in a brown
holland shirt that was many shades lighter than his skin, clung to Miss
Debby's arm, pleading for more; for he was court favorite, and might do as
he chose.
"I'm so glad you've come, Charles," she said, holding out a hand, which
he clasped and shook as he might a man's.
She laughed. "No. There now, Sambo, run away. No, I can go without
asking her."
Very gently Deborah put away the child who still clung to her skirts, and
started off, beside her companion, towards the river. Virginia and Sir
Charles, from the portico, saw them pass the shrubbery. Fairfield repressed
an exclamation. He would have given much to have been in the boy's place;
and Virginia, catching a glimpse of his face, knew it, but was silent.
Deborah had stopped short in her walk. "He there!" she cried, looking
anxiously at her rumpled dress, knowing that her hair was all awry, and
beginning to pull down the sleeves that were rolled to her shoulders. "Oh,
you might have told me! How could you have let me come looking so?"
"You didn't mind me, though," returned Charles, not over-pleasantly.
"Come, let the sleeves stay up, and don't bother with your hair. You're a
thousand times prettier so, if that's what you want."
Deborah looked up at the boy with a little, mischievous smile. "I know
that I'm better so. That's why I let it stay—for you," she said; and Charles,
near enough to manhood to make the inference, had a momentary impulse to
fall then and there at her feet. He did not guess, however, why the added
color had come into Deborah's cheeks, or that there was a quick tremor at
her heart as they approached the boat.
The wharf belonging to the Trevor place was hidden from the house by
the foliage of the peach-orchard on the river-bank. Claude de Mailly, waiting
in the little pinnace, beheld the two figures approaching him among the
trees, and made his way along the bowsprit that he might help the young girl
into the boat. He bowed gravely as she came along the pier, regarding her
dishevelment of attire in surprise as well as admiration. It was but yesterday
noon that he had seen her in very different state, and had thought her
charming then. But now—! She accepted his proffered hand, and stepped
carefully past the boom and down into the pinnace, though Charles had
never seen her do such a thing before. Usually she leaped past him and was
at the tiller before he could cast the painter off.
"The river; and let us beat up along the other shore. 'Tis prettier."
Deborah obediently ducked her head, but Claude, not understanding the
observation, and being turned from the canvas, sat still as the heavy boom
swung over. Charles shouted, and Deborah seized his arm, pulling him down
just in time. When they were under way again, de Mailly sat straight and
looked curiously at the sail.
"Ma foi comme j'étais bête!" he observed, smiling at the girl, who
returned his glance. The incident had broken the little stiffness of her
manner, a fact which the Frenchman perceived with relief. "You saved my
unfortunate head another blow, Mistress Travis. I thank you for it."
"I am glad that I saw you," she answered. "Charles and I have both been
knocked over with it. One does not always see."
"Humph! It seemed half a day to me. There, are we near enough the bank
now?"
"Yes. Let her out, and run free with the wind."
A more perfect afternoon the gods never contrived. The sun was by this
time well on its descent, the west was a glare of glory, and the whole river
caught its reflection and poured an endless golden ripple along the shores,
upon whose deep velvet turf the yellow shadows were lengthening. From the
bay, eastward, came a stiff salt breeze that stirred the lazy June air till it had
revealed every flower-breath in the land, and was as rich as only June air can
be. Farther up, the river narrowed and twined between its banks till Charles
was obliged to tack in order to catch the wind. For the most part the shores
were wooded and still; but every now and then came an opening through
which one caught the glimpse of a red brick house with white windows and
pillared portico gleaming through a mist of birch or willow branches.
Occasionally a gull, just in from the ocean, would dart, arrow-like, into the
water, churning it white with his dive, to reappear presently, holding a
captive fish, scales flashing in the light, fast in his beak.
Deborah was cold, with a cold which the summer sun had no power to
warm. But she had not found that chill in the salt, eastern wind. She knew
and understood but half that was taking place this afternoon. She had waited
for its like, without knowing what it might be, for a long time. Sir Charles
had brought her something that emanated merely from himself; but here, at
once, in the first glance ever given her by this other, while he had raved in
fever, was all that she had dreamed of, and infinitely more. Had it been some
weight that was crushing out her heart, she could only have opened wide her
arms and fiercely welcomed it. It was not all de Mailly either, she thought,
vaguely, as she felt Charles move the tiller. It was the whole day, the place,
the sunlight, the river, even the imperturbable Carroll, who was silent for the
sake of the air, and the water beneath the keel of his boat. The Severn was
still swollen from heavy spring rains, and the shallows of later summer were
covered now. Young Carroll presently ran the pinnace so close to the high
north bank that a willow, growing in the water, sent out one pale, feathery
arm that brushed Claude's head in passing. Deborah watched a long leaf
draw over his neck, just below the ear. Taking the bough as it reached her,
she pressed it half unconsciously to her forehead, looking up to find de
Mailly smiling into her eyes. But when they emerged from the shadows he
was looking beyond her, down the river, though the smile lingered still about
his lips. Charles Carroll did not notice the incident. He was thinking of his
pretty feat in steersmanship.
"Well, Deb," he said at last, "if I'm to get home for supper, we'll have to
come about."
"The most beautiful spot in the world—and seen with the most charming
companions," returned the Count, bowing towards Deborah, but moving up
to the high side as they came into the wind.
Deborah knew instantly that their afternoon was over, and she was
chagrined that she had allowed him to be weary of her. Pushing Charles from
the tiller, she suddenly took his place.
"There, now you shall rest, or unfasten the sheet and manage that while I
wake myself up!" she said. And young Charles obediently moved up beside
Claude and took unto himself the management of the sail, while Deborah,
sitting straight to the freshening wind, shook herself out mentally, and
fastened her thoughts upon the tiller. Now, indeed, as she brought the boat so
close into the wind that the water swirled gently over the low side, de Mailly
turned towards her again. He was willing to be upset if she liked; but he did
not care to have an accident occur because he had made her absent-minded.
Deborah, however, was not thinking of him at all. Her skilful hand was
making the little vessel fly, and there would be no false moves on her part.
When they came about upon the second tack the sail flapped for but one-
quarter of a second. As it filled with a puff, the little yacht fairly leaped
ahead.
"Jack me, Deb, if that wasn't the prettiest turn I ever saw!" cried young
Charles, as he manipulated the sheet.
"'Twas half you, Charlie. I must have let her go had you not brought her
up just at the right instant."
"And did Mistress Deborah learn the management of a boat under you,
sir?" asked Claude.
Claude settled back and tried to bring his mind to other subjects; but for
the moment Deborah had completely fascinated him. He could do nothing
better than compare her to all those other women to whom she was indeed
incomparable, to try to fathom the many expressions he had seen in her eyes,
and seek to determine which was the normal one. And so they left behind the
upper windings of the river and neared at last the wharf of the Trevor place.
The sun hung low over the tree-tops as Deborah stepped from the boat and
held out her hand to Charles.
"I trust, Mistress Travis, that it will not be the last in which I shall be
permitted to join you?" put in Claude, hastily, as she courtesied to him, and
would have been off.
"I trust not; but the pinnace is not mine. It is with Charles and Dr. Carroll
that you must plead."
So, with that small politeness, Deborah turned towards the shore,
wondering a little why she should have finished so perfect an afternoon in
annoyance with herself and those who had been her companions. She passed
slowly up through the orchard and across the road at the top of the bank. The
plantation grounds seemed utterly deserted. The family must be at supper.
Through the trees she caught a glimpse of the empty portico. Hurrying a
little, she went close to the doorway of a small, vine-covered arbor which
was but rarely used. Nevertheless, to-night, as she passed it, there came the
sound of muffled sobs from within. Deborah halted, hesitated for an instant,
and then entered the little place. Inside it was dusky, but she perceived at
once the glimmer of something white in a corner.
The figure stirred, and perhaps made some attempt to reply; but the only
result was another hoarse sob.
"Lucy! Lucy! what is it?" cried her cousin, running to her quickly. "Nay,
now, pray don't cry so! Is't only Mr. Calvert's going with the commissioners,
so that you mayn't have him to take you to Master Whitney's church? Listen!
Virginia told me she'd go herself with you there."
"Oh, Debby dear, no, it's not that at all now," came more quietly.
"What, then? Try and tell me about it, Lucy. See, you are all crumpled
up. Come out of this horrid place, and tell me about it. Come, now—come."
It was seldom that Lucy Trevor would have refused such persuasion, for
she was a gentle little thing, and loved to be led. Now, however, she resisted
all Deborah's kindly efforts to help her to rise, and only crouched closer in
her corner, shaking with grief. Finally Deborah knelt and took the little
dishevelled figure in her arms. Lucy had clung to her for a second, when a
new voice interrupted them.
Virginia stood in the doorway. Lucy made no answer, but Deborah said:
"Lucy's here, Virginia. What has happened?"
The elder daughter of the Trevors came forward and stood looking down
at the two figures on the ground. "The Reverend George Rockwell has asked
for Lucy's hand. She should be most proud. Come, Lucy, supper is standing,
and the wedding's not till to-morrow. Why do you bear yourself like a child?
Good God, Lucy, do you fancy a woman ever gets the man she loves?"
CHAPTER IV
Annapolis
The commissioners left Annapolis for Lancaster on the 18th day of June,
which was three days earlier than had been originally planned. After their
departure Governor Bladen sighed with relief, packed up his black satins and
official orders, and hied him to his country-place to recuperate for the fall
sessions. By the 1st of July Annapolis was deserted. All of the old families
had gone to their summer houses up the river or down the bay, and it was
remarked that Dr. Carroll, who chose to stay in town, and Rockwell, whom
he sincerely hated, must bear each other company through the summer. But
Dr. Charles was not yet reduced to the companionship of a Church-of-
England clergyman. He had taken an immense fancy to Claude de Mailly, of
whom he saw as much as Claude would let him. Indeed, he had given the
Frenchman more than one invitation to leave the tavern of Miriam Vawse to
make a permanent abode in his own house, and could not quite understand
why he had been refused. But Claude was well satisfied where he was; and
had there the indispensable feeling of independence. Few guests ever came
to the little tavern after the close of the spring assembly; and, when an
occasional traveller did stop overnight, monsieur ate in his room, went to the
coffee-house, or remained to make acquaintance of the stranger, as he chose.
On sailing for the English colonies it had been Claude's idea to travel
through them, when he arrived, as rapidly as possible, courting what
adventure and danger he could, and to keep his thoughts enough occupied to
crush, as best he might, his hopeless homesickness. But, after living in
Annapolis for a week, he found that it might be a very endurable thing to
exist in Annapolis for a year. The air was different, in this new land. New
thoughts and new occupations had come, after his illness, and he ended at
last by making a very pleasant salute to the Fate which had cast his lines in
these places, determining to take the goods which the gods and Miriam
Vawse provided (at moderate cost), and remain in the little city till
discontent again knocked upon his door. Certainly, he was not lonely.
Through Dr. Carroll and Vincent Trevor he had made acquaintance with
every gentleman, young or old, in the town. They received him extremely
well, though, it must be confessed, some of them balked at his title. "Bah!
Every Frencher's a count!" he heard Mr. Chase cry out one morning at the
market, and thereafter he requested to be presented simply as M. de Mailly
to what men he chanced to meet. Through the influence of Sir Charles he
had been given the freedom of the coffee-house, which was really the
gentlemen's club; and he was asked to the last assembly of the season, which
had taken place just before the departure of the commissioners, and which he
did not attend.
"What the—oh yes! Ha! ha! ha! Oh yes! You're after Lucy. To be sure, I
recollect. Lucy! Well, George, I wish you well—you know that. But she
won't have you."
"Won't have me?—Um. Madam Trevor has all but promised her."
"The more fool Madam Trevor.—Oh, I beg pardon. No offence, sir. But,
as I hear, the affections of the lady in question are already engaged."
"Still, I have observed that she attends your rival's church," remarked Sir
Charles, maliciously.
The rector emptied a glass. "If you'd but help me there," he said.
"Since Benedict Calvert left the city 'tis Mistress Virginia, your future
wife, who takes her sister to the Puritan meetings. Now, Fairfield, if you—if
you would be so monstrous obliging as to speak a word to your young lady
in—ah—my favor, I'd be forever beholden to you."
"The name? There's only one woman's name in the world," cried Sir
Charles, dramatically, a little overbalanced with the sangaree. "Deborah!
Deborah! Deborah! 'Tis she, the fairest petticoat in the colony. D'ye hear?"
Sir Charles sat him down in a chair and sighed. It was a true love-sigh,
such as there could be no mistaking in those days. "I love her to distraction,"
was his inadequate observation.
"Now I wonder," reflected the rector, aloud, "I wonder if, in such case,
distraction and marriage are terms synonymous?" He lifted his head,
scratched his large neck delicately with his finger-nail, and regarded the
young man from that height with humorous serenity.
"Devil take me—how can I, George? They expect me to take the other—
Virginia. And there's the dower—and my aunt's favor—and my own
dependence—and, egad, I don't know!"
Fairfield grew a little red. "I must. She's a kind of cousin, too, you
know."
The divine advanced with large solemnity to where the young man sat,
bent over him, and said, in a broad whisper: "Now look you, Fairfield,
there's a certain ceremony of which the law takes no count, certain words
being left out.—A lady would accept it—" He stepped back a pace. "When
you desire such a service, terms might be got at between us. Once in
England with your bride, the marriage growing cold—" he waved his hand,
shook his head, and so finished the proposition.
Sir Charles gave him a long look. The color had left his face. He rose
slowly, turned his back for a moment, and took a pinch of snuff. As he faced
the other again he remarked, without much expression: "What a cool-headed
beast you are, Rockwell."
"Sir!"
But Fairfield did not commit himself. Before he had a chance to reply a
servant of the house opened the door.
"Beg pardon, sirs, but young Mr. Carroll and Mr.—the Frencher, are
below, and, not being regulars—"
"Yes, yes, show them up at once," cried the lieutenant, with relief in his
tone.
The servant disappeared, and George Rockwell turned upon his heel. He
was not a little irritated at the result of the foregoing conversation, and he
remained silent till quick steps sounded on the stairs outside, the door
reopened vigorously, and young Charles, with de Mailly at his shoulder,
gayly entered the room, bringing with them a new atmosphere.
The boy was in a gale of spirits, and ran about the room tasting of the
liquor, looking down out of the window, and laughing at the three others.
Claude saluted the gentlemen more quietly, observing to Sir Charles:
"I perceive that we have interrupted you. I crave pardon. I sent the man
to see if you were disengaged."
"You are mistaken, monsieur. I assure you, in my turn, that your arrival
could not have been more agreeable.—Confound it, Charles, have you a
megrim or a frenzy? Where have you been, sir?"
"To a cock-fight in the Prince George Street pit. You should have been
with us. Captain Jordan's bird against Jack Marshe's. Jack's died. The
secretary will be in a rage. I won three pounds, though."
"Devil take me, why didn't you hunt me out, Charles? I've been eternally
bored for a week.—You lost to him, de Mailly?"
Fairfield looked at him curiously. Three pounds did not seem to him
small for a cockpit wager; but he would not have voiced this idea to the
foreigner for double the amount. He turned again to young Charles.
Carroll laughed joyously. "Shooting plover in the west marsh with father.
I've a holiday, and M. de Mailly is making it with me."
"And we'll all drink with you both," put in Fairfield, with sociable
impudence, while Rockwell smiled approval.
"And now for the affair in hand," pursued Jennings, when the party were
seated. "We've a race in prospect, Fairfield, that will take four months' pay to
back."
"Why, who will you run against, sir?" asked Rockwell, interested,
despite his ill-humor; for, of all things, he loved the turf.
"Paca's filly, Doris. She's young for my two-year-old; but Will is to enter
her for the fall cup, and wants to give her practice."
"Pretty beast, Doris. I stake on her, I think. Are the dates fixed?"
"No, deuce take it! there's the bother. Trevor has no jockey. Castor will
carry weight, and there's not a rider in town over four and a half stone. Five
would ride him; no less—eh, Vincent?" queried Paca, and Trevor nodded.
There was a short pause, in the midst of which a servant with the wine
and sangaree appeared. The room drank with Trevor, and two or three
afterwards turned to the pewter mugs which held the planter's favorite
beverage. Claude had been listening intently to the talk concerning the race,
and, his ear being well accustomed to the colonial accent, he had gathered
the gist of all that was said.
"My man, Tom Cree, might know of some fellow who would do for you,
Vincent. I think you could trust him if you cared to look about in that way,"
suggested Paca, after some hesitation.
Vincent bowed. "Certainly I'd trust your man, Will. But I've some
objections to that course. I've no intention of starting stables. I run Castor
merely to try your Doris and test my own animal. I don't want to be known
as deeply interested in the turf. Get a professional rider fastened to you even
by one race, and—poof! You all know what it means."
The group nodded. Vincent Trevor was a man highly respected by all of
them. He was quiet, silent, of excellent judgment, a little given to over-
Toryism, no prig, but holding fast to strong principles. His friends knew his
manner of life, and never expected him to step beyond its bounds. In the
present case they all perceived his position, and his silence was rather
dubious, till Claude de Mailly most unexpectedly broke it.
"Castor will hold twice, but would you try Doris so?"
"Tut, tut, Vincent! Doris isn't china. She'll not break so vastly easy. Egad,
we'll make it three rounds, if you like!"
Vincent smiled. "I did not mean to offend you, Will," he said.
Paca began an apology at once, when Claude interrupted: "If you would
permit me, Mr. Trevor, I will ride your horse for you."
The five men and Charles Carroll sat perfectly still and stared. De
Mailly, beholding their amazement, and not understanding it, burst into an
infectious laugh, at which Sir Charles immediately caught.
"Pray, sir, then why did you laugh? I see nothing to laugh at in so serious
a matter," remarked Rockwell, with an air of injured dignity.
"'Twas my fault, parson," retorted Fairfield, still smiling; for his humor,
though English, was still not yet of the colonial type.
"Then you really make a serious offer to ride Castor in the race?"
demanded young Carroll, curiously.
"'Tis not that, monsieur, but you see—it is vastly strange form for a
gentleman to ride a track against a jockey. To be plain, M. de Mailly, since
you are a stranger to our customs—none of us would do such a thing."
Claude smiled and shrugged. "Thank you, sir, I was aware of the English
custom in this case. But I am here to amuse myself. I make you an offer, sir.
Examine my weight and my build, and try my riding before you refuse it."
He stood up for the small group to judge his weight, and this they
proceeded to do with calm assurance and unsparing observation.
"Not much over five stone, I stake my oath!" remarked Jennings,
measuring the slender figure with his eye.
"I shall not be pulling the horse in after the first half-minute," observed
Claude, quietly.
Claude turned and stared at him with such a mixture of scorn and
laughter in his eyes that Trevor hastily broke in:
"To see whether my riding is fit for such a speed," added the proposed
jockey, with a mixture of wounded vanity and sarcastic pride. He was
beginning to regret rather bitterly his impulsive and wholly generous offer.
In time he might become accustomed to English manners. Just now they hurt
him more than he would have confessed. His whole early life had been one
which had fostered his natural buoyant impulsiveness of spirit, and had made
him young beyond his years. It had been called his "pose." But that pose,
which was more than half nature, was a singularly unfortunate thing for a
man thrown upon the world, in a strange country, among new manners,
through which he must find his way. And just now, while the Englishmen
concluded various arrangements for their plan, he was struggling with his
temper, and only won the battle when Trevor and Rockwell finally rose to
depart. Vincent was returning to the plantation, and the clergyman, with
Lucy in his mind, purposed accompanying him.
"I'll ride with you, Trevor. I can cross the river at King's Ferry. My
people will expect me to-night. Our town house is shut."
"Very well. I leave you, then, Charles. You'll ride out in the morning with
M. de Mailly and Carleton."
"Ay, and me, too," called young Carroll after him. "I'll see Castor rode
with the rest of you, and, egad, I'll go to the race as well!"
"Until to-morrow, then. Good-day, sir," said Paca, bowing with courtly
politeness to Claude, who liked him thenceforth.
The four who remained in the jockey-club-room sat silent together for
some moments after they had been left alone. Then Claude, looking at young
Charles, rose.
"Come, Mr. Carroll, since we are making your holiday together, let us go
and finish it with a supper at my inn. You will forgive me, messieurs"—he
turned to Sir Charles and Jennings—"you will forgive me that I do not
propose a party of four. After the excitement of the cock-fight this afternoon,
and my ride for to-morrow, we will make our evening quiet. You might be
perhaps—how do you say—ennuyé—by it. Where shall we join you to-
morrow?" He smiled gently as he beheld the lieutenant regarding him with
knitted brows. Indeed, to Fairfield it seemed that the Frenchman had read his
mind, and was bound to thwart his hopes of arranging a gentleman's night in
Jennings' company.
"Come, come, monsieur, be more lenient. Dine with us at the 'Blue Balls'
and join us in a game of écarté later."
"Eh, yes!" cried young Charles, eagerly. "'Twould be vastly more fun!"
He pulled de Mailly's sleeve.
"No, no, Charles, not you! It—your father—damme, you ain't out of
school yet, you know," stammered Jennings, voicing Fairfield's thought.
Carroll flushed hot with anger, and Claude bit his lip before he answered,
quietly: "It is impossible that I should dine with you to-night, gentlemen,
though I thank you for your kindness. Mr. Carroll is my guest."
Young Charles looked at him with sulky admiration. He was furious with
Jennings, mortally ashamed of his youth, but still appreciative of de Mailly's
tact. Fairfield, seeing nothing for it but to accept his disappointment
gracefully, rose, seized Jennings by the arm, waved an au revoir to de
Mailly, and with a, "Be at the 'Blue Balls' with your beasts at ten in the
morning, and we'll ride out together," drew his willing companion away to
their favorite night-haunt.
De Mailly looked after them as they passed through the door, and then
stood still for an instant, considering. When he turned again to young
Charles, the boy's face wore a new expression.
"I'm very sorry, monsieur, if I've spoiled your night. I should have gone
home without you."
Claude started forward impulsively, and drew the boy's arm through his
own. "En avant!" he cried, gayly. "Why, Charles, I'd rather you a thousand
times over than any other blood in Annapolis. 'Tis a good race, yours. Your
father is as gallant a gentleman as I have met, and you are his son. Come
then, Charles, we'll drink to you both, to-night, in the oldest Madeira that
Mistress Vawse will sell."
He was peering along the grass in front of them. "I'd stake my oath
—'twas a water-moccasin," he muttered, half to himself.
The girl lifted her petticoats with both hands and shrank close to him. "A
water-moccasin! Surely not here—" She stared nervously at the turf, but saw
nothing. The snake, if there had been one, was gone.
Deborah might have said more or retreated to Madam Trevor, but for the
fact that, at this moment, the stable doors slid open and Castor, with de
Mailly on his back, trotted into the field. Will Paca and Vincent followed
him on foot and made their way over to the party in the gateway.
Castor, first-born of twin foals, and the one who had all the strength and
beauty alike of the two, was an enormous jet-black animal, seventeen hands
high, with a long, swinging step and three paces got from no blooded
ancestors, but merely through one of those accidents sometimes permitted by
the gods. He was an animal fiery enough of temper, and particular about his
riders. Vincent Trevor, indeed, had been dubious about the Frenchman's
ability even to mount him; but as Claude swung into the saddle and took the
reins from the shining black neck, all doubts were forgotten. Castor turned
his head, glanced at the man who sat him so easily, and neighed with
satisfaction. As they trotted together into the paddock Claude rode in the
French fashion, as though he were part of the horse, never rising in the
saddle.
"I vow I've seen nothing so pretty," assented that lady, good-humoredly.
"Eh, Lucy?"
"How d' ye like him, Vincent?" asked his cousin, as the horse broke into
a canter.
"Very well."
"The fellow knows his business, I think," observed Will Paca, dryly.
"His business!—You don't think—" Trevor raised his brows.
Paca shrugged.
"Oh—I ask pardon. I did not know your acquaintance was intimate,"
rejoined the other at once, with a proper manner, and Fairfield was satisfied.
At the same time he felt a light touch on his arm, and, turning, he found
Deborah looking at him with a light in her eyes.
But, while Fairfield carried her hand to his lips, he felt, in some way, that
her speech had not brought him unmitigated pleasure.
"I'll give you three lengths start on the track, Will," cried Trevor, as de
Mailly flew by for the fourth time, never moving a hair's-breadth in the
saddle.
Deborah, her cheeks slightly flushed, moved to one side where she could
watch without interruption. She saw Claude pass the stable and reach the far
corner of the paddock. There something happened. A thing which looked, at
the distance, like a black thread, shot suddenly up from the ground and
struck at Castor's leg as he passed. The horse gave a quick, terrified plunge,
which made de Mailly reel in the saddle, and then the animal, maddened
with fear, started forward like a whirlwind. He had reared completely about
and was running frantically towards the open gateway. At the beginning
there had been a slight scream from Lucy, and now the men, their faces very
pale, pulled the women quickly away from the opening. Deborah moved of
her own accord, her eyes fixed fast on the horse, for she had seen what
started its flight. In an instant horse and rider had flashed, comet-like, out at
the gate, and, as they passed, Deborah knew that de Mailly had looked at
her, and she had seen something very like a smile cross his set lips. Beyond
the gate the horse veered again and made towards the south, in the direction
of the tobacco-fields.
"HORSE AND RIDER HAD FLASHED OUT AT THE GATE"
Claude saw, with relief, that he had an apparently unobstructed space
before him. It was all that he could do now to keep himself on the horse,
who no longer went at an even gait, but varied his gallop with leaps and
plunges caused by pain. He was utterly beyond all control. Claude lay over
on his back, both hands twisted in the long mane, his eyes half closed,
breathing with some difficulty, but quite sure of himself so long as his way
was clear. Suddenly, however, as he caught a glimpse of the fields beyond,
his heart rose into his throat, and then sank again with a sensation which
made him dizzy. A hundred yards ahead was a twenty-foot ditch of water,
which no living horse could clear. If Castor saw it, and had still sense of his
own, he might turn off. If not, the horse was lost, and Claude himself must
take desperate chances. Many things flashed through his mind in the ensuing
seconds. Most vividly of all the figure of Deborah, as he had seen her a
moment before, stood out before him. Then for one more instant his mind
was a white blank. They were ten yards from the stream now, and the horse
was moving straight on. Mechanically, Claude took his left foot from the
stirrup and swung it over Castor's back. For one frightful instant he lay full
along the animal. Then, not very much aware of what he was doing, he had
let himself over the side, felt solid ground whirl under his feet, and knew that
all was well with him. A moment later he vaguely heard the heavy splash
and the human-like scream that told of the good animal's death. Not very
long after that he was looking into Vincent's face, and, as a brandy flask was
held out to him, he murmured, with as much feeling as he was capable of
just then:
But Vincent was actually laughing as he replied: "My dear sir, when a
poisonous snake sends its fangs into your horse's leg, its rider need offer no
excuse for being run away with. And, 'pon my soul, for the sake of learning
how to ride as you have done, I'd sacrifice every beast that ever was stalled
on this place.—Eh, Charlie?"
And from behind came Fairfield's voice, crying heartily, "Egad, when I
am released from the colonies, I'll go and live in a French training-school till
I do learn!"
It was an hour later, and the excitement was over, when the Reverend
George Rockwell ventured to address Will Paca on the same subject: "To tell
the truth, my dear sir, I confess that I believe there must have been some
truth in your suggestion in the field that our—French friend knew more than
a gentleman does of horses."
Paca turned slowly about and looked at him. There was no answer made
in words; but at times looks are expressive of inexpressible things.
CHAPTER V
Sambo
According to the laws of colonial hospitality, Claude stayed all day and
overnight at the Trevor house. To tell the truth, he was scarcely fit for
removal, for the reaction from his nervous strain sent him, early in the
afternoon, to the chamber prepared for him, from which he emerged at ten
o'clock next morning with many apologies for tardiness on his tongue. He
saw no one, however, to whom to deliver them. The house was deserted.
Finding his way, after a search through the empty hall and parlor, into the
sunny breakfast-room, he discovered there a single place set at the table, and
Adam lounging in the doorway. The slave straightened and saluted him upon
his entrance.
"Sit down, sah—sit down. I'll bring yo' breakfast right away."
Upon this, he darted from the house and disappeared down the path
towards the kitchen, to return in two or three minutes with a large tray upon
which stood a variety of smoking dishes. This he set before the guest, who
proceeded to discuss them with a light appetite. While he ate he pondered,
uneasily, on how he was expected to take his departure. In this matter Adam
came presently to his assistance.
"Pa'don, Mas' de Mailly, but Mas' Vincent wait this mo'n till nine t' see
you, den he ride out to the fields an' tell me t' say t' he be back fo' dinne' at
noon; ask yo' health den."
"So I'm to stay till this afternoon?" asked Claude, in some surprise.
"Yes, sah," responded the slave, and his prompt tone settled the matter.
Claude, who had quite finished his meal, rose and strolled idly to the
door which looked out upon the garden. At the far end of this, among her
roses, was Madam Trevor. De Mailly did not recognize her at the distance,
but he turned suddenly to the slave who was clearing the table.
"Can you tell me, Adam, where Mistress Travis will be at this hour?"
"Miss Deb? Oh, she's mos' like at de still-room." He went over to the
door. "See li'l house dere cross the ya'd? She's mos' like dere."
"Thank you." Claude nodded to the man and went out of the house,
around the terrace, and so through the yard towards the small building whose
surrounding lilac-bushes were all in seed. Here on the step, alone and
disconsolate, sat Sambo, Deborah's favorite little darky.
Sambo was very forlorn this morning. A strong appreciation of the woe
of this wretched life had come to his spirit under the guise of an empty
stomach. All of three hours ago Thompson, the overseer, discovered him in
the climacteric moment of a glorious charge on the chickens in the runs. An
entire flock of fat, white pullets were in full flight before this single son of
Ethiopia, whose triumphant war-cry had unfortunately reached the quarters.
Thereupon Thompson, who had no soul for the sublime, seized the
conqueror by the tail of his tow-linen toga and dragged him from the field to
his parental cabin, where, in the presence of Chloe, his mother, a most telling
rebuke was administered. The mother's heart hardened towards the small
sinner, and he had been driven outside in the very face of bacon spluttering
over the fire and beans baking fragrantly in the embers. After an unhappy
wandering, he at last sought the homely protection of Deborah and the still-
room. Deborah, too, had left him, with the promise, however, of getting him
something to eat when she returned. So here, in melancholy resignation, sat
Sambo, as Claude approached.
Sambo swept a black thumb over one shoulder, back of his head. "Dat
way."
Claude bowed.
"I'll come."
The small figure rose suddenly, descended from his dais, and put one
small black fist trustfully into de Mailly's. Claude looked down into the
childish face, with its round pate covered with black, woolly, hair, and a
gentle light came into his eyes. He was fond of children.
The swamp appeared to be some distance away. The child's steps were
short, and Claude would not hurry him. At last, however, they came upon a
narrow, grassy lane, bordered on either side by a tangle of vines and bushes,
at the end of which was the so-called swamp—a marsh nearly dry at this
season, save for a pool in its very centre. Upon the edge of this they paused.
Before them was a waste wherefrom sprang a few saplings, some young
willows, a tangle of flaming tiger-lilies, and a host of those plants which
grow in damp places. Claude saw no sign of a human being, but Sambo
presently sprang forward.
"Deh she is!" he cried, running into the brush. Claude followed rapidly,
coming at last in sight of her whom he sought.
Deborah knelt upon the damp ground, bending over a plant which she
was minutely examining. Claude had seen it and its flower often enough, he
thought. The stem was perhaps three feet high, with long, narrow, spotted
leaves, and clusters of small purplish flowers. These were what Deborah was
studying, and on her flushed face was an expression which Claude had not
beheld before. Startled by Sambo's appearance, she looked up.
"I'm ready. I must take this with me." From a little bag hanging at her
side she drew a small pruning-knife and two pieces of cotton cloth. Having
cut the stem of the plant before her, she wrapped about it one square of the
cloth and took it up in her left hand.
"A sort of mushroom, Sambo. Oh, a most excellent dinner dish they'd
make!" she added, laughing.
And hungry Sambo heard her. Were these pretty things good to eat? He
had seen not a few of them in the grass about the roads and fields. Here was
a breakfast ready for him. He considered a little, the idea of cooking not
entering his head. Neither Deborah nor de Mailly knew when he ceased to
follow them, it merely occurring to them by the time they reached home that
Sambo had not been with them for some time. Claude, who had found the
way long in coming, deemed it only too short on the return. And Deborah,
demurely realizing that she was perfectly happy, continued to talk to him in
that tranquil manner which, from its apparent indifference and self-
possession, seemed such an anomaly, considering her youth.
"May I ask the use of this?" asked de Mailly, curiously, holding out the
spray of spotted-hemlock.
"I don't know its use. 'Tis what I am going to try to find out if the doctor
does not come this morning. I am ignorant if it is as poisonous as water-
hemlock. I will try to learn."
"It will be most interesting. We are to try the effect of two alkaloids in
one system, and I must note the different symptoms, the combined result,
and the complications which ensue from the interaction."
De Mailly looked at the girl in surprise. She was certainly unlike any
woman that he had ever met. "Forgive me," he said, earnestly. "I did not
understand you. I do admire and respect this work of yours. My gratitude—
how shall I express it? There is, indeed, little that one can say to the
preserver of his life—"
Dr. Carroll, returning on the day before from his shooting, and, wearied
by the dulness of Annapolis in mid-summer, kept his promise and came out
to see Deborah. He found her, ignorant of his arrival, preparing her retort for
the distillation of the water-hemlock, while Claude, willingly pressed into
service, had gone to the kitchen to obtain a lighted coal for the tripod of
charcoal. An addition to the equipment of the room had recently been made.
Beside the cupboard in the corner stood a good-sized cage, its top and
bottom made of pine boards held together by narrow wooden slats nailed
upon all four sides. Within this prison of the condemned sat a half-grown
tortoise-shell tabby, presented yesterday to the establishment by Sambo. As
Deborah took up her hemlock and with careful hands began to strip away its
leaves and blossoms, she glanced now and then at her prisoner with an
expression half of pity and half of speculative interest. The animal looked
very comfortable on its bed of grass, its toilet just completed, with slow eyes
blinking at the light; never a suspicion in its head of a possible swift death at
the hands of the slender girl at the table yonder. The stillness was interrupted
by the entrance of the doctor.
Deborah took the shovel from his hands, emptying its contents carefully
into the tripod. "Thank you. Be seated, if you care to watch us."
"By all means, sit yonder, de Mailly, and look on. Miss Travis is
preparing some Conium maculatum for distillation, though she will get a
poor result from the mere leaves and flowers. And behold in me, monsieur,
the conscienceless wretch about to destroy life in that hapless pussy, for the
mere gratification of criminal instinct.—What's this, Deborah?"
The doctor's change of tone was so sudden and so marked that the girl
turned quickly about to behold him standing over the fungi which she had
placed at the far end of the table.
Carroll shook his head gravely. "It doesn't need extraction. The whole
thing is replete with poison. 'Tis amanita muscaria, the deadliest of all fungi.
Have you seen the symptoms?"
"Then you shall. I mind me I had a case of them many years ago—a
family ate them at supper. All four died.* There was no help that I or any
one else had to give. Such agony I have never seen. The effect is not
apparent for from four to nine hours after eating, though internal
dissemination of the poison must begin at once. After the case I mentioned, I
experimented a good deal with them. Time does not seem to affect their
power. After four months' keeping I knew one of them to cause death to a
dog in ten hours. Would you care to try this to-day on your cat there,
Deborah, in conjunction with one of the liquids?"
Deborah did not reply at once, and Claude hoped that she would decline
the proposition. Her answer was a question: "Will you stay, doctor, till the
fungus acts? I couldn't distinguish the different symptoms alone."
The doctor reflected. "'Tis eleven now. By four the thing should be under
way. I'll get home by six. Yes, I'll stay."
Deborah went to the cupboard and surveyed her array of phials. Finally,
selecting one filled with a clear, white liquid, with less sediment at the
bottom than most of her mixtures contained, she brought it over to Dr.
Carroll.
"I gave forty drops to a cat. It seemed to be quiet for about three-quarters
of an hour. Then it tried to mew, but that was hard for it. The muscles of its
throat were strained. After a little it began to bite at things in the cage. Its
eyes were large, and the pupils full, as if it were in the dark. It drank all I
would give it, but could not swallow easily. Then there came spasms. Finally
it fell asleep, and died three hours after the dose."
"Monsieur, I do not think that you will enjoy our experiments here this
morning. Will you be so obliging as to join my cousins, Virginia and Lucy,
in some pleasanter occupation?"
There was a note of piqued command in the tone which Claude, who
knew women well, would have disobeyed in any other case. Now, however,
he made no reply, but rose in grave silence, bowed to her, and left the room.
"On my life, that was not a gallant thing," observed Carroll, placidly,
when their sensitive guest had crossed the yard.
Deborah made no answer. She was more deeply hurt than she would
have believed possible, and she did not choose that her voice should betray
her. Crossing again to the cupboard, she took from its lowest shelf a deep-
bowled horn spoon, with which she knelt before the cat's cage. In the mean
time the doctor had been occupied in cutting the fungus into small cubes.
These, together with the atropine, he took over to his pupil, who was now on
the floor with the cat in her lap. She took the amanita quietly from her
companion's hands, placed one piece in the creature's mouth, and
manipulated its throat till it swallowed convulsively.
Unflinchingly Deborah finished her task, and then, hastily replacing the
prisoner in its cage, she fastened the little door. Carroll, who had looked on
without comment, helped her to rise from the floor, and silently noted the
fact that her hands were very cold.
"Come now to the house and rest," he said, with quiet persuasion.
She looked a little surprised. "Surely not. I will stay here and watch.
Besides, there is the hemlock;" she nodded towards the little heap of flowers
and leaves by the retort. "I will distil that. The fire is ready."
"No, Debby. You're tired. Hark you, the poisons will certainly not show
for half an hour, if they do then. It is probable that the muscaria will retard
the action of the atropine for a much longer time. Then you must have your
full wits about you, for 'twill be the most interesting thing we've done. Come
now, as your physician, I insist."
But though Charles Carroll's will was strong, that of Deborah Travis was
stronger. He tried persuasion, command, and entreaty, finally becoming
angry, and so losing the battle; for, having called her a stubborn hussy, there
was nothing for it but to march off alone to the house. The girl saw him go
with a sore heart, and then, doggedly determined, returned to her work, the
pleasure of it gone for the first time in her life. When, after a while, Sambo
strolled thoughtfully in from the fields, she greeted him with positive
delight.
The little boy seated himself, Turk-fashion, beside the tripod, to watch
the water just beginning to bubble in the body of the retort. It was an
occupation which he dearly loved, and in the observation of which he was a
privileged mortal, for Deborah allowed but few in her work-room. During
the process of distillation she was regarded by Sambo as some one who had
risen for the time to supernatural heights. She was quite a different person
from the Miss Deb whom he knew ordinarily out-of-doors. On every
occasion, however, he had been wont to talk unceasingly either to her or to
himself when in her company. To-day she wondered at his silence. His
interest in the action of the retort was as great as ever, but every effort to
draw him into conversation failed. So, after a time, Deborah, her closest
attention demanded by the approaching end of the distillation, when the
purest alkaloid would come from her plant, ceased also to speak, and,
indeed, almost forgot his presence. The liquid had been filtered, bottled, and
set aside for its second vaporizing, when she suddenly recollected that in the
morning she had promised to get something for the little negro to eat. It was
sufficient cause for his silence.
"Oh, Sambo! Indeed I'm sorry! How hungry you must be! Come, I'll
make Chloe give you some of our dinner to-day."
Sambo's big eyes opened wide and he slowly shook his head. "Had
somf'n, Miss Debby. D' wan' no mo'."
With his words came the sound of the dinner-horn from the quarters. He
turned. "Goin' home," he said, wearily, trudging out of the room; while the
girl, wondering who had fed him, proceeded to restore order in her
immaculate little domain. When she had finished the doctor reappeared.
"Yes, sir, at once, when this sleeve is down." She pulled at the short
elbow-sleeve which she had pushed to the shoulder to be rid of its ruffles.
The creature lay upon the bed of grass blinking nonchalantly, after a
luncheon of milk.
"Perfectly well, eh? Note, Deborah, that the action of the atropine is
already retarded half an hour beyond its time. Most interesting, on my
word!"
Dinner was gone through with tediously, and at three o'clock the entire
family, with the guests, sat upon the portico, drowsy with heat and the effort
of talking. The doctor, perceiving Deborah's growing impatience, was about
to dare Madam Trevor's high displeasure by carrying her off to the still-room
to watch their cat, when suddenly around the corner of the east wing dashed
a negro, hysterical with fear.
"Blessed Ma'y be praised! Docto' Ca'l, come quick! Sambo's dyin'! Gib
him somf'n fo' he go off, fo' Christ's sake!"
Before the last words were spoken the doctor had jumped from the
porch, and the rest of the party rose anxiously.
Madam Trevor had run into the house to get an apron for her gown, and
Deborah, seizing the opportunity, flew across the portico, leaped down on
the east side, and caught up with the doctor.
"I shall come, too," she said. And Carroll's silence gave consent.
The cabin in which Sambo and his parents lived was on the northeastern
corner of the quarters, and, as the doctor, with his conductor and Deborah,
approached it, a group of negro women about its door hailed them with
expressions of relief and praise. Not heeding the pious ejaculations, the three
passed into the tiny hut, where, upon the mattress in a corner, covered with
tattered blankets, lay Sambo. Beside him, her apron over her head, sat the
mother, Chloe, rocking to and fro in absolute terror.
Carroll knelt at once beside the mattress and glanced sharply into the
child's face. Sambo was lying deathly still, breathing heavily, his eyes wide
open, his black skin dripping with sweat. The doctor felt the child's pulse,
opened his mouth, and gave a sharp exclamation as he perceived the tongue
to be heavily coated with a thick, grayish matter.
"Sit here, Deborah, and hold his hands. He'll not be quiet long."
Deborah took her place at the child's head and clasped the little burning
hands in her own, while Carroll, in a low voice, began to question Chloe.
Sambo noticed Deborah, and smiled faintly as she leaned over him. In a
moment more a swift spasm of agony passed over the small features, and he
uttered a guttural cry of pain. Carroll ran to his side, while the colored
woman, wringing her hands, sank helplessly on the floor. The paroxysm was
violent. The child's body twisted and writhed. He rolled over and over upon
the bed, moaning like an animal, or shrieking in a delirium of torture.
Deborah, very pale, and Carroll, silent and stern, held him so as to prevent as
much exhaustion of strength as was possible. When he began to grow more
quiet, Madam Trevor came in, looking angrily at her cousin, who, however,
scarcely saw her.
"It is possible that you do not need me, doctor," she said, in her most
offended tone.
Carroll paid small attention to her manner. "If you will send out some old
linen, pepper, mustard, and salt from the house, it will be all that we can use.
To be frank," he added, in a low tone, "there is little hope now."
Madam Trevor looked aghast, and her manner softened instantly. "Little
hope! What do you mean? What shall we do?"
"What I ask, if you please. Linen, salt, mustard, and pepper. Chloe, you
must heat some water in the kettle there." And Carroll turned about again as
Madam Trevor, without another word, hurried out of the cabin on her errand.
"What was it, Sambo? Have you eaten anything? What have you done?"
she asked, caressingly.
Sambo, panting from weakness, answered, just audibly: "Done eat nuf 'n
't all but mushrooms you picked 's mo'n wiv Mas' Frenchman. You say dey
good fo' dinne'."
"My God!"
"What is it?" asked the doctor, quickly, seeing her face grow gray.
Deborah was not long there. When she was sure her hope had been
realized, she turned to the cupboard, snatched a bottle from its shelf, and ran
at full speed out of the room and back towards the cabin. Upon the bed
Sambo's body lay now outstretched, quiet save for an occasional little quiver
of the muscles, and over it Madam Trevor, with grave tenderness, and Dr.
Carroll, with hopeless skill, worked. Some hot gin had been forced down the
child's throat, and across him were spread linen cloths soaked in water so
near to boiling that they had scalded Chloe's hands; yet Sambo paid no
attention either to them or to the mixture with which they were rubbing his
limbs. When Deborah returned, Carroll left off chafing the little black arms
and went to her where she stood by the door.
Carroll shook his head. "He is passing into the coma now. That is the
end."
"Of your own making, Deborah?" came Madam Trevor's sharp voice.
"No, Miss Deb'. You ain' goin' give Sambo nuf'n from still-house."
"Dr. Carroll!" There was a desperate appeal in her tone, and the man
came instantly to her aid.
"Listen, Chloe! Unless your child in some way gets the help that I cannot
give, he must die. He is poisoned, as I supposed, fatally. Miss Deborah
believes that she can save his life. You cannot let him die without the
attempt."
The colored woman paid no attention to the words, and still menacingly
barred the way. A new idea was taking possession of her: that Deborah had
poisoned the boy. Carroll, who was watching her narrowly, saw the sudden
squaring of her shoulders, darted quickly in front of her and seized her about
the body just as she had been about to fling herself upon the girl. Deborah,
keyed to the highest pitch, watched her opportunity, slipped like a cat around
to the bedside, raised Sambo's head upon her arm, and, to Madam Trevor's
terror, pressed her fingers on the child's throat, and forced him to swallow
the contents of the cup. At once he was seized with a violent coughing fit.
Deborah lifted him upright at once, pressed her hands upon his temples and
the back of his neck, and kept him from that retching which would have
been fatal to her experiment.
Meantime Carroll had forced Chloe, screaming and struggling, from the
cabin, and, after calling Thompson to keep order in the group outside, he
closed and barred the door. Madam Trevor then rose from her place.
And, with these words, Antoinette Trevor rose in strong anger, shook out
her flounces, unfastened the door for herself, and, without more ado, left the
cabin and the dying child alone to the care of the doctor and his mad
protégée.
* Atropine is to-day considered the best antidote for cases of poisoning by the
amanita muscaria or the amanita phalloides. At the period of the story (1744) its
efficacy was unknown.
"The cat—"
"Lives."
Deborah set her teeth. "We—I will save him," she said, with slow
precision. "Or else—they will bury me with him."
Madam Trevor, upon her return to the house, said not a word of the scene
in the cabin. It was a relief to her to find that de Mailly had tactfully
departed and that the family was alone. Lucy and Virginia beset her with
questions, for the child was a pet with them all. It was something of a shock,
then, when their mother turned upon them, saying sharply: "Sambo will die,"
and forthwith retired to her own room. The girls looked at each other for a
long moment in amazement, and then Lucy cried quickly:
Virginia would have assented, but her brother shook his head.
"Deborah and the doctor both are there. If you are needed, you will be
sent for. Otherwise I forbid you to go."
And so the Trevor family lived dismally through the afternoon, waiting
for the supper-hour, when the watchers would appear. But Adam blew the
horn in vain. No word came from the cabin, and Madam Trevor, burning
with curiosity and anxiety, flatly refused to send any one to ask news of the
child.
The sun set, and dusk deepened to evening. Candles were lighted in the
sitting-room, but Vincent alone made any pretence of reading. The three
women moved about restlessly, the girls not daring, and their mother
unwilling to speak on the subject which occupied all their thoughts. The
silence had become unbearable, and Vincent at last started to put away his
book, with a resolve to go to the quarters, when the door flew open and Dr.
Carroll strode into the room, carrying Deborah's body in his arms. He laid
her down upon the brocaded sofa, while the girls rushed to her side.
"She fainted as we came across the yard," explained the doctor, wearily.
"Sambo will live. The girl saved his life. She is a genius, madam; and—
for God's sake, get me a glass of wine!"
CHAPTER VI
Claude's Memories
Deborah recovered from her afternoon over Sambo's sick-bed far less
rapidly than the small negro did from the effects of his remarkable breakfast.
In fact, three days after that upon which he had substituted the fly agaric for
hoe-cake, he was running about the plantation as usual, only with a new and
useful working knowledge concerning vermilion-colored fungi. With
beautiful impartiality he sought the still-room on the afternoon of the first
day that he left the cabin. He found its door locked, and presently discovered
that Miss Deb was to be seen nowhere about the grounds. On making
peremptory inquiries, he was informed, much to his disgust, that his play-
fellow was ill in bed, without amanita for cause, and that he might not dream
of such a thing as seeing her. Thereupon, retiring to the still-house door-step,
young Sambo lifted up his voice and wept, though he got no consolation
from the process.
Strictly speaking, Deborah was not in bed. She was too restless to remain
long in any one place, but she felt no desire to leave the house. What care
she needed, and a little more, was lavished on her by Madam Trevor, her
cousins, and the slaves. Nevertheless, she was very wretched. She could not
understand her continual weariness and her impatience with the familiar
scenes of everyday life. She suffered inexpressibly with the mid-day heat,
and shivered with cold through the mild nights. "Nerves" were to her
unnecessary and incomprehensible things, and her disgust with herself was
none the less exasperating because it was unreasonable. Dr. Carroll,
however, was wiser than she. A week after Sambo's affair he heard of her
condition and went out to her at once. His prescription pleased the whole
family, with the exception, perhaps, of Sir Charles. He proposed taking her
back with him to Annapolis, to spend ten days under his own hospitable
roof, with his two sisters to take care of her, and young Charles for company.
Permission for the visit was granted on the asking, and, upon the next
afternoon, Deborah set out in the family coach, with the doctor on horseback
as outrider. The only regret that she felt on leaving was, oddly enough, the
parting from Sir Charles. His attentions to her during the past week had been
remarkably delicate. Madam Trevor herself could hardly have objected to
them. Through long hours he had sat near her while she lay upon a sofa,
generally with Lucy or Virginia, or both, beside her, recounting little stories
of his own or his comrades' adventures; describing London and London life;
stopping when he saw that his voice tired her; fanning her, perhaps, in
silence; arranging the tray that held her meals on the stand beside her; and
only once in a long, long time looking into her wandering eyes with an
expression that would set her to thinking of grave and far-off things. Thus
she left the plantation, feeling a new and not unpleasant regret at losing the
companionship which had almost made her illness worth the having.
Dr. Carroll's sisters, Mistress Lettice and little Frances Appleby, awaited
their guest with solicitation. The coach that held her arrived at their door just
at tea-time, and Deborah was smiling with pleasure when the doctor lifted
her out and carried her bodily up the walk and into the house, with St.
Quentin on one side, his son on the other, and the little old maids smiling
together in the doorway. The young lady then refused absolutely to retire,
but sat up to tea, partook of some of Miriam Vawse's raspberry conserve, and
afterwards lay upon the sofa in the parlor with an unexpressed hope in her
heart that Claude might come.
Claude was to have come. Mistress Lettice, when she learned from her
brother that their guest would arrive that afternoon, had sent down a polite
request by young Charles that monsieur would honor them with his presence
in the evening. As politely de Mailly returned thanks for the invitation, gave
no definite reply, but intended to go. Upon that afternoon, however, the Sea-
Gull arrived, after a fair voyage, from Portsmouth; and in her came a long
letter and a consignment of rents from Mailly-Nesle to his cousin. Many
things were happening in France. In March, war with England and Maria
Theresa had been declared, and the French armies prepared for a campaign.
In May came the astounding intelligence that, through the influence of la
Châteauroux, who loved the heroic, Louis would command his forces in
person. A week later it was understood that the favorite was to follow in the
royal train, together with the King's staff, his aides, his chefs, his valet, and
the impedimenta. The letter was dated May 28th. As he read it, Claude's
heart burned; and with the evening, in the bitterness of his memories of the
old life, and in the wretched conjectures that he made as to what was the
French news now, he forgot Deborah. Where was she, Marie Anne, his
cousin? What battles had been fought over the water? Was the fifteenth
Louis still reigning over France? Had not some chance shot struck him, and
with him the third daughter of the de Maillys, down in all their clanging
glory? Did la Châteauroux never now think of the cousin exiled for her, at
her instance? Henri did not say. And Miriam Vawse of the Annapolis inn
wondered that night what news her lodger had received, that he should sit,
stoop-shouldered, over the empty fireplace, and forget that, only two blocks
away, in Dr. Carroll's house, Debby Travis was vainly waiting for him to
come to her.
Claude did remember her next morning, when the sunlight gave matters
a different aspect, and the letter had been shut away in his trunk. So it was
with only half his mind on French battle-fields and a vaguely dreamed-of
Dettingen, that he ate his colonial breakfast; and afterwards, as he left the
ordinary and bent his steps leisurely northward towards Dr. Carroll's house,
his homesickness fled quite away.
The Carrolls' breakfast had ended some time ago (Claude's Versailles
habits of late rising were not yet broken); and Deborah, already bettered by
the change of scene and atmosphere, had come down to the morning meal.
She was now in the doctor's study, leaning back in his great chair, while
young Charles stood moodily facing the window, sulky because she was not
yet well enough to bear a morning on the bay, so obtaining for him a
vacation on plea of hospitality.
"Now I know why you won't mind about me any more. Here's your de
Mailly coming up the walk. Faith, I'll not bear it! You've grown into a fine
lady, Debby, and are no fun nowadays. I'd as soon have Lucy running with
me."
"And you, Charles, are ungentlemanly. If you were anything but a child,
I wouldn't speak to you this sennight."
Claude stood smiling upon the threshold, for he had overheard the last
words of the quarrel. Deborah, her white face flushing a little, held out her
hand. As he bent over it she said, in a much gentler tone than that which she
had been using: "I am really well, only I have nerves. Charles, however, is
using me very ill. He says that nerves are nonsense. Do you think so?"
Deborah looked a little shocked at his first statement and his matter-of-
fact tone when making it; but she said nothing. Presently Father St. Quentin
appeared at the door. After stopping to extend a hearty greeting to de Mailly,
he flung a Latin imperative at poor Charles, who obeyed it with the poorest
possible grace, leaving the room alone to Deborah and the Count. Claude
seated himself near her, and looked at her for a few seconds in silence,
noting a difference in her general expression. She was too languid to be
embarrassed by the pause, but, not caring to return the scrutiny, slightly
turned her head and looked toward the windows.
She glanced towards him now in some surprise. "An apology? For
what?"
"Nay, then I will not make it. I will only tell you that, as the preserver of
a child's life, I must reverence your talent, on which, I confess, I had looked
with ill-timed disapproval."
"So Dr. Carroll told me. I have heard all that you did on that afternoon;
and I, like the doctor, have not words to express my admiration."
"You are very kind. Please—do not let us talk of that. I came here to
forget. Come—would you entertain me, monsieur?"
"Yes—a few. Those who cannot find a husband. But we are supposing
that you would not be there unless some grand seigneur had married you and
carried you away."
"You would dwell in an apartment in—we will say the Rue des
Rossignols—that is the name of a street. Let us see. You sleep in a charming
room hung in white brocade. Your dressing-room will be in pink satin, with
the chairs in tapestry which monsieur would have embroidered for you—"
"Monsieur—a man—embroider!"
"Oh yes. The King himself commanded de Gêvres to teach him stitches a
year ago. He began four sièges at once, I remember, and de Mouhy made an
excellent bon-mot about it. No matter. Your tapestries in apple-green, your
tables in mahogany, and your sets in ivory—or gold? Which?"
"Ivory, I think. Pink satin and ivory would be—oh, most beautiful!" she
replied, cocking her head a little on one side.
"I'm sure I cannot tell," was the demure response; but the girl's face
belied her words. It was aglow with pleasure. "And what is it that you would
do, monsieur? How—how could you have borne it to leave such a life? Did
you really tire of it? Was—"
He rose sharply to his feet, and she broke off at once, astonished and half
frightened at the change in his face. "There are many thorns among the
roses, mademoiselle. Life is not happier there than here. And some day—
some day, perhaps—I will tell you the other side of it; why"—he almost
whispered now, for his throat was dry—"why I left it all."
He looked down into the face that had lost all its glow of pleasure, took
her slight hand, kissed it quietly, and left her alone to think over all that had
been said, to wonder over the uncertain promise of more, and to hope that he
would neither forget nor repent.
The little conversation had taken her mind away from herself and set it in
a new and far-off channel. When Dr. Carroll came back from his walk to the
wharves, he found his little guest with color in her face and animation in her
air. She told him of de Mailly's visit, and Carroll, judging its effect, resolved
that the tonic should be administered often while his patient remained with
him. The result was that, in the following days, Claude de Mailly and
Deborah were thrown constantly together. And during their lively
conversations, or, perhaps, even more so in their desultory ones, there grew
up between them an intimacy more of good-fellowship than anything else,
the spirit of which deceived both Claude and the doctor, though how much
prophecy Deborah might have made concerning it, would be more difficult
to say.
One afternoon, a Friday, and two days before Deborah was to return to
the plantation, while the doctor was at his counting-house near the wharves,
and the two little sisters sat together spinning in the sitting-room, their guest,
panting with the heat inside the house, and wishing also to escape young
Charles, who would presently be relieved from his Horace, sought out her
largest hat and crept out of doors, passing down the street in the direction of
the Vawse inn. She had not seen de Mailly for nearly twenty-four hours, and,
as a consequence, her day was empty. She had small hopes of encountering
him now, but was too restless to remain any longer in the room with the two
old maids and their whirring wheels. She passed the quaintly gabled tavern,
whose door, contrary to custom, was closed. Evidently Miriam was out.
There was no sign of life about the windows. Claude himself was probably
not there. Deborah walked on, disappointedly, as far as the court-house, and,
still not wishing to admit to herself that she had come out simply with the
hope of encountering de Mailly, turned down Green Street and followed it to
the water's edge. The Stewart quay was deserted, and she halted there to look
over the smooth, warm stretch of water. It was very still. The idle swash of
the ripples against the pier was the only sound that reached her ears. The
atmosphere was hazy with heat. It seemed as though it was the very weight
and thickness of the air which gradually formed a solid arch of purple storm-
clouds above the river to the west. Presently the sun was obscured. Still
Deborah stood, heedlessly watching the bay, and breathing slowly in the
stifling heat. Suddenly some one appeared beside her.
Deborah turned her head towards him with a smile of pleasure which she
would have repressed if she could. "Did you fall from the clouds, sir?"
"No. I have myself been wandering by the water this afternoon; and for
the past quarter of an hour I have been watching the gathering storm—and
you. Come, mademoiselle, we must seek shelter—and quickly."
He took her arm as she spoke, and they started together down Hanover
Street to Charles, which ran straight up for five blocks to Gloucester Street
and the Vawse tavern. As they passed the Reynolds ordinary a deafening
clap of thunder broke over them. Deborah shivered, and de Mailly put an
arm about her to help her faster on their way. The street was empty. The heat
had not yet broken, and beads of perspiration stood on their faces as they
went. A long hiss of lightning glided like a snake through the storm-cloud.
The town was almost dark. Deborah had begun to pant, and her companion
could feel the beating of her heart shake her whole frame.
It was with some difficulty that Claude shut and bolted the door in the
face of the wind. When he turned about his companion lay back on a
wooden settle in a state of exhaustion. While the gale howled without and
the thunder crashed down the heavens; he lit a candle with his tinder-box,
brought a glass of strong waters for Deborah, and helped her gently to a
more comfortable chair. He took the hat from her tumbled hair, chafed her
hands till her nails grew pink again, and then stood back regarding her
anxiously.
"Mistress Vawse? John Squire's boy broke a limb falling from a roof, and
she has gone to attend the—what do you say?—setting of it."
"Surely Miss Travis is not afraid with me?" Claude looked at her in hurt
surprise. "I will retire at once to my room. When the rain ceases—"
Both listened as the long, low growl of thunder rolled down the sky and
died away. It was growing darker again. A new storm was rising.
Deborah nodded and leaned back in her own chair. Then there fell a little
silence on the room. The girl's unconscious eyes travelled over de Mailly's
face as he sat regarding the rain-splashed windows; and they found a new
expression, a new paleness, an unusual soberness, upon the clear-cut
features. Unthinkingly, Deborah spoke:
"You are changed to-day, monsieur. I have not seen you so before. Why
are you melancholy?"
He turned towards her quickly. "Yes, I have what we call les papillons
noirs to-day. In some way, Mistress Deborah, 'tis your fault. In these last
days I have said so much to you of my former life, jestingly perhaps, and yet
feeling it, that to-day it has brought me homesickness."
Before his frank look Deborah's eyelids drooped, and presently, with a
little hesitation, she said: "You once told me that some day you would relate
to me why it was that you left your home. Could you not—now?"
"Ah, no!" The exclamation was impetuous. "It is not a story for you,
mademoiselle. An older woman might hear—but to you—"
And so, out of an impulse which he could not have traced to its source,
but which proceeded from a spirit of honesty and true chivalry, Claude
recounted, with the utmost gentleness and delicacy, some of the incidents
which had led to his exile. He said just enough of his cousin to let his
listener decide what his feeling for her had been. And Deborah, oddly
enough, perhaps, shrank from no part of the recital. She forgot herself, and
saw through the eyes of the narrator all that he was describing. In their
recent, half-serious talks on French life, the girl had gained a remarkably
clear idea of what that life must be; and now this story affected her very
differently than it would have done had it been her first glimpse of another
existence. It resembled one of her vague dreams, this sitting alone in the
cloud-darkened room, the feeble candle mingling its beams with the gloomy
daylight; the shadowy figure of the man before her, and his low voice
carrying on its story, seeming to be things very far away. And the fresh rain
pelted on the windows, while the deep monotone of the thunder made a fitful
and fitting accompaniment to the narrative.
"How could you go to see her? I should not have done so."
While the girl looked at the glove for the second time, de Mailly picked
up his letter of exile, and sat smoothing it on his knee. Then he asked,
unthinkingly: "This letter from the King—will you read it?"
She held out her hand and took the small, worn paper with its red-brown
seal and the arms of France upon it. Regarding the fine, crabbed writing, she
said, with a faint smile: "I do not easily read French, monsieur."
She nodded once more, and he, taking the missive from her hand, cleared
his throat and began, with a little effort:
Claude passed his hand over his brow. Then he lifted the letter again and
continued: "'—and begs further to add that when monsieur shall desire to
present Madame la Comtesse his wife to their Majesties at Versailles, his
return to his present abode will be most pleasing to
"'LOUIS R.'
At the close of the last line Claude looked up, apprehensively. Deborah
was very white, and there was an unusual brightness in her eyes. He could
not catch her glance. Her head drooped, and presently she covered her face
with her hands. He sprang up, impetuously.
He spoke rather incoherently. Perhaps the girl did not even understand
him. At any rate, after a moment, she lifted her head with a dignity that
Claude did not know. "I thank you, M. de Mailly, for telling me the story as I
asked." There was a little, wretched pause, and then she added, more faintly:
"See, the storm is nearly over. I must go back now—to the doctor's house."
CHAPTER VII
The Pearls
Another week went by, and Deborah, quite recovered from her slight
illness, bade Dr. Carroll and his sisters good-bye and returned, on a Sunday
afternoon, to the Trevor place. It was then about the 1st of August, and
certain rumors relative to the reception of the returning commissioners from
Lancaster, rumors dearly exciting to the feminine heart, began to radiate
from the gubernatorial palace and to spread throughout the country-side. For
once in its long existence rumor spoke truth. Upon the 6th day of August
were issued elaborate cards ("tickets," they called them then) of invitation
for a Governor's ball to be given upon the evening of the 21st to the
returning officials. With the delivery of these cards a thrill of excitement and
anticipation pulsated through all Anne Arundel County, even running a little
way over its irregular borders; and innumerable were the earnest
conversations through town and country houses as to costumes suitable for
such an occasion. Great hopes, that sank often to despair, were entertained of
the arrival of the Baltimore, with her usual cargo of vain and delightful
things. It was calculated with the nicest discrimination that she might reach
port, provided the winds were amiable to an impossible degree, as early as
the 15th. Then the weather of the West Atlantic was watched with supreme
interest. It certainly was all that could be desired. Nevertheless, the 15th
came and went without the Baltimore, and there was wailing on both sides of
the Severn. In time the interest in the ship's arrival came to surpass its object;
though, indeed, Betty Pritchard voiced many another's feeling when she one
day cried out, wofully:
"If the Baltimore doesn't come in, I'll have no pink taffeta for a petticoat
to my satin overdress. If I don't have the petticoat, I won't go to the ball; and
if I don't go to the ball, I shall die!"
One of the most anxious watchers for the arrival of the ship was, oddly
enough, Madam Trevor. Her anxiety concerning it quite passed the
comprehension of her daughters, who had not a suspicion of what was in
their mother's mind. Vincent knew more, but had never seen fit to talk to his
sister on the subject of the pearls which were to form Virginia Trevor's
ornaments on the day that she married Sir Charles. It was tacitly understood
between young Trevor and his mother that he should speak to his cousin on
the arrival of the jewels, and it was madam's ambition to be able to spread
the news of Virginia's engagement at the much-talked-of ball.
The Baltimore was a considerate ship, and her captain the favorite of all
sea-going men in Annapolis. Neither lost a reputation this time, for, on the
20th of August, at ten o'clock in the morning, the Baltimore cast anchor in
the lower piers, and Annapolis womanhood sighed with relief. It was but
seven o'clock on the evening of the same day, and the Trevor family sat at
supper in the glass room, watching the twilight deepen over the scented
garden, when Pompey hastily entered to announce the unexpected arrival of
young Charles Carroll.
"An' he say Baltimo'e 's heah, Mis' Trev'," he added, eagerly, glad to be
the first with the news.
Madam Trevor rose with a light in her face as the doctor's son came
merrily in. Having saluted each member of the party, he advanced to the
mistress of the house, paused for an instant to take on an air of heavy
responsibility, and finally produced, from the pockets of his new cloth coat,
two packages, wrapped in paper and tied with cord, the one square and flat,
the other five inches thick and also square.
Virginia, surprised, but unmoved, lifted the covers from the cases. In
one, upon a green satin lining, reposed a necklace of round, softly shining
pearls, set in gold, with a pendant of pear-shaped pearls and sapphires. The
other case contained a hair ornament, also of pearls, pink and black, in two
even rows, surmounted by a delicate scroll-work of the smaller stones, that
shone in the dusk with exquisite beauty.
Virginia drew a deep sigh of admiration. Lucy cried out with delight; and
Madam Trevor and the gentlemen, looking on in high interest, did not notice
Deborah, who sat silent, eager, with her great eyes fixed in unwinking
fascination on the perfect gems.
"Put them on, Virginia," cried young Charles, and there was a murmur of
approval.
Lilith, who had been standing by her husband at a little distance, lost in
admiration, nudged old Adam.
Virginia, with a little smile, took up the necklace, and her mother clasped
it about her slender throat. Then the tiara was set and pinned upon her
powdered curls, and Adam, coming forward with a candle in each hand, held
the lights up before her.
"'Ginny, you must wear them to the ball!" cried Lucy, ecstatically.
Virginia had no time to reply, for her mother gently interposed: "They
are not Virginia's yet, Lucy. She shall wear them on her wedding-day."
"I shall never wear them, then," was on her tongue to say; but her brother
interrupted.
"Charlie," he said, addressing his cousin, "come down to the river with
me and see the moon rise. It's in the full to-night."
"No, Lucy; I need you here," interposed her mother, much annoyed with
Vincent's want of tact.
An hour later Madam Trevor sat alone in the great hall. Young Charles
and the three girls, one by one, had gone to their various rooms, and the
mother was waiting alone for the return of her son and her nephew. She was
unaccountably anxious over the result of the interview, though indeed there
was not one reason which her nephew could, in honor, conjure up, whereby
he might refuse to marry Virginia Trevor. It was with the understanding of a
some-time marriage that he had come to America with Vincent months
before, and because the matter had been so long silently understood, it
should not have been hard for him to hear it finally discussed. Thus, many
times over, Virginia's mother argued in the candle-light, while she waited.
And still, into the midst of her most unanswerable conclusion, would creep a
doubt, a suspicion that she would not voice, the name of one whom she tried
in vain to put from her mind. It was Deborah. Deborah Travis and Charles
Fairfield? Absurd! And yet—madam could see the face of the girl as it had
been that evening when Vincent and his cousin left the room. She could see
the ironical light in the gray-blue eyes, the scornful curl of the red mouth, the
unconscious insolence of the long, natural curl that fell, powderless, down
her shoulder to the muslin ruffles at her elbow. Madam Trevor had a measure
of justice in her, and she gave Deborah her due, admitting to herself that
Virginia, in all her stateliness, with the pearls upon her, would never have
tempted man to half the desperation that might be raised within him over this
other silent creature, half child, half woman, of madam's own generation.
The clock on the wall ticked ten and went on again. At a quarter after,
Trevor and Fairfield came in from the moonlight to the hall. Fairfield was
very pale. Vincent's face was calm and unreadable. Sir Charles, seeing his
aunt expectant, went over to her, lifted her passive hand to his lips, bowed,
and left the room to retire to his own. When he was gone madam turned a
puzzled and anxious face towards her son, who stood still, narrowly
scrutinizing a portrait on the opposite wall.
Vincent shrugged his shoulders. "He said nothing at all. He informed me,
when I spoke, that he did himself the honor formally to ask of me the hand
of my elder sister. I accepted the offer. After that we walked about. I suppose
you will make the engagement public at the ball on Wednesday. I'm
deucedly tired to-night. Permit me to wish that you will sleep well."
With great relief at her heart the mother gently kissed her son, and then,
as he departed with his candle, she blew out all but one of those remaining in
the hall, and with that lighted herself to her rooms in the eastern wing.
Deborah also was awake. Rather, the moonlight, creeping along the
pillow to her face, had roused her, by slow degrees, from a half waking
dream. Alone, in the silent, enchanted night, with no disturbing day-thoughts
to banish the lingering visions of sleep, the dream stayed and grew to be a
fantasy of reality. She rose from her bed and moved slowly towards her open
windows, through which the bluish silver moonlight flowed, changing the
room into a misty-veiled fairy place. Below, outside the window, lay the
dreaming rose-garden. The lazily floating odor of full-blown flowers came
up to her, as incense on its way to a higher heaven. Beyond this lay the deep-
shadowed wood, with here and there a high, feathery tree-top waving to the
stars. The rippling plash of the river played a low accompaniment to the
night hymns of the myriad creatures singing through the country-side. Far
beyond the garden, rising like two cloud-shadows through the luminous
night, were the great tobacco barns. Slave-cabins, still-house, kitchen, well-
sweep, all were changed, by the mysterious power of night, to things of
natural beauty. And Deborah was changed. Her dreams had been of courts
and palaces, of dimly resplendent royal figures, among which she, and
Charles Fairfield, and Claude de Mailly moved in inexplicable near-
relationship. She, Deborah Travis, had just been crowned Queen of all
Europe by the hand of Majesty, with her cousin Virginia's pearls. Now, in the
waking dream, Deborah could not turn her thoughts from those same softly
shining things that Virginia was to wear upon her wedding-day.
Presently, with this single image in her mind, Deborah found herself
outside her room, and creeping, in her white garment, with naked feet, down,
down the stairs, past Sir Charles's door, through the deserted, moonlit living-
rooms, with their misplaced furniture and the scattered articles of a day
waiting for dawn and Lilith to be put straight. She passed across the sitting-
room, down the east passage, and, finally, in at the doorway of Madam
Trevor's dressing-room. Once inside Deborah halted. Madam Trevor's
garments lay, neatly folded, upon a chair. The door to the bedchamber
beyond was half closed. From within came the light sound of regular
breathing. Deborah smiled, and turned to the great black chest of drawers
beside the window. Here also the moonlight illumined her way. She opened
the top drawer noiselessly. Within, on a bed of lavender, lay the two
morocco cases for which she had come. She took them up, left the drawer
open, and glided quietly away again.
Once more in her own room the girl opened the cases and placed them
on her dressing-table, their priceless contents all unveiled. Then she went to
her own chest of drawers, and took from one of them the dress that she was
to wear two nights later at the Governor's ball, a petticoat of stiff, white
satin, and an overdress of China crepe, of the color of apple-blossoms, a
thing that clung lovingly to her lithe figure, and vied in softness of tone with
her neck and arms. These things she put on, with rapid, careless precision;
and then, her fingers grown a little colder, she lifted the pearl necklace from
its satin bed and clasped it about her warm throat. Afterwards she sat down
on a low chair before the dressing-table, with its dim mirror, and took the
tiara from the other box, placing it over her rebellious, silky curls.
"Ah, Claude, Claude, how was it, that thy cousin looked?" she murmured
indistinctly, with a vague smile at her thought.
The dreamy, languorous eyes that knew not all they beheld, gazed at the
reflected image of her face. How beautifully the young head in its coronet
was poised upon the pearl-wreathed neck! Was it a new Deborah sprung to
life here, in this August midnight? Was it only a momentary madness that
should not be told, this carrying out of a dim vision? What was it that
Deborah murmured to her mirror? What did she say to the shadowy throngs
of courtiers that pressed about her chair? Was ever la Châteauroux more
regal, more gracious? Were ever Comtesse de Mailly, and poor little Pauline
Félicité, Marie Anne's predecessors, more gay, more delicately glowing, than
this other, of alien race?
From the heap of her finery Deborah sought out a painted fan, and, with
this finishing touch of coquetry, she began walking up and down her tiny
room, pausing now and then at the window, for the night would not be
disregarded, waving the fan with an air inimitable and unacquired, seeing
herself thus in the Orangerie of Versailles, or on one of the Paris boulevards
as crowded with fashion and gallantry upon a Sunday afternoon. After a
little she grew tired, and her mind dropped its imaginings. She seated herself
beside the window, and, unclasping the necklace, took it off and held the
jewels up in the moonlight, pressing their soft smoothness to her cheek,
where the pendant drops hung like falling tears.
Suddenly, upon the perfect stillness around her, broke a sound. Slow
stealthy footsteps were crossing the floor of the spinning-room just outside.
Deborah grew cold with instant terror. She heard a hand placed upon her
door, and then came a voice, soft, well known, through the stillness:
"Deborah—Deborah!"
It was the lightest of whispers, but every accent fell distinctly on the
girl's terrified ears. Moving noiselessly in her bare feet, she carried the
necklace to the bureau, took the ornament from her head, and laid each piece
in its case. Then, running across the floor, she knelt in her ball-dress, at the
door, grasping its handle firmly.
The girl breathed fast, but made not a sound. Only her hand tightened
upon the handle, and her figure stiffened with determination.
Then silence fell between the two, separated by three inches of board and
Deborah's will, there in the August night. There was no one to know that he
was there. Vincent, and Lucy, and young Charles Carroll, sound sleepers all
of them, were in the body of the house; and Virginia was above her mother
in the far eastern wing. The muscles in Deborah's body grew more rigid, and
desperately she held herself against the door. But Fairfield was making no
effort to enter. It should be only with her own consent that he would do that.
She shut her eyes and pressed her forehead against her arm. There was a
silence, breathless, endless, terrifying to the girl in the room. Then her
weight of fear was lifted. The footsteps slowly retreated from her door, out
of the spinning-room, down the stairs, and entered into the room below her
own. She sank weakly to her knees, and a breath like a sob shook her slight
frame. She was intensely sleepy now. For very weariness, it was hard to
realize the crisis through which she had passed. But there was a task still
before her, and one at which she trembled. Rising unsteadily, too wise to
give herself time to think, she took the jewel-cases from her toilet-table,
opened her door, crept out, and down the stairs, and passed stealthily back to
madam's dressing-room. The room, the drawer, were as she had left them.
Replacing Virginia's pearls in their bed of lavender, she pushed the drawer
to, inch by inch, till it was closed. Three minutes later she had once more
crossed the threshold of her own room. And while the pale moon set and the
day dawned in crimson and turquoise over the distant Chesapeake, Deborah
slept dreamlessly—Claude, and the Versailles pageants, and Charles
Fairfield's strange madness all lost to her for the moment under the spell of
the great blessing of youth.
Matters were different with Sir Charles, below. No sleep had the dusky
dawn, with its liquid bird-warblings and its fresh day-odor, for him. He was
thinking of what he had done—and of what he should do. The impulse that
had driven him to go to the room above was past now. He knew only that he
had forfeited her very tolerance of him; and the thought quickened his half-
generated love into a sudden, fervid life that swayed his senses and fired his
brain to plots and plans of unwise daring. At six o'clock he was dressed, and
sat him down to wait for Deborah's waking. It was an endless hour, and day
had begun over the whole plantation before he heard her cross the floor over
his head, and knew that his waiting was bounded at last.
Deborah was half dressed before the sudden memory of the past night
flashed over her. Then her hands dropped to her sides, and she sat still for a
little, thinking. How should she meet Charles Fairfield before them all—or,
worse yet, if possible, alone? How could he meet her? Had she done
anything wrong? No. What he had done was not her concern. And
thereupon, with a lighter heart, but doubt still in her face, she finished
dressing, set her room to rights—for she was immaculately neat—and
started away without seeming reluctance. She was going downstairs, her
thoughts centred on the breakfast-room as the place of ordeal. The door at
the stair-foot opened; Sir Charles came out of his room and stood below her,
barring the way.
She stopped stock-still, noting the pallor of his face and the dark circles
below his blue eyes. Then suddenly she smiled, and said, brightly, "Good-
morning, Sir Charles."
She came down the last three steps with a changed expression. "We'll not
speak of that," she said, slowly, in a perfectly frigid tone.
Thereupon she would have passed him, but he caught her suddenly by
the delicate wrists. "Yes, we will speak of it, Debby. I will have it so. You
shall grant me pardon, Debby."
Down the upper hall came the blithe, morning whistle of young Charles
Carroll. He was approaching the stairs.
Deborah gave him a long, strange look from her gray eyes. It was an
inscrutable look, one that baffled him who caught it; but he did not know
that the feeling which it called forth had baffled also the girl.
"Do you return to town this morning?" inquired Fairfield, as they all
passed through the sitting-room.
"You ride to town to-day?" inquired Vincent, when the greetings were
over. "You'll see Rockwell to-morrow, you know, at our famous ball."
Tuesday passed as rapidly or as slowly as one would have had the last
day before a long-looked-for event. Sir Charles rode away in the early
morning, but returned to the plantation in the afternoon, to find even Vincent
busy over a package of finery sent out, at Madam Trevor's order, from the
Baltimore. Sir Charles himself was not interested. His spotless full-dress
uniform, his orders, his finest ruffles, his paste buckles and silk stockings
were quite ready, and there were no further touches that he could add to the
costume. During the afternoon and evening he paid no attention at all to
Deborah, but was, on the contrary, so attentive to his fiancée that Madam
Trevor softened and grew voluble with pleasure.
Wednesday dawned clear and hot, and from earliest morning every
household in the county was in a moil of final preparation. Governor Bladen
was to give a dinner to the commissioners and his own staff and officials
before the ball. To this, of course, Sir Charles had been bidden, and he,
therefore, was to leave the house at four in the afternoon, fully dressed for
the evening, wrapped about in a long and voluminous cloak to protect him
from the dust and the foam of his horse. As he passed through the sitting-
room on his way out to the portico, where his animal waited, he found
Deborah standing by a tableful of moss-roses which she was sorting. Passing
close to her side he said, gallantly: "Faith, Debby, you'll be no fairer to-night
in the satins than you are now in calico." And, while he stopped to take a bud
from the heap, he added, in a rapid undertone: "If you'd not drive me mad,
little girl, bring your courage with you to-night, and see that you trust to me
truly, as I do to you."
Then he passed on, and Deborah, unconscious of what she did, followed
him slowly out to the portico and stood gazing after him as he galloped away
down the dusty drive. Strange words he had spoken—and the first that he
had given her all day. Yet she was not surprised by them. Words were
oftentimes superfluous with Deborah, for she had the power of knowing
men's thoughts. Dreamily her eyes wandered down the road at the little
cloud of dust that lingered after him. She was soon to follow on that way.
And how—how was she to return? She could not answer the question, and it
was as well that Lucy at that moment called her from the house:
"Come, Debby, come and pack your things for the doctor's to-night. And
'tis nearly time to dress; and oh, Deb! Think of the dancing, and the lights,
and our dresses—and all, and all, and all!" And with sober John Whitney
gone quite out of her mind for the moment, Lucy fluttered away to her room,
leaving Deborah to follow as she would.
His excellency John Bladen, like most colonial governors, knew how to
give a dinner to any one, and, most particularly, a dinner to men only. To-
night twenty sat at his table: the seven returned commissioners, the
gubernatorial staff, the speaker of the Burgesses, the under-secretary, Mr.
Robert King, Dr. Charles Carroll (this last from friendship purely), and, for
the sake of the Church, the Reverend George Rockwell. The select company
ate mightily, but, later, drank more cautiously than usual out of respect to the
forthcoming festivities; and finally they sat about the disordered table with
some pipes of fine Virginia tobacco, presented by Governor Gooch in lieu of
his own presence, some bottles of Madeira from the same patronizing
source, and certain good stories, not quite invented for the ear of the Church,
but apparently in no way distasteful to the eminent rector of St. Anne's, who,
indeed, to be frank, told the best of them himself. It was a man's dinner, an
official dinner, where, none the less, the weight of ordinary dignity was for
once dropped off, and all went merry as a marriage bell. Sir Charles was
seated opposite to Benedict Calvert, with a brother lieutenant on either side
of him. His wit was poignant, his laughter ready, and his head cool, albeit
there was enough work in his brain to have made a man less careless too
anxious to eat. Rockwell being several seats away, it was impossible to
speak with him on personal topics; but the moment it was announced that
Lady Bladen waited in the drawing-room, Rockwell and Fairfield sought
each other through the little throng, as if by mutual understanding.
"You're prepared to go through with it, George?" asked the young man,
putting one hand on the rector's shoulder.
"Ay. And so the lady's consented? Faith! She well may! It's such a
chance as she never dreamed of."
"The lady does not know, yet. I'll take her to-night, in the heat of the
evening, when her blood will be up. She's rare, George, she's rare! Odds my
life that such another woman does not live! I—"
"What?"
"Zounds, man, not another word! What do you take me for? She's a
cousin, I tell you, George. And I'm already engaged to Miss Trevor."
"Ay. I couldn't escape. 'Twill be all out to-night. But I'll have little
Deborah if I have to fight Annapolis single-handed."
"Um. About the ceremony—Miriam Vawse will witness for one, but 'tis
usual to have two—"
"Come away, man. You've too much Jamaica in you, and the ladies are
beginning to arrive. I hear Mistress Paca's voice on the stairs. Come and
make your compliments to the Governor's lady."
"Oh, the chaplain's been off so long that he's forgotten how they once
struggled for St. Anne's—"
"Or else he wants to hear the story that George wouldn't tell over the
Madeira."
"Yes, I've listened to it fourteen times, but always with Jamaica to back
it."
"Egad, she's got on green again! 'Tis the only color that does not become
her. Why—"
"There he is—"
One of the young men left the group and joined the knot of ladies who
stood talking at a little distance from the door.
"Your most obedient, Mistress Mason. I can see you will have small
mercy on hearts to-night."
"Lord, Mr. Henry, you're the most open flatterer! I vow I never looked
worse."
"Oh, I protest! I call the gods to witness! Are you engaged for the
minuet?"
"Oh, with thanks. Look, there are the Trevors. They were just in the
dressing-room when I came down. You've heard the news?"
"Monstrous! Monstrous! Why, he's been eating with us for three hours
and never told! Lord! If 'twere any but you had told me, I swear I'd discredit
it. There he goes to them now."
Madam Trevor, her daughters, Vincent, and Deborah were just entering
the room. They had arrived fifteen minutes before, and no time, certainly,
had been wasted in the announcement of Virginia's engagement. The room
was in a buzz of conversation, and not a little of it was relative to the two
young people who now stood rather uncomfortably side by side, Virginia
straight and cold, her companion cursing inwardly at women's tongues, and
staring at the back of Deborah, who was laughing with Will Paca.
Fairfield glanced at her sharply, with surprise in his look. She was
smiling at him in the most unconcerned manner possible. After an instant's
hesitation he bowed deeply, and left her side, but made his way first to Lucy,
who was manoeuvring to avoid Rockwell. From her he obtained two
country-dances, for it was the fashion to change partners after the opening
minuet and every two dances thereafter. Then he proceeded to Deborah, with
whom Carleton Jennings was speaking.
"There now, that's quite enough, Jennings. Go and engage her for a
dance, and pour a few of my graces into her ears. I've come to claim some
attention of Miss Travis," cried Fairfield, with such unabashed good-nature
that Jennings could not be angry. Thereupon, with a smile and an earnest
injunction to Deborah not to forget the promised dances, he went off to
Virginia.
The instant that he was alone with Deborah, Fairfield's artificial manner
dropped from him, and he betrayed the extent to which he had keyed his
nerves.
"You'll give me the fourth and fifth, and the eighth and ninth, Deborah?"
he whispered, huskily, drawing her a little towards the wall.
The girl looked keenly into his pale face. "Two are enough. Why do you
ask more of me?" she inquired.
Deborah did not change color. She scarcely realized what he had said.
The first strains of the opening minuet came from the orchestra up the
room. The moving throng suddenly resolved into order, and various sets of
sixteen were formed. The two Trevor girls were excellent dancers, both
showing appreciation of natural harmony by the way in which they managed
themselves: Lucy lightly, with an occasional added step; Virginia, with
languorous grace, keeping perfect time, yet moving more leisurely than any
other woman in the room. As to Deborah, her dancing was, ordinarily, the
delight of her partner; for, no matter how lively her conversation, she had
never been known to halt at a step. To-night it appeared as though she had
forgotten the very rudiments of the accomplishment. She failed on all the
returns, stumbled in her courtesies, walked upon the train of the lady in front
of her, and, withal, maintained such unbreakable silence throughout the
dance that her partner breathed with relief when the last chord was struck
and the old people prepared to retire to cards. When Will Paca had left her
and Robin Thomas approached for the first country-dance, Deborah shook
herself vigorously, and vowed that for twenty minutes, at least, she would
forget the existence of Sir Charles, in favor of her partner of the moment.
In the mean time Lucy had stumbled into a most unfortunate situation.
The minuet over, she and her companion, talking and laughing together after
the breaking up of the set, passed out of the large drawing-room into the hall,
across which were the card-rooms. Towards these Madam Trevor, with Mrs.
Harwood and Mr. King, was making her way, chatting volubly. As Lucy and
her cavalier passed these three, the gentleman stopped her, smiling:
"Soho! This is the maid who had the impertinence to be engaged before
her elder sister! Little minx! And how d'ye like Mistress Virginia's great
match with your cousin? And will love keep the rectory warm for you while
the windows of Castle Fairfield are blazing with lights in old England? Eh,
small puss?"
Madam Trevor looked extremely ill at ease during this tasteless speech,
especially as Mr. King did not drop Lucy's arm at the end of it, but seemed
to hold her to reply. Lucy's face was flushed scarlet, and, to crown the affair,
George Rockwell, with Vincent at his elbow, suddenly joined the group.
"Not engaged, Lucy! Why, how now! We had all heard from thy mother,
here, that Mr. Rockwell was the happiest of men," cried Mistress Harwood,
noting madam's discomfort with a spice of malice.
"Lucy, name Mr. Rockwell his dances at once, if he would still have
them from any one so discourteous. I blush for you, indeed!" interposed her
mother, sharply.
"Oh, coquetry—coquetry, madam! Youth is light o' heart. Come now, fair
Lucy, and make this man happy," put in Mr. King, detaining her still.
Little Lucy raised her head, and caught Vincent's eyes upon her. His
glance was not unkind. "I shall not grant Mr. Rockwell any dance to-night,
and—and I am engaged, indeed, but not to him."
"What!"
"I am. I am engaged to Will Paca for the next dances." Lucy Lucy was
stumbling now, fear at her daring sweeping suddenly over her.
Mr. King, in the midst of his laughter, found breath to say: "Will Paca for
the dances, but who for the wedding, little Lucy—who's for that?"
Once more Lucy Trevor caught her brother's gaze, and she clung to it,
unheeding Madam Trevor's angry face and Rockwell's mortified one.
"I shall wed John Whitney—the Puritan. Let me go, Mr. King! Mr.
Chase is waiting!"
And Lucy, frightened, triumphant, proud of her faith in the man she
loved, more proud of her certainty of his love for her, tore herself from Mr.
King's loosened grasp, and, giving her hand to Jerry Chase, fairly ran away.
The group that she left behind was silent. Madam Trevor, utterly
overcome, had not a word left at her command. Rockwell was in much the
same state. Vincent, not a little astonished at his gentle sister's boldness, and
deciding that the feeling which prompted it must be strong, was making a
decision that was rather remarkable in, and exceedingly creditable to, a man
of those narrow times. Mistress Harwood planned a morning's gossip on the
morrow with a neighbor, at Antoinette Trevor's expense, and Mr. King
decided that, were he a young blade again, it would be a girl of such spirit
that he would have for his wife. And then, as the strains of the first reel
sounded from the ballroom, the little group broke up.
Sir Charles, with cool forethought, had engaged no partner for these next
two dances, but bent his steps upstairs through the house on an exploring
expedition. He wandered through ladies' cloak-rooms, round halls and
narrow corridors, finally discovering and descending a steep flight of stairs
that took him down to the first floor, through a small passage, and out of the
house into the yard at the back. This was what he had sought. The little door
was open, for slaves and servants had been passing in and out of it through
the whole evening; and so, satisfied in this direction, he returned to the front
of the house at the close of the third dance.
Deborah, just finishing a round of laughter with Carleton Jennings,
received Sir Charles with admirable self-possession, and they took their
place silently in the set, which was a minuet. It was now that Fairfield had
determined to set before the girl his arrangements for the evening's reckless
finale. Under cover of the first slow strains of music and the first careful
steps, he began:
"You know."
"Say it."
Deborah flushed scarlet, and then the color fled, leaving her deathly
white. There was a necessary silence between them, owing to the dance.
When they came together again her partner went on:
"Would you fear, Debby, to walk from here to Mistress Vawse's house
alone at midnight?"
"Ah!"
He pressed to her side for the answer; but the dance presently separated
them and she had not given it. Deborah's blood was running fast; her head
was hot, her eyes brilliant, her cheeks flushed, none of which things would
have been had she had no thought of considering this wild proposition.
Nevertheless, she hesitated. Become Lady Fairfield, and, some day,
something higher? She had dreamed of it, it must be confessed, before she
ever suspected that such a thing could actually be. She had even fancied,
long ago, that she wanted nothing more than Sir Charles; for, as men went,
he was, to her, perfection. But this idea had undergone a change, some time
since. How long since? Did she care to reckon the days? Perhaps they
needed no reckoning. Perhaps Deborah knew very well that since the hour
when her eyes had first met those of Claude de Mailly, Charles Fairfield had
changed for her forever. But Deborah had been hurt by Claude. She would
think of him no more, after that day when, in the midst of the thunder-storm,
they had sat alone in Miriam's tavern, and he had laid bare before her his life
at the Court of France. Claude de Mailly belonged, heart and soul, to another
life. Here was Sir Charles, who could give one to her. Lady Fairfield—
Deborah Fairfield—the name pleased her.
"Debby, will you not answer?" came a tremulous whisper from beside
her. Sir Charles was becoming anxious.
All at once she flung debate, prudence, the conventions, and—the other
man, alike away from her in a jumbled heap, and made reply, clear, firm,
unhesitating, to his question:
In the interval between the eighth and ninth dances Sir Charles again
sought Deborah, and his manner banished a lingering partner from her side.
She did not once look up as Fairfield led the way out into the hall by the
open card-rooms, and then up the distant, deserted staircase.
She shook her head with a faint smile; but her hands were cold.
He put her light cloth cape about her, saw her tie a small hood over her
powdered hair, and then he led the way into the empty hall back of the room.
Down the steep flight of stairs she glided before him, stopping at last before
the closed door, she less nervous than he. "You know the way? Are you not
afraid?"
Without reply, he softly opened the little door, and his face was very pale
as he bent over her: "You'll not fail me, Debby? I love you, dear."
She let him take her hand. Then he bent farther and kissed her swiftly on
the lips, for the first time. Her eyes had looked into his for one startled
instant. Afterwards—she went forth into the night.
Fairfield's heart was on fire as he watched her disappear down the garden
path. Then he closed the door, breathed long and painfully, and made his
way back again to the ballroom, with its throng of dancers, the candles
dripping wax, the musicians mopping their brows, and Vincent Trevor and
George Rockwell side by side in the doorway, looking on together. These Sir
Charles approached upon his errand.
Sir Charles laughed nervously. '"Tis nothing but a most vile headache,
got from the heat of the room and too much dancing. She wouldn't have me
as escort, so I—I sent one of the house-servants with her. She took no chair,
saying that the walk in the fresh air would benefit her. She begs that you'll
not disturb Madam Trevor till the cards are over."
"Oh, very well. I'm sorry, of course. Er—I'm engaged for the next dance.
I leave Rockwell to you." And Vincent darted off abstractedly, after a lively
young woman in blue satin, who seemed in no particular need of his
attentions, being much absorbed in Will Paca.
The rector stood still. "What the—oh! Your young one, eh? Must I come
now?"
Rockwell, who had not yet moved, turned on him suddenly: "Listen, Sir
Charles; if you marry Deborah Travis, I marry her cousin, Lucy Trevor—you
understand?"
"Deuce take it, man, marry whom you please—except Deborah. Why
should I care?"
"You'll promise to take my part to-morrow against that Puritan, John
Whitney?"
And so the two men, one still muttering Lucy Trevor's name, the other
feverishly anxious for the coming scene, passed up-stairs, and down again
presently at the back, where they left the Governor's palace and the ball
behind them, to follow in the footsteps of Deborah Travis, towards the
ordinary of Miriam Vawse.
CHAPTER IX
The day of the Governor's ball had been a dismal one for Claude. The
few people whom he knew in the town were all agog over the prospect of the
evening; and, since Governor Bladen had not heard of the residence of the
Count de Mailly within his territory, the Count had very naturally received
no invitation to the festivities. The hot day did not tempt Claude from his
lodging. He stayed alone in his room, and in the evening, after a solitary
walk, returned to it again, turning over an idea which had been growing on
him for a week—that of leaving Annapolis. After all, its people were nothing
to him. He would move on, as he should have done long before; and the girl,
Deborah Travis, should occupy his thoughts no more. So thinking, with half
his mind across the world, and his heart, did he but know it, all here, Claude
sat, watching the hours, dreaming, as Fate had him do, from dusk into
midnight with her moon and stars.
There was a half inaudible tap upon her door. Miriam started and
hearkened, half believing it her own nerves. Again the tap, more faintly than
before; but now good Miriam ran to open the door.
The hooded figure glided in and moved to the table, panting with the
effects of the long run.
Deborah sank into a chair, threw off hood and cape, and lifted a flushed
face. When Miriam came to her with a cup of strong waters, she drank
gratefully, and presently her expression softened to a smile.
"And you'll leave my door again Lady Fairfield! Oh, Debby, Debby, is it
right? Art sure I've done no wrong?"
"Oh, if there's any wrong, Miriam, 'tis mine." She was still for a moment,
and then remarked: "Cousin Virginia was to marry him."
"But he only asked for her two days ago—that is, madam and Vincent
made him. And then—and then—"
"But where can he be? He was to come directly. He vowed he'd be here
at once with George Rockwell. Oh, Miriam! If he shouldn't come!"
"Lord! How can you think of such things!" cried Mistress Vawse,
hurrying to the window. Deborah followed her nervously.
"He'll come. He'll come. Now sit down again quietly. There. That's
comfortable. And so you love him dearly. How long has it been? All the
summer? D'ye know, Debby, once I thought 'twasn't Sir Charles. I didn't
know. I thought 'twas him."
Mistress Vawse swept her thumb mysteriously upward towards the stairs.
Suddenly into Deborah's cheeks rose two vivid spots of color. She made no
answer to the woman's questions. But, indeed, there was not time now.
Footsteps were halting at the threshold, and there came a light, masculine tap
at the door. Miriam flew to open it. Deborah rose unsteadily. Fairfield and
Rockwell together entered the room.
Sir Charles went quickly to the girl's side, while the rector stayed behind
to say a few words to Mistress Vawse, who was an ardent parishioner of his.
Deborah remained passive as her lover caressingly lifted her hand to his lips,
and looked at her with deep-seated feeling.
"Miss Travis, permit me to salute you for the second time this evening,
and to congratulate you upon such a prospect of romantic happiness as is
now opening to your vision," remarked Rockwell, with his most Johnsonian
air, as he came forward.
"Since it is in your power alone to bestow that happiness, George, let us,
for God's sake, be about it!" exclaimed Fairfield, in a passionately low voice.
"Now then, Mistress Vawse, another candle or two. Charles will stand
the expense; for I vow I must have light enough to tell the lady from her
husband."
Deborah quivered at the last word, which, indeed, Rockwell had thrown
at her.
There was a dead silence as Miriam placed three more candles on the
table, and lit them at the flame of the first. Then the clergyman took from
one of the pockets of his coat the prayer-book, and motioned the two to
move back a little towards the empty fireplace. Deborah's heart had almost
stopped beating, and her throat was so strained that she could not have
spoken a word. Sir Charles, taking her arm, gently drew her to his side, and
looked to Rockwell, who stood in front of them. He began to speak softly,
omitting not a word of the service, even the address to the people assembled,
now solely represented by Mistress Vawse, who was supporting herself
against the table.
"Oh!" cried Sir Charles, with a sudden start, "we were to have had
another fellow—a witness—that de Mailly—don't you know, George?"
After the sharp pause, the rector was first to speak: "Well, now that he's
here, we'll go on. Come down, sir, and be witness to this marriage."
Claude was very white as he replied, with his slight accent: "I will
remain here. I can see and hear quite perfectly, if I am necessary."
"Go on, then! Go on!" cried Sir Charles, wiping his brow.
"'—and in the face of this company to join together this man and—'"
"No—no—stop!"
In amazement, Rockwell obeyed the huskily whispered command. It was
from Deborah, and Deborah now, her cheeks feverishly flushed, eyes
brilliant, lips parted, and breath quickened, moved, as if drawn by
magnetism, from Fairfield's side to the stairs. After a moment of confused
silence, Fairfield said, with unnatural calm:
"No."
"Come back."
"No."
"Don't you understand? What is the matter? What are you doing?"
"Deborah!"
After that cry from Fairfield there was silence. The rector, Sir Charles,
and Miriam Vawse stood as if petrified, staring at the girl, who faced them
with quiet, dogged resolution written in her face. Claude, from the stairs,
looked down upon her, scarcely surprised, perhaps, but with a very gentle
light in his eyes. His deliberate descent into the room was the first move
made by any one. Going over to Rockwell's side, he laid a finger on the
clergyman's arm:
Deborah shrank back against the stairs; but, lo! with an adroit movement,
Claude was at her side, with evident intention of interposing.
"— — you! You French hound! Out of my way! I'll have you know your
place!"
There was barely a second's pause, then came a little whipping sound as
two blades were drawn. Claude sprang on guard as Fairfield lunged. There
was a flash of steel. The Frenchman made the riposte, and his sword just
pierced the white ruffled shirt of his opponent, breaking the skin. The
lieutenant paid no attention to it. De Mailly returned into tierce, and parried
the second attack with immaculate grace. Rockwell, his eyes wide with
interest, dropped his book and came over to watch the duel. It did not
endure, however. After Sir Charles' third unsuccessful attempt to break the
French guard, he felt his sword-blade seized, lifted, and himself pushed
back. Claude's blade dropped. Deborah had taken command of the situation.
Drawing Sir Charles' sword out of his passive hand, she gave it to Miriam
Vawse, who had sunk into a chair, on the verge of hysteria. In helpless
amazement she received the rapier, finding strength nevertheless to rise and
go with it towards the stairs as Deborah spoke to her in whispered
imperative. Presently, then, Deborah was alone with the rector, the Count,
and Sir Charles. All three paid tribute to her supremacy with expectant
silence. Fairfield was sunk in desperate dejection, Rockwell merely amazed,
Claude mentally reeling, for the horizon of his life was changed. It was a
blank no longer. Many things were taking shape upon it. He was prepared,
when Deborah took two or three hesitating steps towards him, and said, in a
half-whisper:
"I must go back—to Dr. Carroll's. Will you—take me?"
With a glad light in his face, he came at once to her side. "I thank you,
mademoiselle, for the honor you offer me. My life is yours."
"Let us go, then," she said, her voice low and trembling dangerously.
Suddenly Charles Fairfield rushed forward and, seizing both her hands,
fell upon his knees. "Deborah! Deborah! Deborah! I love you! In the name
of God Almighty, give me some hope! I meant everything honestly—
honorably—do you hear? The marriage would have been legal. Rockwell
will swear that to you. What right have you—Debby! Debby, you promised!
Is it true that you don't care?"
Deborah drew away from him as far as she could. Her face was drawn
and weary, and no light in her eyes answered his entreaties. Claude, who had
watched her narrowly, now interposed. Grasping the other's hands, he forced
them, with a single twist, from Deborah's helpless ones, and then, with that
kind of brute strength that comes to all men at times, he lifted the
Englishman bodily to his feet, thrust him back, took Deborah gently about
the waist, and carried her to the door. Opening it, he turned around. Miriam
Vawse, from the stairway, saw his face as she had never beheld it before,
white, set, triumphant, his greenish eyes blazing like jewels as he cried out to
Fairfield, who was stiff with fury:
"We will meet—where you like, when you like, how you like, but not in
the presence of ladies, monsieur."
The door closed, and Claude and Deborah were alone together in the
still, white moonlight. She walked herself, now, only clinging fast to his arm,
and trembling with the strain of the long evening. They were half-way to the
doctor's before either spoke. Then Deborah whispered, just audibly:
"I have fought for far slighter things than this. But do not be alarmed.
There will not be much blood shed."
Deborah shuddered, but was silent. She longed unutterably to try to
justify herself to this man, to explain the reason for her behavior; and, as if
divining her thought, he presently asked, quietly:
"How, mademoiselle, did you come to do this thing? Do you love this Sir
Charles? Did you think of the imprudence?"
Suddenly all thoughts but one fled from her. This one she voiced with
quick eagerness: "I do not love Sir Charles! Indeed—indeed—believe me—I
do not love him."
One hand of hers he took, and the moonlight and the woodbine kissed
each other as he touched it to his lips.
"Good-night," he said. And then, without more, he let her go, saw her
pass up to the door, in her pale dress and light cloak, with hooded head bent
low. He heard her knock, and presently saw the door opened by a sleepy
servant. Then he turned away, back towards the tavern of Miriam Vawse.
"I had a headache, Jeremiah," she explained, faintly. "I came home—
with one of the Governor's house-blacks. Where's the candle?"
"Oh yes, yes, Jerry. Send Leah up with a cup of posset and some bread.
That's all."
"Yes'm. Lor! Yo' done got headache fo' shuah!" he muttered, watching
the candle that she held shake so that the flame was endangered, as she
passed up the stairs to bed.
CHAPTER X
"What time was it when you reached home last night, Deborah?" asked
Madam Trevor.
The doctor, his sisters, and their guests were seated at a very late
breakfast, of which extremely little was being eaten.
"You will not complain of your health in this manner, before us all. It is
most unladylike!" said Madam Trevor, sharply.
Lucy quivered and shrank into silence. She was in the highest disfavor
with her mother this morning, and only too well did she know why. Aching
head or not, there was an ordeal ahead of her for the afternoon, to endure
which she was inwardly praying for strength, but over which she was in
reality desperate. If Rockwell appeared at the plantation, as he had vowed to
do, with Madam Trevor still in this morning's mood, poor Lucy knew that
John Whitney's fate and hers hung in a hopeless balance. And there was no
one to whom she could look for help. Virginia and Deborah would be very
kind, but neither of them could bring any opposition to her mother's
intention. Of Vincent she did not think at all. Had she done so, it would have
been merely to add a new despair; for to consider Vincent as her ally against
his mother was impossible on the face of it. So little Lucy reasoned,
dolefully, through the meal, till her attention was caught by Vincent's
question:
"Sir Charles is not in the house," replied the doctor, with a quick glance
at Virginia, whose face was perfectly passive.
"Oh, very little, I fancy. Last night, as we came up Church Street, I saw
him with Rockwell at the door of the 'Three Blue Balls.' He was probably
about to celebrate his happiness. Young men, you know."
Vincent's face grew dark. "Pretty ways for Rockwell," he muttered; and
St. Quentin, whose eye was upon him, nodded slightly.
Lucy took sudden heart, but was wise enough not to look up till her
mother, much displeased, rose from the table, and so ended the meal.
Her son bowed courteously, and presently disappeared into the doctor's
study, where he took the liberty of making use of his host's desk for a few
moments. Upon finishing his note he carried it out to the deserted dining-
room, where Jeremiah was clearing the table.
"I'll explain that I sent you off. Here's a note to be taken round to the
cottage that Mr. John Whitney lives in. He's a Puritan parson. His house is
just on the other side of the Gloucester Street bridge. Give him this note,
Jerry, and here's a shilling for some extra tobacco, if you get it to him by
eleven o'clock. Understand?"
"Ye-ah! He'll get it 's mo'n fo' shuah. Thanks, Mist' Trev'."
Showing all his glistening teeth, the negro pocketed the coin, which no
slave was supposed to possess, and, leaving his work unfinished, departed at
once on the very welcome errand which served to let him out of the house
for an hour into the August sunshine.
Vincent found the doctor in the hall, and lightly touched his arm: "I have
sent your black, Jerry, on an errand, Carroll. It was important, or I shouldn't
have presumed. You'll pardon me?"
"My dear Vincent, while you are with me my house is yours. Don't speak
of it. So soon, madam? This is a niggardly visit, I vow!"
Carroll hurried forward as Madam Trevor entered the hall. She had just
come down, the three young women behind her, each carrying a package
containing her party finery and night garments. The coach and Vincent's
riding-horse were already at the door. After a chorus of farewells and
acknowledgments of hospitality, the ladies were finally settled in the roomy
vehicle, which set off in a whirl of dust down Gloucester Street. On their
way through the town they passed the door of the "Blue Balls" tavern, and
madam bit her lip.
For an instant Virginia's lip curled scornfully. Then all the former
indifference came back again to her face. She made no reply to her mother's
words, but, as they continued on their way, some other train of thought
brought a new expression to her fine features—an expression of resigned
sorrow, of hidden suffering, of strong repression, that her mother did not see,
and could not have read even had she noticed it. The rest of the drive was
silent. Madam Trevor, seated beside Virginia, was very firm of lip, very
straight of shoulder, very immovable as to hands. Lucy and Deborah, on the
opposite side of the coach, had no desire to indulge in the usual ball
reminiscences common to young girls. One of them was anxious-eyed and
pale with foreboding; the other sat motionless, eyes closed, face unreadable,
but enduring such inward tumult as none, seeing her, could have conceived.
Claude, in his court costume and hired vehicle, stopping at the door of
Deborah's home, found Jim, the stable-boy, white-eyed and open-mouthed
with amazement at his dress, waiting to receive him and to fetch water for
the horses.
"I am seeking Mr. Trevor—and—madame," said Claude, on the step of
the portico.
"M. de Mailly! You honor us, sir!" Vincent, who had witnessed the
arrival, appeared from the hall and came hastily out to meet his guest. His
astonishment at such a costume as he had never before, even in England,
beheld, was, perhaps, visible in his face; but if Claude perceived it he said
nothing.
"Come inside, will you not? The heat is great to-day. We—Rockwell is
here," explained the host, in a slightly disconcerted tone. He was expecting
another visitor, and de Mailly's arrival was ill-timed.
Side by side they entered the hall, wherein, all very stiff as to
appearance, and even more uncomfortable in expression, sat Madam Trevor,
Lucy, Virginia, and George Rockwell. There was the usual series of
salutations, followed by a pause so heavy, so unbreakable, that Claude
flushed. He glanced at the rector, to find that gentleman glaring at him with a
mixture of intense apprehension and extreme anger. Madam Trevor looked
infinitely annoyed, and her lips were firmly set. Lucy, dull, mute,
motionless, was pathetically hopeless. Finally, Virginia, with a kind of dry
humor, set herself to save the situation.
Claude turned to her quickly: "I have not that honor, Miss Trevor. I had,
indeed, understood that your sister was already—um—bespoken. I came to
ask of Mr. Trevor that I may pay my addresses to Miss Travis."
Rockwell breathed, a sweat broke gently upon his brow, and all danger
of spontaneous combustion was happily at an end.
"Deborah, madame," repeated Claude, quietly.
At the same moment a dusty figure ascended the portico steps and came
presently into the hall. At sight of him Lucy grew pink, Rockwell purple,
and Virginia Trevor very white. Madam bridled as she saw her son grasp the
"Puritan" cordially by the hand, and Claude glanced rapidly over the face
and figure, which were not unlike his own.
John Whitney looked measuredly round the circle, greeted his rival with
perfect imperturbability, sent a long glance into Lucy's eyes, and profoundly
saluted Madam Trevor, who returned the bow with the barest inclination of
her head. Then Vincent spoke:
"M. de Mailly, let me make you known to the Reverend Mr. Whitney, of
Boston. Gentlemen, you are here on like errands. 'Tis a curious thing.
Perhaps—it were as well to settle all, here, at once."
"I protest, sir!" cried Rockwell, jumping up. "The present matter lies
between Mistress Lucy, Master Whitney, and myself. I vow no stranger shall
be in it!"
"I cannot see any necessity for discussion, Vincent. Lucy is promised to
Mr. Rockwell. Mr.—Whitney has nothing to do with the affair," observed
Madam Trevor, rather insolently.
The controversy being now open, Claude was, for the moment, forgotten.
"Madam, I crave pardon, but Mr. Whitney has just this to do with the
matter. It appears, from all I have heard, that Lucy herself does not care for
Mr. Rockwell as she should care for the man she marries. Also—I believe—
she does so care for Mr. Whitney."
"Let me ask, Mr. Whitney, what means you have at your disposal for this
young lady's support? How many slaves have you? How—
At this last Claude opened his eyes widely, Rockwell looked put out, and
Madam Trevor glanced at the speaker with a new expression.
Vincent, turning from the Puritan with the barest smile at his earnestness,
addressed his rival: "And you, George Rockwell—what have you?"
Rockwell cleared his throat, and rose as if he were to speak from the
pulpit: "My income from St. Anne's is, I confess without mortification, no
greater than that which this gentleman—um—ah—has just said to be his
portion from the meeting-house. My fees and perquisites as Church of
England clergyman, however, make the sum far larger annually. I think also
that you, madam, and Mistress Lucy, will recognize the difference between
the—to speak gently—the somewhat humble abode of Mr. Whitney and the
rectory which I myself have the honor to occupy, and where I am
accustomed to entertain his excellency himself."
"Pardon me, sir, but could you indeed imagine that, after my marriage, I
should not instantly remove to an abode more suited than my present one to
a lady's convenience? Do you imagine—"
"You interrupt, sir. I make no observations on what your conduct will be.
I am only aware of what it is."
"I was sure," interrupted Rockwell, hastily, for the point was delicate—"I
was sure that you would regard it as well—nay, might as a pride consider it
indispensable, Vincent, that—"
"Stop! Let me go away." Lucy had risen, quivering, to her feet, her mild
eyes blazing, her voice low and unnatural. "I will not be bargained for,
bought and sold, as slaves or horses are. Vincent, you have insulted me by
permitting such a scene. And you—" turning to Whitney and Rockwell
—"you are heartless and soulless. Love! What do you know of that?"
She turned, with Virginia at her side, and, not looking again at any one in
the room, swept away towards the west wing. As her daughter departed,
Madam Trevor rose undecidedly, then reseated herself, with a new and firm
intention of having more to say in the forthcoming battle than she had had
heretofore. Three of the men, Vincent and the rivals, were staring at each
other, Whitney and Trevor in mortification, Rockwell merely in surprise.
"I apologize to you, Mr. Trevor, and to Mistress Lucy, for my utterly
thoughtless and discourteous behavior," cried Whitney. "Indeed, I was
thoughtless and unfeeling. I most painfully acknowledge that your sister's
anger became the situation."
"Oh—the lady was piqued, sir, at your lack of worldly goods," observed
Rockwell, with a grin of ingenuous conceit.
Claude regarded the man with languid disgust. Vincent flushed angrily,
and Madam Trevor rose.
"We waste time, gentlemen," she said. "It is perfectly fitting that these
matters should form part of the discussion. For my part, Mr. Rockwell, I am
entirely with you. I wish my daughter to marry you, since I believe you
competent of caring for her as should be. As to the settlements, of course—"
"Pardon me, madam, but this is quite useless," interrupted Vincent,
coming forward, with the light of sudden resolve in his eyes. "You are aware
that once before this matter has been most unsatisfactorily decided in this
way. My sister has continually denied your statement that she was affianced
to Mr. Rockwell, and I have been led to believe that it was through her
attachment to Mr. Whitney, who some time since honorably professed to me
his love for her. As legal head of this house, then, I cannot feel it otherwise
than just to insist that my sister herself, and none other, shall choose between
these two; and I now say that it shall be entirely without consideration of
dower, settlement, or—perquisite. Further, I maintain that, if Lucy choose to
reject both of these gentlemen, of her own free will, she shall thereafter be
housed and protected under my roof till she find some one to her taste, or till
she die here unmarried."
"Well spoken, sir!" cried Whitney, bravely, while Madam Trevor stood
aghast, and Claude, intensely interested in the scene, deliberatively crossed
the room and sat down with his back to the wall.
"I am thinking only of Lucy's happiness," returned her son, gently. "She
must be called to come back."
Vincent left the room; but, in spite of herself, his mother stayed. She was
too deeply interested to go; and, despite her traditions, Lucy's happiness was
really quite as dear to her as to her son. Claude, from behind the others,
philosophized a little in the silence. How differently had such a scene been
conducted in his country! There would have been no argument, no difficulty.
Above all, Lucy herself would have been the last person to be consulted.
Rockwell, for his means and position, would certainly have been chosen;
and, if it were a Court affair, Whitney might have become her general escort
afterwards. Claude sighed. This colonial boorishness produced far better
results. Ethics here were regarded with some degree of blind appreciation. In
his own country it was not so. A second sigh was in his heart when Lucy,
preceded by her brother, re-entered the room.
There was still perfect silence. Near the doorway the young girl paused.
She was pale and red-eyed, but steady of manner. The two clergymen, side
by side, faced her, with Vincent to the right, and his mother upon the left.
Claude, quite forgotten, still looked on from the opposite wall.
"Lucy, I have brought you back here that you yourself may make choice
between these men. Let me now, then, entreat you, most earnestly, to
consider, to decide not hastily, but as in heart and mind you deem wisest.
Love is not always all. Respect—firmness—wisdom—ability to protect—
these are as strong. I place confidence in you, Lucy; and, in return, I ask
sincerity from you. We will wait as long as you will. Choose."
During his words Lucy had looked earnestly at her brother. Now,
however, her eyes fell. A delicate smile broke over her face, and when
finally she looked up it was to encounter the eyes of John Whitney, who was
regarding her with a look of such mingled love, fear, and longing, that she
would not torture him by suspense. Gently she extended one hand, one arm
to him, while her lips smiled "Come," and her face grew beautiful with the
love-light in it.
He went, never heeding the rest, no longer aware, perhaps, that they were
by. And, as he clasped her in his strong, young, Puritan arms, Claude looked
courteously out o' window, but Madam Trevor, with a curious dryness in her
throat, turned suddenly away.
As to Rockwell, he left the house very quietly, with just what feeling in
his heart no one ever knew.
Then Vincent, all at once perceiving Claude, and remembering his pink
satin errand, took him quietly by the arm, and led him into the parlor,
Madam Trevor following them. The three sat down in the stiff little
apartment, the closed door shutting the two in the hall from their sight.
Claude's hour of patience was ended. His time had come now, and he was
astonished to find himself nervous.
"I must, sir, crave your indulgence for my seeming discourtesy in
keeping you waiting so long. However, as you have been a witness of the
affair which detained me, you may perhaps be lenient with my rudeness."
Inwardly, Claude smiled at the words. They struck him as being very
absurd, though, according to prevailing English notions, they were
excellently chosen.
"I love your cousin, Mistress Deborah Travis, Mr. Trevor, and I am come
to you to request permission to—address her on the subject of marriage. I am
a stranger in your colony. I have no friends who know my family and estate.
I have brought with me such papers as I possess, such as can in any way
speak for the assurance of my birth, and them, and my word as a gentleman,
I must ask you to believe."
Vincent was silent for some moments, considering; while Claude drew
from one of his side pockets a little, flat parcel of papers, and sat nervously
fingering them. It was Madam Trevor, who, after she had once more
minutely examined him, from his bag-wig to his red-heeled shoes, voiced
Vincent's wish:
"Will you, sir, be so vastly obliging as to tell us, in your own manner,
your title, estate, lineage, and means of livelihood? I am sure, sir, that
common prudence and the ardent desire for the welfare of my ward will
seem to you adequate reason for such a request, and that you will have no
hesitation in being perfectly frank with us."
"It is—pardon me, sir—an unusual story. Do they exile men in France
for having opinions concerning a cousin's marriage?"
Claude hesitated. The last sentence in that royal letter was the most
awkward possible thing for a man who wished, in all sincerity, to marry.
Long he studied young Trevor's face, and he saw the distrust therein growing
with every instant. At last, with an imperceptible shrug, and a sigh, he took
from his other pocket the small, worn paper with its red-brown seals that he
had read to Deborah.
Vincent took the paper scornfully, and began its perusal with a facility
due to intercourse with Aimé St. Quentin. When he finished it, his mother
held out her hand for the letter, and, as she read, Vincent, looking squarely
into the other's eyes, said, slowly:
"You, monsieur, were the gentleman of whose marriage with your cousin
the King did not approve?"
"Good Heaven!"
Madam Trevor, her face suddenly all alight, was looking at the young
fellow in amazement—and something else. Could the other be admiration?
Claude nodded.
Silence.
"M. de Mailly, you may speak to Deborah. She has free choice—as did
Lucy. She is now—in the rose-garden, I think."
Claude sprang to his feet and moved forward a pace or two, looking
easily from one to the other of Deborah's guardians. He could not refrain
from taking snuff, nor, having finished, from remarking, slowly:
Thereupon, with two very polite bows, he left the parlor, alone. On
entering the hall he was greeted by the sound of pawing hoofs, a negro's
voice, and the steps of two men on the portico. The half-closed door was
flung wide open, and Benedict Calvert, with Fairfield at his heels, entered
the house. Claude stopped and turned to them.
Calvert laughed.
"My business here, Sir Charles, concerns myself. However, if you are
curious, I am about to offer myself to your cousin, Miss Travis."
Claude spoke with muscles tense, prepared to evade a sword thrust, for
he himself wore no rapier to-day. To his amazement, his words for a moment
produced no effect whatever on his quondam rival. Then, suddenly, while
Calvert gazed at his comrade, Fairfield burst into a laugh. It was not a
pleasant laugh, but it served its turn.
"What a household 'twill be! You and Deb, I and Virginia, Lou and her
Puritan parson—for whom Benedict's come to plead. A fine match-maker
y'are, Calvert. Why, monsieur, if 't'adn't been for him," pointing to the dark-
browed ex-commissioner, "I would ha' called you out. As 'tis now, I'll—
marry in a week, and be off for God's country, the Mall, St. Paul's, and
White's as soon as a vessel will sail; and be damned to the colonies!"
"Hush, Charlie! Get to your room," whispered Calvert, laying a quiet
hand on Fairfield's arm.
Fairfield leered at him, with a glint of desperation in his eyes, and started
off to the west wing, with Benedict Calvert at his elbow, while Claude de
Mailly, musing gently, passed out into the golden mist of early twilight, on
his way to the rose-garden and Deborah.
CHAPTER XI
Distant Versailles
He walked, quite leisurely, over the turf beside the house, past the
western wing, towards the terraces that led into the garden. The sunset faced
him in a blinding, hazy radiance. At the top of the little flight of white steps
he paused. Silence, perfect, lonely, was all about, undisturbed by the bird-
notes from the woods, or the murmurous lapping of the river along its bank.
Once or twice he breathed, long and deeply, delighted with the pure
fragrance of the air. Then, without haste, he passed down into the garden.
What a chaotic mass of color it was! All the common garden flowers,
perennials and exotics, were at his feet; clove-pinks, sweet-williams,
marigolds, blue iris, candy-tuft, corn-flowers, purple-stock, cyanus,
carnations, poppies, balsam, fragrant herbs innumerable, the last sweet-
pease, pansies and dahlias—all in a disorderly tangle of glory. But beyond
these bourgeoisie of the flowers, in statelier rows, with only here and there a
blossom in their dark and lustrous foliage, was the noblesse, the court of the
flowers—the rose-garden. In the midst of this, upon a little rustic seat against
the northern wall, in a tumbled, forlorn heap, her face hidden in her arm, her
unkempt curls all loose upon her neck, lay Deborah—poor Deborah, whose
little colonial world had crumbled about her, and left her alone, wretched,
hopeless, in space. In the afternoon despair overcame her. Her work was
over, and she was at liberty to think unprofitable thoughts. So, after an hour
of tears here in the drowsy garden, the day finally brought what peace it had
to give, and she slept—was sleeping now, in the twilight, while Claude and
her new world came to her.
"Deborah!"
In slow wonderment the tangled head lifted, the white face, with its tear-
stained cheeks, was raised, and the gray-blue eyes fell open sleepily. He did
not speak while she looked at him, the actual presence corresponding, with
startling accuracy, to her dream.
"I could not go while you were here," he answered, seating himself
beside her.
She sighed like a child. She seemed to-day many years younger than
usual, and Claude looked at her curiously, wondering at her manner.
She made no answer, but perhaps he read her mind, for he grew troubled.
One thought held each of them. It was that of the fair and stately Duchess—
la Châteauroux, whom Claude had loved. And which picture was the fairer,
Claude's memory or Deborah's imagination, it were hard to tell.
After a moment or two the pause became more than uncomfortable. Both
sat in growing rigidity, looking straight before them, thinking, helplessly.
Then, all at once, Deborah, with fearful hesitation, turned her head and
looked into his face. And suddenly, when Claude's poor hope was all but
dead, one of her hands, cold and tremulous, crept into that passive one of his
that lay beside her on the seat. It was her answer. How the promise was
sealed—need not be told.
Twilight deepened over the shadow of the dead day. Behind the black,
lacy tree-tops of the forest a sunset flush pulsated in crimson and gold. From
the still garden the evening fragrance, intoxicating, heart-stilling, to which
neither the sunny morning odors nor the night's holy incense could be
compared, floated in warm, rich breaths about the figures of the man and
woman whose lives had come to join each other over wide seas and many
lands. The spell of the evening was over them both. Their eyes wandered.
Their thoughts were still. Hand in hand, two of God's pilgrims met here to
rest a little ere they moved on again, they sat, silent, nerveless, feeling,
perhaps, more of the universal love than that of individuals. No prophecy of
storms to come disturbed their hour. Only the garden and the timeless
twilight enfolded them. The bird-songs, one by one, melted away. The waves
whispered unutterable things. And so, out upon the pale sunset, hanging
tremulous as by a thread of heaven, came a fair silver jewel—the evening
star. Deborah's eyes beheld it, and were riveted upon its liquid beauty.
She made no answer, only her hand tightened within his, as the evening
wind blew softly from the west.
Book III
THE POST
CHAPTER I
From Metz
"None."
"Is still on guard; sees none but her own servants, and—"
"I fear not. There fly rumors—that his Majesty grows hourly worse. If
this continues, the army will be in revolt, the women will be mobbed, and—
Quesnay may be permitted to prolong the reign."
It was August in the same year of 1744, and the heart of France, her
army, her Court, her King, and—her Châteauroux, was at Metz, in Alsace, a
resting-place sought after Dettingen and the long summer campaign. And
here at Metz, whence all had thought to depart a week before for Nancy, on
the road to Strasbourg, Louis XV. fell ill. That had been upon the 8th day of
the month. Now, on the 14th, slow-gathering consternation was spreading
through city, Court, and camp, though, since the morning of his seizure, not
a single soul save Mme. de Châteauroux, her sister Mme. de Lauraguais,
their personal servants, and Louis Armand de Richelieu had seen the King.
Dim rumors that the illness was feigned at first circulated through the
château. Then, latterly, more vivid and more startling theories, originating
none knew where, but spreading with the conviction of truth, voiced the
insistence that Louis was ill, worse than any one knew, and that the favorite,
coercing Richelieu into her service, desperate with the fear of dismissal
from Court when his Majesty's condition came to be discovered, was at
Louis' side, keeping at bay the army, the Court, and the kingdom. Marie
Leczinska and her dauphin were still at Versailles, praying and fasting,
along with the Jesuit fathers and the wearied dames du palais, who, in the
absence of la Châteauroux, had not a single crumb of gossip with which to
comfort their souls till the return of the Court.
The throng about Chartres pressed silently closer, and the salon waited
breathlessly for reply. The young Duke turned a shade paler, and did not
open his lips.
Chartres hurried forward through the respectful but eager throng, seized
Richelieu's arm with a whispered sentence, and drew him out of the salon to
a room inaccessible to courtiers.
On the morning of Saturday, the 8th, that morning when headache had
driven the King from prospective gayeties to the solitude of his own
apartment, he summoned his Duchess to his side to bear him company. The
morning was tedious. He could not be amused. In the afternoon, together
with fever, came Richelieu, and graceful, caustic-tongued Elise de
Lauraguais. And upon that afternoon, when no one dreamed how ill Louis
already was, and madame and the Duke were alone with him, Richelieu the
daring, now owing half his prestige to the favorite whose sponsor he had
once been, and who, without her, would have found his Court life infinitely
difficult, had thought, foreseen, dreaded, decided, and easily drawn the
woman into his plan. The admission of any other to the rooms must mean,
eventually, the confession, absolution, and unction of his Majesty. Before
the performance of this last, Louis must repent of his irregular life, and as
proof of repentance madame must receive her congé—for such was only
customary at the great Court of France.
"And so, Anne," Richelieu said to her, in a low, menacing tone, "we
keep our places here, you and I. If the King recovers, our power is
unlimited."
And Richelieu, nervously smoothing his knee, looked at her with grim
significance. "We stake high," he said.
Then silence fell again, while the lips of la Châteauroux closed more
firmly, and a rarely seen light came into her eyes. Richelieu's expression,
however, did not change. Was it possible that her courage in desperation
was greater than his? No. It was this. Richelieu was not yet desperate. There
was, for him, still one move that was not left to her. He would not
necessarily be banished from Court if it came to a point of extreme unction
and madame. But if the King of France were to expire here alone, with
them, then Louis Armand du Plessis might, indeed, tremble for what
happiness life held for him. He said nothing, however, yet. Twilight
mingled with the dark. From many windows glimmered forth the city lights,
and madame finally swallowed a cup of chocolate and sought her rest.
Richelieu was left to watch alone, in the darkness, by the King.
Louis XV. slept, now and then restless with fever, but for the most part
quietly. The Duke sat in his chair by the window, the sultry night air
stealing in to him, not asleep, but thinking of many things, of much history
known to him alone of Court, of camp, of street, and of the lives of real
men. All men, beneath their masks of manners, are very real! What a little
game these courtiers played! How lives were broken and intellects stunted
for the sake of being, for one little hour, associated with that single man
born, willy-nilly, to immortality in history! This very King, for whom he,
Richelieu, was living a life envied and unenviable, what was he but a
disagreeable fellow, handsome, rather sulky, either really or unaffectedly
stupid, lazy, unutterably weary of himself and his business, with more of a
taste for turning and cookery than for governing a kingdom or managing an
army? After all, these Bourbons might have made an excellent line of
workmen, all but Louis XIV., who would have been the ne'er-do-weel of
them. Not one but had his taste and real talent for an honest profession. And
how were France to-day, we wonder, had Louis XV. turned chef and Louis
XVI. cultivated to its utmost his no mean ability for locks and clocks? The
night grew hotter as it advanced, and rain was promised for the morrow.
"No. It disturbs my eyes. Listen to what I shall say. You are here? Yes.
Well, then, I am going to die."
"More wine, then. Diable! My head is on fire! More wine, and I sleep
again."
Richelieu refilled the glass, which his master drained to the last drop.
Then he sank back to the pillows, turned restlessly half a dozen times,
whistled a bar or two in the darkness, and so dozed again, while the Duke,
with a new and very heavy weight upon his heart, returned to the window.
The King had frightened him more than he dared confess to himself.
Certainly Louis' words had been unmistakably sincere. He believed that he
was going to die. The King's fear of danger to his favorite Duchess was well
founded, unquestionably. But the King's confidence in Richelieu's ability to
rise again in the world, Richelieu himself held in very decided doubt. If
matters were come to this pass, it were well to act. When a man's Damocles
has actually got to the single-hair state, that man, if there be any way in
which to move, does very well to get from under it, though he must leave a
companion behind, helpless, in his place. The King must live till morning,
must absolutely live till morning, and then—Richelieu would once more
prove himself a wise man. He must turn traitor to his personal trust with
madame and the King, too, for the sake of the safety of the King, and,
therefore, his own. If he regretted the inevitable consequences in the career
of la Châteauroux, he was philosopher enough to wave them aside without
difficulty. Something one must lose in such a place. It should be as little as
possible.
On Friday morning the King awoke to find his three attendants all
beside him, and what repast he might take—chocolate, a roll, a jelly—not
too well prescribed, waiting. From his manner one could not have told
whether or not he recalled that midnight conversation with du Plessis.
Certainty he looked ill enough this morning. His flushed face was haggard,
his lips cracked, his blue eyes dull, his brain feeble, but half working.
Madame looked upon him with a pang of grief and fear. While she
smoothed out his bright yellow locks, freed from their wig, and bathed his
unpainted face and dry hands with scented water, her sister holding the
silver basin, Richelieu disappeared. An hour later, when the room was again
still, a fly or two buzzing at the window, Mme. de Lauraguais purfling,
Marie Anne beside the drowsy King, the Duke had not yet returned. It was
the longest absence that he had made from the bedside, except for sleep.
That he was not asleep now, madame knew very well. His bed in the royal
suite had been made. He had let himself quite out of these rooms, and was
gone—to whom? Whither? And Mme. de Châteauroux, though she trusted
Richelieu as she did herself, became, after a little, nervous with anxiety for
his return. Presently she moved over to Mme. de Lauraguais, her puppet-
shadow.
"I think that he has gone to de Gêvres. He will bring us back some news
of the Court. It will be something to divert his Majesty this afternoon, and
something for us to listen to this morning. Heigh-ho!"
At this moment the King's hand slipped through the bed-curtains and
drew one of them aside till his face was visible. Smiling faintly at the
Duchess, he motioned her to him with a peculiar glance. "Du Plessis is out,
you say?"
Madame nodded.
The door from the broad hall to the anteroom had opened. For an instant
madame's heart stood still. Then Richelieu, patch-box in hand, came
leisurely in.
"Ah!" The relief in the sigh was very apparent. "You have been absent
so long, we became anxious."
"He—"
Louis suddenly dropped the curtain, hid himself from view, and so
signified that he was not to be disturbed.
"He has just been speaking with us," whispered la Châteauroux, moving
again across to her sister.
"You are exhausted from having watched all night. Go and rest. I will
call you when dinner is served."
A long, slow smile stretched itself over Richelieu's imperturbable
features. "I go, then; but it is on condition that madame calls me when
dinner is served." With which enigmatically spoken commonplace, he
forthwith disappeared.
"It is his habit to make significance of manner count for wit," observed
Elise, turning to the window.
"Why—do you come?" she asked, dully, knowing well enough the
reason.
He raised his hand and pointed to the door which led into the
antechamber, and so to the corridor. For the shadow of an instant madame
hesitated, her eyes passing in a long glance from Richelieu's unreadable
face to the great, silent bed. Then, with a slight gesture to her sister, she
moved slowly, unsteadily, towards the door which the bishop designated. In
silence the five men saw them go. Louis XV., closed in by his curtains,
silent, passive, heard all, and guessed the unspoken; surmised Richelieu's
loyal treachery, read madame's heart from her steps, realized that his time
for repentance approached, deplored the necessity, thought of his dinner,
and rather hoped that existence might not be too much prolonged.
While Falconet* was hastily summoned to attend the King, while
Monseigneur made humble explanation to his relative, and Richelieu
adroitly assisted in carrying out the bishop's ideas for the forthcoming
confession, absolution, and unction of his Majesty, the two sisters had
gained their apartment. Elise, by this time on the way to hysterics, threw
herself desperately on the bed. The sister watched her with pale, silent
scorn. Her arms were folded. Her foot tapped nervously on the floor. She
said not a word.
Madame's eyes turned towards her for an instant. "Nothing," she said,
shortly.
Elise's woman was busy over her with sal-volatile, tears, entreaties, and
a fan. By degrees she grew quieter, forgetting herself sufficiently at last to
look at her sister.
"Marie—why do you look so? What are you doing?" she asked.
"I? I am waiting."
The Duchess, who had studied well the ways of courts, and who knew
each step of an affair like this, did not answer. Her lips straightened into a
bitter smile. Mme. de Lauraguais might read it if she would.
He took it from under the hat which he carried in the left arm, and gave
it to her. It was not long, and the ink upon it was scarcely dry. Yet its seals
—those of Orléans and France—precluded any possibility of disobedience
of the command it expressed. As her sister read it through, Mme. de
Lauraguais sat up on the bed, a growing sense of terror coming over her.
Not the smallest expression crossed the face of la Châteauroux. Her mouth
was firmly set. She read slowly, as one who forced herself to see written out
something of which she was already thoroughly cognizant. When she had
finished the last line, madame opened her fingers, and the paper fluttered to
the floor.
Madame's nerve was failing her at last. Her face had grown suddenly
scarlet, and from her attitude d'Argenson believed that she would gladly
have flung herself upon him to end the matter after the fashion of the Court
of Miracles. But young d'Argenson was a diplomat, educated in a famous
school, and he had a manner of steel that would not melt before the white-
hot fire of a woman's wrath. Eye for eye he met the gaze of the Duchess,
and, as her quivering muscles grew still under the spell of his calm, he said,
quietly:
"Pardon me, madame. I think that you do not quite comprehend your
situation. If you but reflect, you will instantly perceive how much of
wisdom there would be in making the departure of yourself, of madame
your sister, and of your two women as quiet as possible."
CHAPTER II
The Disgrace
While Mme. de Lauraguais lived she remembered the journey from
Metz to Paris as the most utterly wretched affair of her life. For the
Duchess, she expressed no opinion on the matter one way or the other. On
leaving the coach of M. de Belle-Isle at Nancy, where they were to engage
their own post-horses and chaise, they found that not only word of the
King's illness, but also news of the dismissal of the favorite, had preceded
them, and was in every one's mouth. Moreover all France was in a state of
the wildest grief and anxiety over the bien-aimé, as he was commonly
known. All churches were open, and in them masses, repeated by priests
actually weeping with excited sorrow, were continually said. Men and
women of every class left their business and pleasure to join in the universal
prayers for the recovery of the King; and the Queen and dauphin set out
together from Versailles with a company of Jesuits, to hasten to Louis' side.
It was when news of his Majesty's danger was carried to the Queen that the
eldest son, boy as he was, bethought him nimbly and made that intensely
priggish and uncalled-for remark—the one reason that France really had for
rejoicing that their Louis did recover:
Meaux is not a great distance from Paris, but it was almost the 1st of
September before the sisters reached their destination. They did not go to
the Hôtel de Mailly, for the reason that Henri's wife, never fond of her
superb sister-in-law, would very possibly fail to know her now in the time
of her adversity. Rather, Mesdames de Lauraguais and Châteauroux retired
to a small hôtel in the Rue du Bac, which the favorite had inhabited before.
On August 28th they arrived, travel-stained, weary, but mightily relieved in
heart at being safe at their journey's end. The little house was desolate
enough when they entered it, but, with the combined efforts of the two
maids, the valet Fouchelet, and the concièrge, a supper was contrived, some
beds prepared, and a little fresh air, hot as it was, let through the musty
rooms.
"Tell me at once. What has been done now? I am, perhaps, no longer
Duchess?"
"No, no! You mistake. There is only his 'expression of regret for the
flagrancy of my former life, the bad example I have set my people—a
promise to amend for the future, God granting me a life to lead with justice
and righteousness.'* That is all."
"I rise now. My garments at once." As the maid disappeared, she turned
again to her sister. "Is that all your news?"
"No. Here is something which you will wish to hear. The Duc
d'Agenois, arrived in Paris a month ago, is suffering an attack of fever at his
hôtel in the Rue de l'Evêque."
"Ah! François again!" Again the Duchess was silent, and presently a
curious smile came to play about her lips. Elise interrupted the reverie.
"Be considerate this time, then. Do not banish him a second time. Tell
me, how are you going to occupy yourself to-day? One will perish of ennui
here."
"One must expect it. Let us become philosophers. I am going to write
presently to du Plessis. If Claudine de Tencin is in the city, we will go to
her. She will not refuse to receive me. To-morrow—I think that I will go to
François. Yes, I mean it. Do not be shocked. To-day I despatch Fouchelet to
Versailles with a billet to Mme. de Boufflers to send me my furniture, my
toys, the rest of my wardrobe, the dogs, and—my servants. If we must live
here, Elise, we will do so. I am a little tired of camps and of being
continually interested in guns and armaments; this will be a rest, a relief, for
a time. And after—when the Court returns—"
Half an hour later Mme. de Châteauroux sat in the salon of her hôtel
composing, with some difficulty, the epistle to Mme. de Boufflers, who, as
mistress of the palace of the Queen, was obliged to remain at Versailles
during the Queen's absence. It was not an easy thing to make
acknowledgment of her disgrace to the woman who, next to herself, was the
haughtiest at Court. But the letter was written in some way, and Fouchelet
directed to depart with it as soon as he had finished serving dinner. Then
Mme. de Lauraguais rejoined her sister, and they sat quiet, together,
listening to the hum of the city, the city of the world, around them.
Presently a bell sounded below. Some one was admitted. The two listened
for a moment, and then Elise rose as the salon door opened and Henri de
Mailly-Nesle came in.
The Marquis embraced the Lauraguais with some affection, and then
turned to his youngest sister, who had not risen.
Her manner gave her brother his cue, and, with a mental shrug, he
accepted it. His manner was entirely different as, after certain conventional
remarks, he asked: "You have not heard, perhaps, of the return of M.
d'Agenois after his exile?"
"He is ill, it seems. The air of Paris still does not agree with him." Henri
took a meditative pinch of snuff. "Apropos of d'Agenois, Anne, have you
heard from Claude?"
"Ah! I warned him that he would perish of ennui among those savages."
"On the contrary, he would appear, from a letter which I have received,
to be very well amused. From his accounts he has met there some delightful
people—a charming girl—by name—peste! I forget the name—"
"It is no matter. Claude among the bourgeois! Who could fancy it? Eh
bien, let us dine."
The dinner was not protracted, for none of the three found it very
comfortable. At its end Mme. de Châteauroux rose abruptly, snapping a
finger for Fouchelet, and turning to her brother with the dismissing
command, "Summon our chairs, Henri."
Mailly-Nesle went off obediently to see that the chairs and link-boys
were ready, while the sisters adjusted their scarfs and caps. The brother
handed them out, gave directions as to their destination, and himself started
to return on foot to his hôtel. The ladies were going to Mme. de Tencin,
who lived near by, not far from the Orleans Palais Royal. Though they had
dined at an unconventionally late hour, it was not yet dark, the sunset just
fading into a twilight that played in softening shadows about the old streets,
with their high, gabled wooden houses, and the occasional buildings of
stone. The streets were quiet, for all Paris was at supper. A few chairs, a
chaise or two, and now and then a coach with some familiar coat-of-arms
on its panels passed them. Foot-passengers were few. In crossing the Place
du Palais Royal, however, Mme. de Châteauroux, looking out of the open
window of her chair, encountered the glance of a priest going the opposite
way. She bowed, and he uncovered with a respect less marked than usual,
walking on without any attempt to speak to her. It was the Abbé de Bernis.
"Victorine is here, then," concluded madame. "I wonder how she will
receive me?" And at the question a pang smote the Duchess's heart. Her fall
was accomplished; but its consequences she had not yet endured.
Twilight rose rapidly now, and it was dark enough for the torches of the
link-boys to be lighted by the time the slow-moving chairs stopped at their
destination. The Hôtel de Tencin was not imposing from the outside. It was
narrow and high, with a larger building close on either hand. Inside,
however, it was furnished like a palace, and, indeed, most of the guests who
entered it spent the greater part of their lives in or about the abode of
royalty.
Mme. de Tencin sprang to her feet. From just outside came the stiff
rustle of feminine garments.
"Marie!"
"Claudine!"
The two women flung themselves into each other's arms, touched
cheeks, first on one side, then on the other, and finally Mme. de Tencin held
the Duchess off at arm's-length, gazed at her through a river of tears, and
murmured, in a transport of grief: "My poor Anne!"
"Claudine! Cl—audine!"
"If any one could accomplish that, you are certainly the one to do so.
But he is called indispensable to the ministry."
"François d'Agenois."
"Marie!"
"Again!"
The latter exclamation came from Victorine. The Duchess smiled at her.
"Yes, again. The first time he was a complete success. I will make him so
this time."
"Poor boy!"
"Ah, yes. Henri says that he is in America. Imagine it. However, Claude
was less useful. I had more feeling for him—my cousin, you understand."
This time the little Marquise made no reply. She suddenly turned
serious, and a pause crept upon the four.
Mme. de Tencin, after waiting nearly a minute for some one to speak,
herself exclaimed: "Come, let us play at piquet. It is the only thing left.
Cavagnole is impossible. Mme. de Lauraguais, I leave you to the
Maréchale. Victorine, you will be becoming a second Mirepoix soon.
Marie, you shall play with me. Come—the tables are here."
"Poor man!"
Mme. de Tencin led the way to the gaming-room, which, to tell the
truth, was a principal feature in her hôtel; and here the four ladies seated
themselves at two tables. It took Mme. de Châteauroux a little more than an
hour to lose her stipulated sum, for stakes among women are not high. That
being done, true to her word, she rose.
So they all rustled back to the little salon, adjusted their very light
wraps, partook of the liqueur and cakes prepared, and then departed, each to
her chair, with many affectionate adieus. Victorine, yawning mentally, went
her way to her lonely abode in the Rue Fromentin, while the others returned
to the Rue du Bac, where madame was greeted with news that made her
furious with mortification. Fouchelet had returned from Versailles with the
word from Mme. de Boufflers that Mme. de Châteauroux's wardrobe and
dogs should be despatched to her on the following day. As to the furniture
and toys in her apartments, and her private chef and footmen, they had
belonged to Mme. de Châteauroux not as woman, but as favorite of his
Majesty. They were really the insignia of office, and no longer belonged to
one who had been publicly dismissed from her post.
The letter in which these things were said was perfectly cold, perfectly
polite, and perfectly unreasonable. Its tone, however, was not to be
mistaken. It was the first deep wound given to the deposed sub-queen, and
its sensation was too fresh to be easily borne. At something after two
o'clock in the morning she fell into an unquiet sleep, and then Mme. de
Lauraguais, who had attended her, crept away to her own room, too tired to
scold her maid.
"See her!" cried d'Agenois, leaping up. "Nom de Dieu, Jean, fly! Fly, I
tell you! Admit her—admit her—admit her—"
Jean ran back across the room, pushed open the door, and stood aside.
Mme. de Châteauroux, clothed in clouds of white muslin that floated about
her in fold after fold, luminous, filmy, her golden hair unpowdered, curling
upon her shoulders, her eyes lustrous, an expression of tender melancholy
on her face, appeared on the threshold, framed in the bright sunshine that
streamed through the windows.
"Anne!" The man gave a faint cry and began to move towards her,
dizzily, both arms outstretched. He had loved her faithfully throughout the
two years. Had he not a right to tremble now, at their reunion?
The Duchess smiled slowly into his eyes, and moved towards him in a
fashion peculiar to herself, not walking, floating rather.
"Anne, you are not changed—you are not changed at all. You are just as
I have thought of you. You are my angel. You came—you did not forget—I
have been so ill, have suffered so. Ah, you are adorable!"
With nervous eagerness he drew her to the sofa beside him, and sat
looking into her face, delightedly noting every feature, every shining hair
tendril, counting the very breaths that passed her lips. Madame, who had
known him so well in the old days, who thought of him always as one much
younger than herself, ran her fingers through his dark hair, smoothed the
forehead that was so hot, and insisted on his lying down again. This being
accomplished, she seated herself near him, one of his hands fast holding
hers, his eyes smiling up at her.
"I know only that you are my angel, Anne. What more could I wish?"
Thus this first visit passed off to the highest satisfaction of madame.
D'Agenois had always pleased her, was ever obedient to her way of
thinking, was singularly unselfish and unsuspicious, and his blind devotion
to her was perhaps the only reason why she did not care for him as she had
seemed to care for Louis of France. The young Duke was, moreover, still
far from well; and la Châteauroux was enough of a woman to have a taste
for humoring a patient who threw himself, utterly regardless of
consequences, upon her mercy. The first, then, became the beginning of an
infinite series of visits, none of which was short. Madame had not been in
Paris a week before she discovered that nothing but the boldest possible
course was open to her now. The story of her dismissal from Metz,
exaggerated in every way, was discussed from palace to fish-market. She
was pointed out in the streets and accosted with insulting remarks. The
haute bourgeoisie itself sneered at her, and as for the noblesse, those who in
the old days had schemed for weeks to obtain an invitation to her salon,
could now have seen the moons of Saturn with the naked eye more easily
than they would behold Mme. de Châteauroux in her chair. Mme. de
Mailly-Nesle refused to admit either sister to her hôtel. Henri at intervals
went to the Rue du Bac out of duty, not pleasure. Mme. de Tencin, while
she frequently summoned both sisters to her side when she was alone, was
always singularly unable to receive Madame la Duchesse during one of her
evenings. Of all the former friends and sycophants, Victorine de Coigny
was the single person who allowed herself to be seen in all places, at all
hours, with the deposed favorite, without finding her popularity thereby
lessened. But the little Maréchale was a peculiar case. It was her role to be
unusual, unconventional; and this one thing added to her risqué list could
not harm her. Even had there been danger in it, Victorine would have clung
to the other woman, for the sake of their old friendship. But Victorine had a
rash nature.
Amid her little turmoil Marie Anne moved with apparent serenity.
Certainly her world, what part of it was still in Paris, must at first have
suspected the pangs of mortification that they daily caused her. But, so far
as outward evidence was concerned, there was none. A woman who had
had the wit and the unscrupulous fortitude to attain to the position once
occupied by Marie Anne de Mailly-Nesle, possessed enough strength of
character to accept the circumstances attendant on her fall with excellent
philosophy. She was the talk of all Paris, of Versailles, and of Sceaux. Her
attitude was unceasingly watched and commented on; and, after two weeks,
a new idea began to dawn in the various salons. It was the startling one that
madame had found a new string for her straightened bow. The idea
originated when, one evening at the Hôtel du Tours, the discovery was
made that five people, on five consecutive days, had seen the chair of Mme.
de Châteauroux waiting in the Rue de l'Evêque at the door of the d'Agenois
hôtel.
Three of these people, moreover, had seen her herself issue from the
hôtel door, had refused recognition to her, and gone their ways. The salon of
M. Vauvenargues gasped. What a plan of action! How daring! How truly
like the whilom favorite! Was she in love with him, after all? What were the
arms of Châteauroux and d'Agenois? Were the quarterings harmonious? By
the middle of September the wedding was discussed as a surety, and many a
grande dame wondered if she might not throw hauteur to the winds and go.
Who would not wish to study the bridal dress? And then—after—question
of questions!—what would accrue when his Majesty returned? The salons
gasped again, wondered, and waited.
Matters also waited for some time. There occurred one of those
aggravatingly hopeless stand-stills when society purfled and shrugged and
created tireless smoke at a rate which science could not easily measure. No
wedding announcement was made; neither did his Majesty return to Paris.
Fribourg had proved to be a city possessed of rather better resources of
defence than the Court before its walls had of amusement. After two weeks
of cannonading and unsuccessful sorties on the part of the besieged, the
Court grew very bored indeed, and most of the ladies followed her Majesty
back to France. If the Queen had wished to stay longer at Louis' side, she
did not voice the wish, for her husband entertained a different notion.
Among the few departing gentlemen was a certain M. Lenormand d'Etioles,
a nonentity to history, who very joyfully accompanied his wife away from
the occasional sight of his Majesty, to an estate at Meudon, where madame
deigned to reside for one month.
Madame smiled at him, and they ceased to speak. They could sit silent
now for uncounted minutes, madame knowing every thought that flitted
through the brain of the young man; d'Agenois fancying, perhaps, that he
knew as much of the Duchess. If this were not so, what mattered it? He was
supremely happy. He had lost all jealousy, even of royalty, for he willingly
believed what she told him with every look: that she loved him, only, at last.
"My dear Elise! Your breath is quite gone! Is there a fire—a scandal—a
death?"
"None of them. Wait!" She sank into a chair to regain her breath, while
François sounded a gong, intending to order wine.
"It is only Henri, who sends us an urgent note to come at once to his
hôtel. I received it, and came for you. The coach is outside. He sent it."
Madame shrugged. "What startling thing can have happened?" she said,
smiling. "Perhaps Laure is dying, and wishes for me. However, I come."
And, after a gentle farewell for the day to d'Agenois, madame went. The
Mailly-Nesle coach bore the two ladies at a rapid pace across the Rue St.
Honoré, out upon the quay and on to the Pont Royal, on the opposite side of
which, just across from the Théatins, was the Hôtel de Mailly. During the
drive the sisters scarcely spoke. Mme. de Châteauroux certainly did not
seem curious as to the reason for Henri's imperative summons. To tell the
truth, she was not thinking of it. She was finishing a dream.
Henri himself met them at his door, smiled at Marie Anne's languid
greeting, refused to reply to the eager question of Elise, but conducted them
rapidly up-stairs into the grand salon. Here stood the Marquise, Henri's
wife, with two people, a man and a woman. As she caught sight of the
man's face, Mme. de Châteauroux gave a little cry, and turned suddenly
colorless.
Claude came forward, raising her hand to his lips, and saluting Mme. de
Lauraguais, who was staring at him as at one raised from the dead.
Then de Mailly went back, and took the woman by the hand. A slight,
straight, girlish figure she had, a fair complexion, and a pair of large grayish
eyes, that were presently lifted to the face of la Châteauroux.
"Your wife!"
CHAPTER III
November Thirteenth
It was thus that Claude brought home his wife. Two months before he
had been married to her in Dr. Carroll's chapel by Aimé St. Quentin, with
all Annapolis to witness; and next day he left America on the Baltimore, in
company with Deborah, and her very modest little travelling coffer. Truly
bridal weather was theirs. The skies were fair, seas calmly blue, and
continuous light western winds, sent by the very gods themselves, carried
them straight to the English coast. All told, they were on the ship but six
weeks—six strange, half-terrible weeks to the colonial girl. She was
learning to know her husband, and he her. In a way, not always, but by
spells, Deborah was happy. She loved the sea, and she grew to be very fond
of the ship, clinging to it during the last days of the voyage as she had not
clung to her far Maryland home. She had become dimly apprehensive of the
life into which she was going, of which Claude had lately told her so much
more than he could do during their comradeship in Annapolis. He also
made her speak with him much in the French tongue, which she did readily
enough at first, in a manner caught from St. Quentin, her first instructor. But
when it came to using no English, to hearing none from Claude, her tongue
faltered, and she would remain silent for hours at a time rather than appear
awkward before him. Claude was very gentle. He made her finally
understand, however, how much easier it would be for her to make mistakes
now, than to do so in the land to which they were going. He told her the
story of Marie Leczinska, who had acquired all her knowledge of the
language of her adopted country from a waiting-maid who spoke a
Provençal patois, and how the Queen was ridiculed by all the Court till she
studied secretly, many hours a day, with her confessor, and was now, when
she chose to exert herself, one of the most excellent linguists in France. So
Deborah took heart, and tried more bravely, until, by the time they had
crossed the English Channel and landed in Calais, none but a close observer
could have found a flaw in her ordinary conversation.
And then it was that Claude knew how glad he was to do it—to have the
right to do it. And thereupon he threw care to the winds and became her
slave. He, too, regretted the end of the voyage, when it came. Nevertheless,
he had, in the past, suffered severely from homesickness, and Paris,
Versailles, Henri, Elise, and, more than all of them together, his other
cousin, were constantly in his mind. He dreamed and talked of them when
he slept, and, if Deborah had been proficient enough in French to make out
the half-coherent sentences that passed her husband's lips at night, she
would probably have learned still more about her approaching life in this
way.
Unquestionably, Deborah dreaded the new life. She had reason to; not
alone because of the natural shyness attendant on a country girl's first
appearance at a great Court. She knew that Claude's whole existence was
bound up there. She believed that he cared rather more than he actually did
about this life that she had never lived. In consequence, upon the drive of
several days from Calais to Paris, Deborah grew more and more silent,
more and more definitely apprehensive, with each new stage. On the
evening of November 8th they arrived at Issy, and there spent the night.
Next morning Claude rose with the sun, some time before Deborah even
awoke. He went outside of their post-house and walked delightedly through
the familiar streets, listening to his own language spoken with his own
accent on every hand, discovering well-known shops and buildings, and
returning in the highest spirits to Deborah at nine o'clock. They had their
chocolate and rolls together, Deborah eating little and silently, Claude
jesting and laughing continually till she was roused out of her apathy by his
thoughtlessness towards her. It was not, however, till they were rolling
along the Paris road that she spoke—in English:
"Well, Claude, you have brought your Madame the Countess home to
the King. He'll be satisfied, I hope."
Apparently both the allusion and the bitterness were lost upon him. He
only answered with a bright smile: "I am satisfied, my Deborah. What the
King thinks is not my concern. Oh, I had not told you, had I?—that the
King is not here. He is coming home with the army next Saturday, the 13th,
from Strasbourg. You know he has been fighting all summer. They are
going to give him a triumph on his return. There will be a procession
through the street, and the King will ride in it. You will see him then,
Deborah. Shall you like it all?"
At half-past eleven o'clock their chaise passed the barrier, and they
rolled down the narrow street towards the river, in Paris at last. Claude
himself was quiet now. He was a little anxious; he could not be sure just
what he should find "at home." Moreover, the familiar streets and sounds no
longer raised his spirits. Instead, they came so near to bringing tears to his
eyes, that he was relieved when Deborah asked:
"I am not sure. I have directed the man to the Hôtel de Mailly. But, if no
one is there, we must go to an inn. Look, Deborah, there is the Seine, there
is the Pont Royal, and there, just ahead, is Henri's house, where we are
going. Are you glad—little one?"
* * * * * *
*
It was half-past ten o'clock that night before Claude and his wife were
again alone together. They had left the salon thus early through weariness,
leaving the rest of the family party to disband as it would. Neither the Count
nor Deborah spoke till the suite of apartments assigned them on the second
floor had been gained and the door to their antechamber closed. Deborah
was going on to what she supposed must be their bedroom, when Claude
caught her hand.
Of a sudden the smile left Claude's face. He had not thought of this
before. "There, Debby, is your room—on this side is mine. A maid whom
Mme. de Mailly-Nesle has kindly lent you is waiting for you. Henri's valet
is there—where I sleep. We do not occupy the same room. It—it is not the
custom. Therefore sit here with me for a few moments, and tell me—how
you like them all—my family?"
"Not one, my Deborah, save that you were not insolent enough."
"And he you! Yes, you must love him for my sake. He is more than my
brother. And his wife?"
"Is she his wife, Claude? Why does he always call her madame? Why
did you call me madame? And she treated him so—so formally."
"Parbleu! you are right; they do not know each other very well, else she
could hardly help loving him; and she would not be so bourgeois as that!
Do you like her? She was kinder to you, Debby, than I have ever seen her to
any woman. Answer me—dost like her?"
"Yes—I liked her. She never looked at me when she spoke, and she
scarcely spoke to any one else."
Deborah turned crimson, and started to rise from her place, but de
Mailly gently held her back. He would have his answer; and it was given
him. After all, he had married a woman, and one whose feelings, though
often unexpressed, were none the less acute. She voiced them now. "Claude
—I hate her! She is not pretty. Her face is hideous! She was rude to me, to
her sister, to the Marquise, to every one but you. And you sat beside her
almost the whole afternoon. Ah! I cannot bear her! Mme. de Mailly told me
why she was in Paris, how she had been made to leave the King. Claude,
are you not ashamed that she is of your blood?"
Deborah was on her feet now, and flung her words straight at her
husband. He sat silent, quite still, rather pale, through the outburst. After it
he did not answer her question, but only murmured to himself, "Why do
women so seldom like her?" Then, looking up at his wife, he said, kindly:
Deborah jerked her head impatiently. "I do not like her," she reiterated,
with dogged displeasure.
Claude rose, with a faint sigh. "Your French was wonderfully good. I
was very pleased, dear. To-morrow—you shall have some costumes
ordered. Naturally, yours are a little ancient in mode. Good-night."
"Good-night."
He kissed her upon the forehead, and would have turned away, but that
suddenly she flung her arms about his neck passionately, and, raising her
lips to his ear, whispered: "Claude—Claude—I am a stranger here. You are
all I have of—the old life. Be—be kind to me."
It was almost the first emotion that he had ever seen her display, and his
heart was warm as he took her tenderly into his arms again, whispering
such words as only lovers know. Five minutes later Deborah crept away to
her room happier than she had been before upon the soil of France; and not
even the somewhat terrifying stiffness of madame's maid, nor the loneliness
of this strange room, had power to banish the memory of her husband's
good-night.
The four succeeding days passed both rapidly and slowly. From late
morning till late night Deborah's hours were filled. She and Claude were to
remain at the Hôtel de Mailly till the return of the King, after which they
would take an apartment in Versailles. For the purpose of selecting one,
they went together to the little city on Thursday. In the Rue Anjou, near the
pièce des Suisses, they discovered a very pretty abode in the second floor of
a house—rooms once occupied by the Chevalier de Rohan, of duelistic
fame, furnished and hung in perfect taste, with precisely the number of
rooms desired. Then Deborah went to see the monstrous, silent palace and
park; after which she and Claude dined together at a café in the open air,
quite à la bourgeois, somewhat to the unspoken apprehension of Claude,
who was not pleased with the unconventional affair, which, however,
unduly delighted his wife. They returned to Paris in the early evening by
coach, well satisfied with the day. To Deborah's consternation, Claude next
engaged a maid for her, a woman whom she was supposed to command at
will, who was to dress and undress her, arrange her coiffure in the absence
of the regular hair-dresser, care for her wardrobe, and conduct madame's
affairs of the heart with discretion. To the little Countess's great delight,
however, her first person in this line left her service after three days, for the
reason that Mme. de Mailly seemed too devoted to monsieur the husband,
and, in consequence, there were no chances for fees of secrecy such as she
was accustomed to count upon as among her perquisites of office. By the
time of their removal to Versailles, another attendant had been found who
pleased her mistress better. Julie was lively, young, rather pretty, and not
long from the provinces. If her modes for hair and panniers were not so
Parisian as those of her predecessor, at least she and young Mme. de Mailly
took a fancy to each other from the first, and Deborah was more than
content. Meantime Claude had happily discovered and re-engaged his
former valet, and thus, with the addition of a chef and scullion and two
lackeys, their little ménage would be complete. Before all these matters
were arranged, however, the Marquise de Mailly-Nesle, who had taken an
unaccountable fancy to Claude's wife, accompanied Deborah to a milliner,
to whom was intrusted the task of preparing a wardrobe for the Countess.
Deborah watched the selections with delight and a secret consternation.
Could Claude afford such things, and such an infinite variety of them?
Finally, unable to hold her peace about the matter, she drew the Marquise
one side, and stammered out the question of prices with pretty
embarrassment.
"Mon Dieu! child, why should I ask prices? If the bill is reasonable, be
assured that Claude will pay. If it is too large—pouf!—he will refuse to
look at it! That is all. Do not be alarmed."
Deborah, surprised and disturbed, felt that she must stop proceedings at
once, for the Maryland school of economy had been strict. But a
shimmering blue satin, with cloth of silver for petticoat, and ruffles of
Venice point, was now under consideration. Blue was her own color. She
had never worn satin in her life—and dearly she loved its enticing swish.
Why, unless Claude forbade, should she refuse it? And Claude did not
forbid. When she confessed her doubts during their anteroom conference
that evening, he laughed at her, cried that she should live in blue satin if she
chose, and asked what she was to wear on the morrow at the royal
procession.
Upon this Saturday, the 13th of November, Paris did not wake up until
afternoon. By two o'clock, however, St. Antoine had left its domicile and
was dispersing itself in unkempt groups along those streets which, as it had
been posted, his Majesty would ride through in his triumphant home-
coming, on his way to the Tuileries. Marie Leczinska and the Dauphin spent
the morning in prayer, and were off together, after a hurried dinner, to join
their lord at the southeastern barrier. On the previous day Louis had been at
Meaux, but left that town in the afternoon, and spent the night at no great
distance from Paris. To tell the truth, he was not too well pleased at the
information that his metropolis was desirous of giving him a heroic
welcome. Certainly his title of bien-aimé was anything but his own choice.
Nothing bored him so thoroughly as affection taken in the abstract. All
through his early life he seemed to be unfortunate in having about him
people to whom he was totally indifferent, yet who persisted in blindly
worshipping him. In the case of his wife, it had not always been so. As a
boy he had been devoted to her. But for the Dauphin, with his Jesuitical
manners and phrases for all occasions, his father had never pretended to
care. The daughters were more amusing. This afternoon Louis would have
been very well pleased to see them when her Majesty's coach came up with
the royal staff, in the midst of which Louis sat on horseback. The Queen,
after alighting, stood looking at her husband with wistful yearning; but
young France, dropping on one knee in a dry spot in the road, cried out,
with very good expression:
There was a little pause. Then Louis remarked, casually, "You will catch
cold without your hat, child," after which he turned to one of his marshals
with some remark upon the day.
Paris had waited very patiently through the bleak November afternoon,
shivering and laughing in anticipation of its pleasure. Now the windows of
every house along the way were gleaming with candles and dotted with
heads. On either side of the street torches began to be lighted among the
standing throngs. Presently, as the heavy twilight fell lower, officers of the
police began, here and there, to illumine the long chains of lanterns that
were strung along the walls of houses, and, at short intervals, across the
streets; for Paris would admit no night yet. Every now and then, down
among the standing throngs, dashed the coach of some nobleman on the
way to his own view-point. The drivers of these vehicles took no heed of
the people in their paths. They were allowed to scramble away as best they
might, or left to be crushed beneath the horses' hoofs if they chose. No one
murmured, for the affair was quite usual.
"Truly, Mme. de Nesle, you have here all the world but two people."
"And who are those?" responded the Marquise, graciously, while the
salon grew suddenly quiet.
The company lifted its brow and a dozen glances were cast at Deborah
—this new little creature from the Americas. "She does not comprehend the
allusion," was the general thought, when they saw her attitude of large-
eyed, inattentive innocence. Only Claude, as he came forward a little, snuff-
box in hand, turned white.
Deborah smiled very faintly, and could make no reply. One of her hands
was tightly clenched. Otherwise she appeared unconcerned enough.
"Come to the window, here, madame, and look at the crowd upon the
quay. In your country I dare swear you have no such canaille."
"Poor things! How dirty and ragged they look in all the light,"
murmured Deborah, in English.
"You should one day drive through the Faubourg where they live; it
would interest you," returned the abbé, in the same tongue.
Deborah looked at him with a quick smile. "English sounds very dear to
me. Thank you vastly for speaking it."
"One would learn Sanscrit to gain a word of praise from your lips,
madame," was the abbé's unnecessary reply, whispered, not spoken.
The young girl was embarrassed. How could a priest say such things?
Turning her head uneasily, she found Mme. de Coigny close to her, and
beheld a new expression on that childlike, fretful face. It was as well that, at
this moment, the distant shouting of the throng proclaimed the advance of
the royal procession. Under cover of the general hastening to the lantern-
hung windows, Victorine took occasion to murmur in de Bernis' ear:
"Why are you always cruel, François? Why will you continually torture
me so? This child, now! Have pity on her."
They were silent for a moment. Then Mme. de Coigny, as she stared
into the torchlit street below, sighed. "Those faces—the rags—the dirt—
François, do they not remind you of our first days together in the Court of
Miracles?"
To his intense relief, Louis' long ride was nearly over; and, almost at its
end, when there should remain only a bridge to be crossed to the Tuileries,
he was hoping for something that should repay him for all his sacrifice of
time and comfort. Since the day of the dismissal from Metz the name of la
Châteauroux had never crossed the King's lips. But silence is not indicative
of forgetfulness. On the contrary, with every passing day Louis felt his life
more intolerably lonely, in the absence of her for whom he really cared
more than any one else. Now, as he drew near to the Hôtel de Mailly, which
he knew well, expectation and hope increased his speed, and he passed the
Théatins at a lively trot.
"See, Deborah, here is the royal regiment. Those, there, at the head, just
coming under the lights, are the marshals—ay, that is Coigny!"
"—And there are the Court pages in uniform, look—on the white horses
—Richelieu, d'Epernon, de Gêvres, de Mouhy, Trudaine—Heavens, how
familiar they all are! And here is the Queen's coach. Voila! She looked out
just then, at the shouts. The Dauphin is with her—they would not let the
child ride. He's all of fifteen now—is he not, de Bernis? And now, Deborah
—there, alone—in front of the corps—with the torches around him—that is
the King."
Deborah Travis bent her head forward towards the window till the light
from the lantern that hung above her shone full in her face. In the street,
directly below, she beheld a great sorrel charger caparisoned in white and
silver, bearing a rider also in white, with laced coat, cloth breeches, shining
black riding-boots, white hat à la Garde Française, and across his breast a
wide blue ribbon, fastened with three orders. The eyes of Claude's wife
flashed over the figure and to the face, which was markedly distinct in the
light of the torches.
At the instant that Louis passed beneath the string of lamps across the
way, Deborah's eyes fell upon his bright blue ones. As though she possessed
magnetic power, the King responded to the look. It was not the face that he
had hoped to find here, but it was one—as fair. The royal hat came off, the
royal figure bent to the saddle-bow. And then he was gone. Deborah's
cheeks were redder than her rouge. Every woman in the room had turned to
look at her, but some eyes, perhaps, stopped at sight of Claude. His face
was deathly, and upon it was plainly written new, quickening dread; while
both of his white hands were tightly clenched over his polished nails.
CHAPTER IV
Claude's Own
They arrived and were served with dinner in their little abode on
Monday. Tuesday afternoon found Deborah seated helplessly in the
boudoir, with her husband, rather pale and nervous, before her. He had
found her, utterly oblivious of the consternation of the chef, the lackeys, and
the scullion, washing Chinese porcelain teacups in the kitchen. And it was
then that Deborah received her first lesson in French great-ladyhood, by
whose iron laws all her housewifely instincts were to be bound about and
imprisoned. She must never give an order relative to the management of
their ménage. She must never purchase or arrange a single article of food
that was to be prepared for their table. She must never dream of performing
the smallest act of manual labor. She might designate the hour for meals, or
inform the first lackey how many were to be served, or what beverage
should be passed at her toilette. She might keep her appointments with
costumers, milliners, hair-dressers, furriers, jewellers, toy-men; and she
might see that her engagement-book was filled. That was all that was
expected of her in the way of labor. She had made a great false step to-day,
and it must not occur again.
"We might, then, as well have stayed at your cousin's house. This is
only our tavern, kept for our convenience," she said, at last.
"We've no home?"
"On the contrary, we make all Paris, all Versailles, our home."
Deborah folded her hands, and her face grew suddenly helpless in
expression. "I don't like it," she said, faintly.
"Dear, you do not know it. Wait. You will soon be too much occupied to
think of it. Why is your coffer still here? Has not Julie unpacked it? You
must not permit laziness."
"She has done all that I would allow. I will finish it myself. Claude, may
I have something?"
"You know in our salon there is, near the mantel, a little cabinet against
the wall—a little cabinet with two shelves, and a door and key."
"You know that I have neither, Claude. But I want the cabinet."
Claude shrugged, never dreaming what she intended the place for. It
was but a little thing to ask; and besides, curiously enough, Claude, who
had been brought up among the most unreliable class of women in the
world, had yet been so little affected by their ways that, ten weeks after
their marriage, he was beginning to trust his wife. She was as honest as a
man when she did not like a thing, or when she wanted one; she was not
talkative; she did not make scenes; he had beheld her angry, but it was not
with a malicious anger; and, more than all, she never complained. So far
Claude had found nothing to regret in his marriage. He realized it now as he
stood there in her dressing-room, while she sat looking at him expectantly.
"Eh, well—the cabinet and its key are yours. You'll not forget what I
have been telling you this afternoon?"
"No."
He smiled again, went to her side and kissed her. "Good-bye, then. I am
going out. You will not be lonely? Mme. de Coigny may come. After your
presentation to the Queen, you know, there will be no idle moments."
He left her with a little nod and smile, and, donning hat and cloak,
departed towards the Avenue de Sceaux, from which he turned into the Rue
des Chaniers, bound for a little building at the end of it, not far from the
deer-park, which was much in favor as an afternoon assembling place for
gentlemen of the Court during the unoccupied hours of the afternoon. Here
one might gamble as he chose, high or low; drink coffee, rum, or vin d'Ai;
fight his duel, if need be; or peruse an account of the last one in a paper, if
he did not want to talk. It was a comfortable and ugly little place, kept by
M. Berkley, of fame somewhat undesirable in London, but of gracious
personality here.
To-day, for the first time in months, the little place was creditably filled
with its customary patrons, noblemen and lords to whom camp-life had
lately become more familiar than the Court. Here were assembled all those
gentlemen who, two days ago, had ridden into Paris with Louis; and a good
many more who mysteriously reappeared out of the deeps of lower Paris,
where they had been hidden from salon gossip and too many women. That
morning Richelieu, d'Epernon, and de Gêvres left the Tuileries in despair.
The King, clad in a stout leathern suit, was shut into an empty room with
his friend the carpenter, making snuff-boxes with all his might, and
admitting neither silk, velvet, his wife, nor the Dauphin into his presence.
His gentlemen were now less harmlessly occupied. De Gêvres was
opposing d'Epernon on the red. Richelieu, in a mood, played solitaire à la
Charles VI. against himself, the sums that he lost being vowed to go to
Mlle. Nicolet of the Opéra ballet. De Mouhy, d'Argenson, de Coigny, de
Rohan, Maurepas, Jarnac, and half a dozen others were grouped about the
room, drinking, betting, and gossiping. The conversation turned, as it was
some time bound to do, on la Châteauroux and d'Agenois.
"The King has not yet, I believe, discovered the renewed relationship,"
drawled d'Epernon, mildly.
"Perhaps not. But in a week—imagine it! Madame la Duchesse is
fortunate in having gentlemen scattered over most of the civilized world on
whom she may cast herself for protection in case of need!" returned
Richelieu, crossing glances with Maurepas.
There was a little round of significant looks and nods. Evidently the
Duke's sang-froid had not deserted him. Every one knew very well that the
deposed favorite and her former preceptor were soon bound to be at
opposite ends of the scales, and that her rise now meant his fall.
"I wonder—" began Coigny, thoughtfully, when again, for the twentieth
time, the door opened, and some one entered whose appearance paralyzed
the conversation.
Richelieu then strode forward and seized his hand. "He's in the flesh,
messieurs. I am delighted, I am charmed, I am somewhat overcome, dear
Claude. I should have pictured you at this moment flirting in Spain,
storming a seraglio at Constantinople, toasting some estimable fräulein in
beer, drowning yourself in tea and accent in London, or—fighting savages
in the West. Anything but this! Your exile is over, then?"
"My faith, gentlemen, you seem to be but slightly informed of the last
news. Monsieur has been in Paris for a week with Madame the Countess his
wife, and—"
"I have not before had the chance, my lord," returned Claude, bowing.
"However, my tale is not so wonderful. When I went upon my little journey
the King was so gracious as to express the hope that I would return to
Versailles when I should be able to present to him madame my wife. Well—
in the English Americas I was so happy as—to have engaged the affections
of a charming daughter of their excellent aristocracy there. We were
married nearly three months ago in a private chapel by the Father Aimé St.
Quentin; and so, madame being pleased to return with me to Court, we set
sail shortly after the wedding, and—behold me!"
If the question displeased Claude, he did not show it. Shrugging and
smiling with some significance, he moved towards a card-table, and
instantly the estimate of Mme. de Mailly's prestige went up a hundred
thousand livres. The room was now all attention to Claude. He ordered
cognac, and his example was followed by a dozen others. De Gêvres and
d'Epernon ceased their play. Even Richelieu seemed for a moment to be on
the point of leaving the interests of Mlle. Nicolet, but eventually he
continued his amusement, only stopping occasionally to glance around at
the group of new sycophants, biding his own time.
De Mailly stared at him. "Of course, as you say, I have seen her."
"D'Agenois' reign will be short, then," muttered Coigny to Maurepas.
Claude heard, flushed, and turned again to Rohan: "Chevalier, will you
dice?"
"With pleasure."
Cups were produced, and the rest began betting among themselves on
the outcome of the first throws. Odds were not in Rohan's favor.
"Enough, Claude, enough for the time. Come with me. I need you now.
M. Berkley will be always here to welcome you. I—well, I shall not be here
every day. Come."
A few further good-byes, and de Mailly and his old-time friend left the
house together and moved slowly down the street, the Duke leading. Claude
did not speak, for it was for his companion to open conversation. This
Richelieu seemed in no haste to do. They had proceeded for some distance
before he remarked, suddenly:
"It is cold."
"Many thanks." They turned into a cross street that led towards the little
Rue Anjou, when Richelieu, after a deep breath, began quickly, in a new
strain: "Claude—do you know—that my fall is imminent?"
"What!"
"Oh, it is true. My fall is imminent. I am frank with you when I say that
never before has my position been so beset with difficulties. You would
learn soon, at any rate, and I prefer that you hear now, from me, what every
member of the Court save Mme. de Châteauroux herself knows—that it was
I who, beside myself with anxiety for the King, was the instrument of her
dismissal from Metz."
"As I have said, madame, now out of touch with Court circles, has not
yet heard of what she would term my treachery. But during the first
conversation she holds with a courtier she must learn the truth. Of course,
you perceive that, if she comes again into favor—I—am dismissed. Of
course, also, her every nerve is strained towards the natural object of
reattaining to her former position. My dear Claude, I am speaking to you in
my own interests, but they are yours as well. Your cousin is just now
playing with d'Agenois in order to rouse the possible jealousy of the King.
It is her method. It may, for the third time, prove successful. But if the
success does come, it will be over my fallen body. I shall oppose her as I
have opposed nothing before, because never before have I been so deeply
concerned. I would ask you, Claude, which side you will espouse—hers or
mine?"
Claude was silent for a few steps. Then he said, musingly: "A battle
between my cousin and my friend. You ask me a difficult question. Perhaps
you are thinking that, if a d'Agenois alone fails with his Majesty, a
d'Agenois and a de Mailly might do her work. Is that your notion? Hein?"
Richelieu laughed, and there was relief in the tone. He had secured
himself from one danger, and, out of gratitude, he should befriend this
unknown wife if she were in the smallest degree possible. "And now for
Mme. de Mailly!" he cried, gayly, with lips and heart, as they approached
the house in the Rue d'Anjou.
"She will be delighted. I fancy her afternoon so far has been lonely."
In this Claude was wrong. Deborah's afternoon had been far from dull.
Quite without her husband's assistance she was learning something more of
this Court life, this atmosphere in which he had lived through his youth.
When he left her, early in the afternoon, after the gentle lecture on manners,
Deborah's first move had been to take from her trunk those articles which
Julie had been forbidden to touch, to carry them into the empty salon, and
place them in the little black cabinet by the mantel, where she stood
regarding them for some moments absently. They were ten crystal phials, of
different sizes, filled with liquids varying in tone from brown to limpid
crystal. Upon each was pasted a paper label, covered with fine writing,
which told, in quaint phraseology and spelling, the contents of the bottle,
and the method of obtaining it. Beside the flasks was a small wooden box
with closed lid, containing a number of round, dry, brownish objects,
odorless, and tasteless, too, if one had dared bite into them. They were
specimens of amanita muscaria and amanita phalloides which Deborah,
still catering to her strange delight, had brought to her new home, together
with the best of her various experiments in medicinal alkaloids. To her
profound regret, she had been unable to pack Dr. Carroll's glass retort. But
here, some time when Claude was in humor, she would ask him to get her
another; for surely, in this great city of Paris, such things might be obtained.
Then, even here, in her own tiny dressing-room, she would arrange a little
corner for her work, and so make a bit of home for herself at last. Poor
Deborah was young, heedless, enthusiastic, and in love with her talent, as,
indeed, mortals should be. She did not consider, and there was no one to tell
her, since she did not confide in Claude, that no more dangerous power than
hers could possibly have been brought into this most corrupt, criminal, and
intriguing Court in the world. Reckless Deborah! After a last, long look at
her little flasks, she closed the cabinet door upon them, locked it, and
carried the key into her dressing-room, where she laid it carefully in one of
the drawers of her chiffonier, From this little place she did not hear the
rapping at the antechamber door, nor see her lackey go through the salon. It
was only when, with a slight cough, he announced from the doorway
behind her, "The Maréchale de Coigny," that Mme. de Mailly turned about.
"Oh!" she said, in slightly startled fashion. It was very difficult for her
as yet to regard white servants as her inferiors. As she entered the little
salon with cordial haste, Victorine, cloaked and muffed, rose from her chair.
"You are very kind to come. Cl—M. de Mailly is out. I was quite
alone."
"That is charming. We shall get to know each other better now—is it not
so? May I take off my pelisse? Thank you. M. de Coigny and I have just
come out—to Versailles, you know—for the winter. Later, we may be
commanded to the palace. If so, I shall have to be under that atrocious
Boufflers; and, in that case, life will be frightful."
While Victorine spoke she had, with some assistance from Deborah,
removed all her things and thrown them carelessly upon a neighboring
chair, after which she seated herself opposite her hostess, smiling in her
friendliest manner.
Deborah's heart sank. In Maryland tea was a luxury drunk only upon
particular occasions. She had not the slightest idea that there was such an
article in her kitchen here. Bravely saying nothing, however, she struck a
little gong, and, at the appearance of Laroux, ordered, rather faintly, two
dishes of Bohea. Laroux, receiving the command with perfect stoicism,
bowed and disappeared, to return, in a very short space of time, with two
pretty bowls filled with sweet, brown liquid. These he deftly arranged on a
low stand between the ladies, placing beside them a little plate of rissoles.
Madame la Comtesse decided at once that such a servant as this should not
soon leave her.
Deborah smiled, sipped her tea, and could find nothing to reply. Her
face, however, invited confidence; and the Maréchale sighed and continued:
"You seem to be almost happy! The look on your face one sees only
once a lifetime. It is youth, and—innocence, I think. How old are you? Oh,
pardon! I am absurdly thoughtless! But you look so young!"
"It must have been very lonely all the summer. But now, with Monsieur
the Marshal returned, it will be better."
"Oh, you are right! It will be more difficult now, and so, more
absorbing. But Jules lets me do almost as I please. If he were but more
strict, less cold, François would have more interest. He is growing
indifferent. Dieu! How I have worked to prevent that! But—it is imbecile of
me! I care so much for him that I cannot behave as I should!"
"I do not understand," said Deborah, indistinctly, with a new feeling,
one of dread, stealing over her. Instinctively she feared to hear what this
pale, big-eyed little creature was going to say next.
For an instant Victorine stared at her. Then, leaning slowly forward and
looking straight into Deborah's honest eyes, she asked, in a low tone, "You
did not know—that de Bernis—that—I—"
Deborah sprang up, the empty tea-bowl rolling unheeded at her feet.
She had grown suddenly very white, and, as she returned Victorine's own
look, searchingly, she found in the other face what made the horror in her
own deepen, as she backed unconsciously towards the wall.
And then Victorine, looking at her, came to a realizing sense of what she
had done. Moved by a half-impulse, she started up unsteadily, swayed for
an instant, and then fell back upon her chair, covering her head with her
hands and arms, and bursting into a passion of sobs so heart-broken, so
deep, so childlike forlorn, that they roused Deborah from herself. Letting
her hands fall, she looked over towards her visitor. There was a note in the
Maréchale's voice, and a line of utter abandon in her position, that brought a
pang of woman's sympathy into the heart of the woman-child who regarded
her. Putting away from her all selfishness, even that miserable thought of
Claude, forgetting the brutal openness with which Victorine had spoken, she
suddenly ran across the room and took Victorine into both her strong, young
arms. Victorine's head found a resting-place on her shoulder; Victorine's
aching, hopeless, impure heart beat for an instant in unison with that other
one; Victorine's racking sobs ceased gradually. She gave a long, shivering
sigh. There was a quickening silence through the room. Then the frail little
figure loosed its grasp on Deborah, straightened quickly up, and turned to
move to the chair where her wraps lay. Dully, Deborah watched the
Maréchale tie on her hood and pull the cloak about her shoulders. Then,
picking up gloves and muff, the visitor turned again and moved back to
where Deborah stood. In front of her she stopped, and her eyes, in which
shone two great tears, rested in dim pity and sorrow upon Deborah's white
face. The look lasted for a long moment. Then, slowly, without a word, the
Maréchale picked her handkerchief from the floor where it lay and began
moving towards the door. Before she had reached it Claude's wife spoke
again, more steadily:
The Mare'chale paused, with her back to Deborah, and stood hesitating.
"You must not go yet," repeated the voice. "You must tell me, first—
about Claude."
"No, madame; that is not so. You try to be—kind. Was it—tell me—
Mme. de Châteauroux? Yes. Now I know. That is true."
Victorine faced quickly around, the tears coming again into her eyes.
Mme. de Mailly had begun to walk up and down the room, speaking in a
monotone, twisting and untwisting her fingers as she went.
"I see. I know. Claude was exiled because the King—did not like him."
Here she turned about and looked her companion squarely in the face.
"Claude married me so that he might return to Court. In his letter the King
said that he might return when he could present his wife at Versailles. Yes.
Claude read that letter to me, and still—I married him. Oh, madame—" a
nervous laugh broke from her—"did M. de Coigny do that to you?"
Victorine stared at her in horror of her tone. "Deborah—Deborah—don't
look so! Claude isn't like that. And you—you are good. You are pure. Ah—
I cannot forgive myself while I live for what I have done! Is there anything
that I can do? Tell me, is there nothing—nothing that I can do?"
"Ah, madame, one does well to keep from your side, since one does not
fight an abbé. M. de Bernis has more enemies from jealousy than any man
about the Court," returned Richelieu, a trifle maliciously.
Claude looked at her, more puzzled than ever, and Richelieu commented
mentally: "Beauty and presence, without brains. It is as well."
"I should advise Mme. de Conti, Claude. Her price is about two
thousand francs, but she does it with an unequalled manner. She will direct
the courtesies, the train, the kiss, the retreat, everything—perfectly. Besides
that, you have her patronage forever after, particularly if you supplement
the two thousand with a small jewel, or some such gift. Her rents are
mortgaged, and she lives now on her presentations."
"Permit me, then, to escort you," said Claude, seeing that Deborah did
not press her to remain.
"My dear Count, you must resign that happiness to me," observed
Richelieu. "I am to sup with the King, and I have just time to reach Paris.
Mme. de Mailly, I trust that our first meeting may prove our shortest."
A moment later de Mailly and his wife were alone together. The sound
of steps in the outer hall had died away. The little salon was quiet. Then the
man and woman faced each other, Deborah mute, heavy-eyed,
expressionless, her husband curious and expectant. After two minutes of
uncomfortable silence he spoke:
Then, to his utter amazement, for he had never imagined her doing such
a thing, he saw the girl's lip tremble, her face work convulsively with effort
at control, and finally, as an ominous drop suddenly rolled over her eye and
down her cheek, she turned from him sharply and ran into her boudoir,
shutting the door after her.
Before Deborah consented to come forth from her retreat, his Grâce de
Richelieu had arrived at the Tuileries, made a necessary alteration in his
dress, and was admitted to the presence of the King, who, in company with
de Gêvres and Maurepas, awaited him in the small supper-room. The Duke
made proper apologies for tardiness, which Louis graciously accepted on
condition that, during the entremets, he should recount the adventure that
had kept him.
"Ah, Sire, it has been my fortune to encounter the lady whom you
deigned to salute on Saturday, in the window of the Hôtel de Mailly."
There was a murmur of interest from the other two as the King looked
up. "By my faith, du Plessis, you are phenomenal! Who is she?—what is
she? Is she eligible—or not?"
CHAPTER V
Two Presentations
Upon the 18th of November their Majesties, the dauphin, the royal
suites, and, in a word, the French Court, returned to Versailles and took up
its abode in palace or town for the winter. The little city was alive with
nobility and nobility's servants. Every fourth person one met bore with him,
as a mantle of dignity, some fifteen generations of ancestry; and every third
man with whom one came in contact was one whose forebears, for fifteen
misty and not wholly glorious generations, had been accustomed to the
honor of adjusting nobility's wig and helping him on with his coat.
The great park of Versailles, with its leafless bosquets, its bare avenues,
its deadened terraces, its lifeless fountains, was forlorn enough. But within
the monster palace hard by everything hummed with preparation for the
gayest of winters. Here was a hero-King returned from the scene of his
heroisms, bored with doughty deeds, waiting to be entertained with matters
strained to less heroic pitch. There on the second floor, behind the court of
the grand staircase, with a little private stair of its own, empty and desolate
behind its locked doors, lay the deserted suite of the favorite's rooms. And
who shall say how many a great lady, honorable to her finger-tips, with
some honor to spare, cast a mute, curious glance at that closed door, in
passing, and went her way with a new question in her heart? Who shall tell
the germs of intrigue, struggling jealousy, rivalry, hatred, ambition, and care
that were fostered in this abode of kings during that third week in
November, when the "season" was budding, and would, on Sunday night, at
the Queen's first salon, open into a perfect flower?
During that week, ever since Richelieu's visit on Monday, one would
scarcely have thought that Deborah de Mailly had had time for thinking.
There was never an hour when she could be alone. Claude's words were
proven true. She had known nothing of what this life would mean; and she
possessed not one leisure moment which she could have given to the care of
their abiding-place. Slightly to her husband's surprise, certainly much to her
own amazement, she had become a little sensation; and almost every
member of the Court followed the speedy example of Mme. de Mirepoix
and called upon her during that first week. The tale of the King's salute, of
her forthcoming presentation, and, more than all, a story whispered behind
Richelieu's hand of a possible favoritism, had wrought this result.
Deborah bore herself very well at the innumerable afternoon visits.
Claude was always with her; but, after the first two days, she ceased to
watch his eye, and found herself able to pay some little attention to the
characteristics of the different people. She had small fancy for the
Maréchale de Coigny, and an equally accountable dislike for de Bernis,
who, for some reason of his own, paid her assiduous attention.
Just now Claude's attention, like that of the rest of the Court, was
concentrated upon the approaching Sunday evening. He was ambitious for
Deborah. He wanted to make her success as great as possible. The danger of
success he knew, perhaps, but the other alternative was worse; and, besides,
not a hint of Richelieu's careful gossip had reached his ears. As to the royal
salute which had, at the time, so annoyed him, he had now all but forgotten
it in the renewal of his old connections, his old associations with every foot
of this ground that was home to him. He had played a good deal during the
week, to such purpose that there was now small cause to fear the necessary
expenditures for the winter; and out of his first day's winnings at Berkley's
he could pay for Deborah's entire wardrobe. Claude took more interest than
his wife herself, perhaps, in the presentation dress, which had been
especially designed to emphasize her freshness, her youth, and her slender
figure. She was to wear very small hoops, which articles of dress were now
in their largest possible state, preparatory to a long-needed collapse to the
graceful puffs of the Pompadour era. Her petticoat was of white India crépe,
embroidered in white. Her over-dress was of lace, made en princesse, with
the train falling from the shoulders and flowing behind her for more than a
yard, like a trail of foam in the wake of a ship.
The busy week ended almost too soon, and Sunday dawned—about an
hour before his Majesty rose. During the morning Versailles was deserted.
Not a lady had risen, and the gentlemen went shooting, after mass, with his
Majesty. Deborah, greatly to her displeasure, had been commanded to stay
in bed till three in the afternoon, at which hour she might begin her toilet.
Claude was with the hunting-party, however, and his wife rose at ten o'clock
and had her chocolate in the dining-room, to the bland amazement of the
first lackey. A little later, however, Madame la Comtesse regretted her
wilfulness, for she had nothing to do. Despite Mme. de Conti's reassuring
instructions, she was extremely nervous as to the evening. She had already
practised the presentation at home, with Julie for her Majesty, chairs for the
ladies of honor, and the King rather inadequately represented by her
dressing-table. This morning, however, Deborah was not in the mood for
the tiresome manoeuvres, but instead sat disconsolately at the window,
rigorously keeping her thoughts from home, and trying to fasten them, for
want of a better subject, on the lady who was also to be presented that
evening by Mme. de Conti. This, as history would have it, was a person of
somewhat humbler birth than Deborah herself, styled in the beginning
Jeanne Poisson, later wedded to solid Lenormand d'Etioles, and at some day
now neither dim nor distant to become that Marquise de Pompadour whom
an Empress of Austria should salute as an equal. Deborah mused for some
time on this unknown lady, ate her solitary dinner without appetite, and lay
on her salon sofa for two hours more, thinking unhappily of Maryland,
before Julie roused her to begin the momentous toilet.
Julie opened it. Within, facing him, her back to the toilet-table, stood his
wife. The room was not very light. Only four candles burned in it, and the
disorder of the little place was but dimly exposed. Deborah was quite
dressed. Her figure looked taller than usual, from the smallness of her
hoops; and, in her delicate, misty robes, with the uncertain light she
appeared like some shadowy spirit. Claude stopped upon the threshold and
looked at her in silence. She did not speak. And Julie, who had rightly
thought her mistress the most beautiful woman in France, stood back in
quick chagrin that Monsieur le Comte did not go into ecstasies of delight
over madame.
"More light, Julie. She is very well so, but there will be a trying glare in
the Queen's salon," was his first remark.
Deborah herself felt disappointed, and turned aside as her maid hastily
lit the various waxen tapers in the brackets on the walls. When the little
place was as bright as it could be made, Claude went to his wife, placed a
hand upon her shoulder, and drew her gently about till she once more faced
him. Then he stood off a little, critically examining her, and carefully
refraining from any expression of his pleasure. Finally, when he had
decided that art could do no more, he merely said, with a little smile, "You
wear no jewels, Debby."
She was silent with displeasure, knowing him to be well aware that she
possessed none. He passed behind her, however, picked up the box that he
had brought in with him, and put it into her hands.
Quite breathless now, she opened the box, and gave a low exclamation.
Julie shrieked with rapture, and Claude, reading his wife's expression, was
satisfied with the reception of his gift.
As she kissed him gently upon the forehead he seized one of her hands,
clasped it tightly for an instant, and then, putting it quickly away from him,
let her go. Julie approached with her wraps, and the lackey announced that
the coach was waiting.
At one side of her salon, upon a raised dais, beneath a golden canopy,
sat Marie Leczinska, royally dressed, looking only like the gentle Polish
woman that she was, talking in low tones with Mme. de Boufflers, who
would have liked very well to escape for a few moments into the throng. In
two semicircular lines, from the throne to the door of the anteroom, leaving
between them an open space, stood the dames d'étiquette, or, more properly,
the ladies of the palace of the Queen, among whom, magnificently dressed,
with the proceeds of her forthcoming task, was the Princess de Conti.
Behind these formidable rows the rest of the Court stood, packed in such
close masses that many a hooped toilet was threatened with collapse. About
the throne were gathered the Queen's immediate friends, the "Saints," as
they were termed by members of the King's set; Mme. de Boufflers, from
necessity; the Duc and Duchesse de Luynes; M. and Mme. de la Vauguyon;
the Duc and Duchesse de Luxembourg; the Cardinal de Tencin; the Cardinal
de Luynes; Mme. d'Alincourt; the inevitable Père Griffet; and President
Hénault. One person, however, who was becoming a very familiar figure to
the Queen's household, was not with them to-night. This was the Abbé
François de Bernis, whose connection with Mme. de Coigny had never been
discussed in that part of the palace.
"Are all the women here, Monsieur l'Abbé?" she asked, presently.
De Bernis glanced about him. "I have not yet seen Mme. de Mailly. She
is late."
"Ah! She is not lost yet, then?" inquired Mme. d'Etioles, hastily.
Mme. d'Etioles smiled with affected indifference; and her next remark
was interrupted by the entrance of some one whose arrival at the anteroom
created a small sensation. Deborah, with Claude beside her, carrying her
cloak, and Henri de Mailly a step behind, with her fan and scarf, floated
delicately in, her laces trailing noiselessly about her, apparently
unconscious of her beauty, or of the fact that every eye in the little place
was upon her. Richelieu, abruptly leaving de Mouhy, hurried to her side,
inwardly delighted with her appearance. To Claude's surprise, and perhaps a
little to Deborah's also, he paid her no compliment whatever, but merely
began a flying conversation on the people, the evening, and the season's
promise of gayety.
"So that is the Countess de Mailly," observed Mme. d'Etioles, after a
long scrutiny. "How very—a—colonial she appears, and how inelegant she
is with those small hoops! Her manner is bourgeois, one can perceive at
once. Present her to me, Monsieur l'Abbé."
In the end it was Richelieu who performed the introduction between the
women. After their courtesies, Mme. d'Etioles addressed Deborah very
cordially, and with so many pretty words about her toilet that de Bernis
nodded to himself at her display of one of the traits which promised a Court
success. While the little group stood talking in one corner of the anteroom
the first lady was summoned for presentation. No one but the abbé took any
notice of the exit. He, however, whispered to Richelieu:
"They say that the King will not be present this evening. Is it so?"
The Duke took snuff, slowly. "My dear abbé, if I could read his
Majesty's mind I should be first minister in a week."
By this time, in the salon, the first four presentations were over. They
had been utterly uninteresting, the costumes commonplace, the courtesies
only passably executed, and, worse than all, the King had not appeared. It
was already long after ten o'clock, and there was small chance now of his
entering on the scene. The Court yawned, not even behind its hand, and the
very "saints" began to long for some better amusement. Rumor of interest to
be found in such functions was certainly false.
"Are they finished?" inquired the Queen, hopefully, of the first lady.
"Two! That is not quite customary. However, bid her hasten them. This
is very fatiguing."
A moment later the Princess de Conti passed into the antechamber, the
pages at her side. Two or three moments after came the clear announcement
from the chamberlain, at the door:
"Mme. de Conti has the honor to present to her Majesty the Comtesse
de Nesle de Mailly."
At that moment a small, tapestried door cut in the wall beside the
throne, and designed for unceremonious escape or arrival of royalty, was
pushed quietly open, and Louis appeared. He was not instantly perceived,
for every eye in the room was just then fixed on Deborah, who, with Mme.
de Conti at her side and a royal page bearing her train, entered and passed
slowly up the salon towards the Queen. Half-way up the aisle, at a slight
sign from her conductress, she made the first reverence. They were not
simple to perform, these presentation courtesies. One was obliged to stop
short in the walk, and, without any perceptible break in movement, sink
slowly to the floor, rise again, and proceed. Many had been the nervous
débutante who overbalanced in going down, and had to be rescued from
disgrace by the skill of her lady of honor. The barest murmur—approval
from the gentlemen and assent from the ladies—floated through the room as
Deborah went gracefully down a second time. And the murmur continued,
changed into one of surprise, when, Marie Leczinska being perceived to
have risen, the King was discovered beside the throne, his whole attention
concentrated on Mme. de Mailly in her laces. Deborah herself was
extremely nervous. She alone, of all the roomful, had witnessed the
entrance of the King. And now, as she finished the progress, her eyes,
unconscious of what they were doing, remained fixed on Louis' face. The
King was delighted. He answered the gaze with a slight smile, and beheld
the young woman's eyes quickly fall, while the color rushed into her
cheeks. The Queen, owing to the presence of her husband, stood, while
Deborah made the last of the three grand courtesies. Her Majesty was
greatly pleased with the youthful innocence of Mme. de Mailly's face and
the odd simplicity of her costly dress. Therefore, when Deborah made the
motion of kissing the hem of her garment, she extended her hand instead,
and afterwards murmured, graciously:
Deborah had not been informed of this possible part of the ceremony,
and would have backed away in horror had not Mme. de Conti vigorously
pinched her arm. A moment later they began the retreat. This time all the
ladies of the palace must be included in the semi-courtesies which occurred
with every four or five backward steps. It was a difficult performance for all
three of the party, the presented, the presenter, and the train-bearer.
Moreover, it was generally done under a running fire of whispered
comments, some of which generally reached the ears of the débutante. Only
one speech, however, was audible to Deborah as she passed; and over this
she pondered, at intervals, for some days after, so that, when its full
meaning was apparent to her, the shock of it was lessened.
It was with a sigh of perfect relief that Deborah saw the portière of the
antechamber fall before her, blotting out the view of the salon, and, as she
turned to Claude, Mme. de Conti said to her, graciously:
Mme. d'Etioles, hearing this from the corner wherein she still talked
with de Bernis, at once advanced to her: "Mme. de Mailly, you put me in a
difficult position. How am I to equal your success?"
Deborah looked a little nonplussed, for the insincerity of the remark was
perfectly apparent to her. Claude, however, said at once, "Mme. d'Etioles,
you have but to enter the room, when any one who appeared before you will
be utterly forgotten."
The presentation of Mme. d'Etioles having been the last of the evening,
her Majesty descended from the dais, the lines of the ladies of the palace
were broken, and the promenade began. Richelieu, taking a flattering leave
of Claude and Deborah, made his way as rapidly as possible to his Majesty,
who, by a coincidence, was hurrying towards him.
"Come with me, then. I must speak to them both, but separately. You
understand? You will occupy one, while—"
Claude and young Marc Antoine ceased their conversation as the King
approached. After saluting both gentlemen, his Majesty turned to Claude.
"Monsieur," he said, heartily, "we welcome your return with the greatest
satisfaction. You read our letter well. Oh, we have not forgotten, you see.
And we—compliment you, monsieur, upon having won the most charming
of ladies. She is English, Monsieur le Comte?"
"A pity they are so far away. One would like to visit them."
Claude forced a smile, while Louis turned next to d'Argenson. Upon this
Richelieu at once crossed to the Count and opened conversation with him
so adroitly that the King's next remarks were happily inaudible.
CHAPTER VI
Snuff-Boxes
It was the afternoon of November 22d, ten days after the King's return
to Paris, not yet twenty-four hours since her Majesty's first salon at
Versailles. The Abbé de Bernis, companionless, was proceeding slowly out
of the grand entrance of the palace and down the broad avenue towards the
first fountain. It was a raw day, gray and bleak, with a northeast Austrian
wind, and an atmosphere resembling the relations between France and
England. Nevertheless, the Abbé François was not walking hurriedly. If he
were going into the town of Versailles, he was taking a circuitous route. The
dress that he wore was decidedly non-clerical, being a rich costume of
cramoisie satin, with very presentable Mechlin ruffles, and a heavily
embroidered waistcoat. The wig was the only thing about him that
proclaimed his calling, and even that, just now, was concealed by his hat
and the high collar of the black cloak in which he was muffled.
By the time the abbé reached his temporary destination he had made
shift to answer his not very creditable questions and come to a kind of hazy
determination concerning his course.
Mme. de Coigny was at home and would receive him. He was shown
directly from the antechamber to the little salon off her boudoir. Here he
seated himself by the heavily curtained window, after throwing hat and
cloak upon a chair beside the tall escritoire. Madame kept him waiting. He
crossed his knees, and pulled from one of his pockets a little article
wrapped in a feminine handkerchief. Returning the wrapper to the pocket,
he sat idly examining what he held. It was a cross of golden filigree,
apparently of Eastern workmanship, and set with red stones. The sun, at the
moment, was near to breaking through the clouds, and he held the little
thing up to watch the light play over the garnets, when the boudoir door
opened and Victorine came quietly in.
He rose, looked approvingly at her toilet, and held out the cross.
"I found this, by chance, two or three days ago among some old
possessions of mine sent from Tours. Would you care for it? I offer it—not
as a symbol, you understand. Merely an ornament. It is not valuable."
He smiled slightly as she seated herself at a little distance from him. She
was even paler than usual, and looked as though she might have been
suffering physically.
"Oh yes; perfectly. I am never ill. I scarcely saw you last night. What
did you think of the presentations? Is not Mme. de Mailly lovely?"
A smile broke over her face, and, for a moment, transfigured it. "Ah,
François, that is as you were. Lately, sometimes, I had thought you changed
towards me."
"What things? Tell me, François. Indeed, I will consider them. Only tell
me all that is in your heart. I belong to you. You know that," she whispered.
De Bernis moved uneasily. Tell what was in his heart? He was wiser
than that; but his way was not easy. "You know, little one, that I am not a
powerful man—not an influential one. Yet I am ambitious. I have but a
small place to keep. There is a great one which I wish to win. A—cardinal's
hat, Victorine! That is my dream! You see, I am opening my heart to you."
"Ah, if I could make you a cardinal—if I could make you Pope,
François! If I could make you the greatest man in the world!"
"Then, if that is true, François, what more can you desire? The beretta
could do no more for you."
"Ah," she said, smiling, "I could love him no better than I love you. My
dear, if I were given my choice between you and the King of France, do you
not know which I should choose?"
"Nay, but, Victorine, if, by being favorite of the Court, of the King, you
could further your own interests, if you could further mine—if I asked it of
you—"
"What do you mean?" she demanded, and there was something in the
tone which made him thankful that he had gone no further. "Are"—she
breathed convulsively, but went on in a lighter manner—"are you testing
me? Are you trying to learn my nature—how far I would sink? Ah,
François, you, who have given me such joy, the only happiness that I have
known, have given me also my greatest sorrow. Do not think, because I
renounced everything for you, that I am like the women of the Court. I
loved you—I love you—you always—more dearly than—honor. But,
François, it was only for love. I am proud that you had no position to give
me. I swear to you, by what I still hold sacred, that if the post won by Mme.
de Châteauroux were offered me by his Majesty, on his knees, I would
prefer to die than to accept such a thing." She passed her hand over her
forehead, and lay back again in her chair, smiling a little at his earnest
frown. "I do not censure Mme. de Châteauroux, François, you understand.
She loved the King—as I love you."
The actual veracity of this last statement was an immaterial thing. It was
Victorine's belief in it that did her honor. François did not remark upon it,
neither did he voice any further confessions of ambition. Mme. de Coigny
was singularly blind to her interests and his. She was not the type of woman
that belonged to a court. True, had her position been rather more influential,
no man need have desired better things than would have fallen to the lot of
the sagacious abbé. But, being only the wife of a Marquis field-marshal,
and too single-hearted for wisdom, she was a luxury undesirable for a rising
man. For an instant de Bernis' thoughts were directed to the husband. After
all, his position as one of the favorite courtiers, and one really esteemed,
would have been difficult to overcome in order that madame might be
installed alone in the palace. It was as well, perhaps, that her trend of mind
was such as he had discovered it to be. It was also as well that, in the midst
of the reflective pause, the antechamber door should unexpectedly have
opened, and M. de Coigny himself have entered the room.
"Ah! Pardon me, madame. I was unaware that you were engaged."
Victorine rose quickly, looked at her husband, saw his eyes meet those
of the abbé, and remained silent. De Coigny was about to turn upon his heel
and leave them, to her great relief, when François spoke:
"I beg, monsieur, that you will not let me deprive you of madame's
society. I am just on the way to Paris, and was taking my leave as you
came."
"If you are going to the city, you must first have something—a glass of
wine. Yes, yes! It will not be long. I will order at once."
In spite of de Bernis' earnest protestation, Victorine summoned the valet
and ordered wine and rissoles for all three.
"You will, then, allow me to partake with you?" asked the Maréchal,
with a quizzical scrutiny of his wife, who merely nodded, saying, dully:
When the abbé was gone, and Jules and his wife were left alone
together, Victorine looked uneasily about her, hoping for a means of escape.
"I must ask your pardon, madame, once more, for having been so stupid
as to have intruded upon you. Gérome did not inform me—"
There was a pause. De Coigny should have been making his departure.
Yet still he stood there, as awkwardly as possible, half turned from his wife,
who sat regarding him in some astonishment, and without the desire to say
a word. The marshal's head drooped a little. He put one hand to his
forehead, and seemed to be going through an inward struggle. Several
moments passed. Madame moved restlessly. Finally she said:
Coigny shook his head and passed his hand over his eyes. "It is
immaterial, Victorine. I have already said it once. I will not repeat myself. It
is—immaterial, I say. Good-afternoon."
"Good-afternoon."
And thus it was to the vague relief of the woman that he left her there,
in her small salon, alone.
The first part of the foregoing conversation might have proved very
serviceable, at this time, to the Abbé de Bernis. He was not, however, so
fortunate as even to chance upon the idea of such a thing as the
reinstallation of la Châteauroux. As he drove towards Paris he continued his
meditations on the topic which had occupied him all day. They had now
taken a surer trend. One doubtful possibility was done away with. He found
himself left with two others, less dubious, but, had he the wit to surmise it,
possibilities which half the men of the Court were quietly planning, even as
he himself, to make their own.
The others acquiesced with alacrity. Their problem was too important to
trust to forgotten history for solution. At this moment Richelieu, with
serious intent, took snuff, raising the cover of his box in so significant a
manner that it was impossible that all should not perceive its miniature to
have been removed, leaving the tarnished gold alone visible under the
pearl-surrounded glass.
There was a general smile. Then de Gêvres remarked, slowly: "I will
purchase that miniature of you for my own use, du Plessis."
De Gêvres pulled out his own box and handed it to the abbé. In it was
an exquisitely painted portrait of Marie Anne de Nesle, done just before she
was created Duchesse de Châteauroux.
All leaned forward to look upon the delicately painted features. They
were those of Pauline Félicité de Vintimille, the sister and predecessor of
Mme. de Châteauroux.
"It is old-fashioned, gentlemen, but I have always liked the face—so
young—so gentle—so sad beneath the smile," observed the philosopher.
"I can complete the trio," said Penthièvre, laughing, and producing
another round lid. "I was reminiscent to-night, and selected this from my
collection."
"D'Epernon and de Bernis, let us see yours. Perhaps they will have a
new bearing on the subject, and will bring a prophecy."
"But you are going to change it, you know. Tell us, what new face is to
displace this?"
"I will tell you, M. de Richelieu, when you have confessed what one is
to fill your empty space."
"Well then, if you will know," Richelieu lowered his tone, "the post is
going to continue for a fourth turn in the family de Mailly. Within three
months I shall place here the face of—Count Claude's wife."
"Ah!"
"Really!"
"The colonial?"
"Perhaps!"
"I wonder," asked d'Holbach, musingly, of the air, "if Claude de Mailly
will let her go, without expostulation, to one of the Choisy suppers."
Richelieu said nothing, but under his languid exterior was a fierce
determination that Mme. de Mailly, Claude or no Claude, should go to a
Choisy supper, and the first to which she was asked.
"And now, Monsieur l'Abbé, what attributes for the post has your pretty
bourgeoise, Mme. d'Etioles?" inquired d'Epernon.
"You know that? She confesses it?" asked Richelieu, leaning suddenly
forward, and betraying more interest than, considering the proximity of de
Gêvres, was dignified.
"Confessed it? Not in words. There was but her eye, her animation, her
color, the quivering of the nostril—an air hard to describe, easy to read,
which you all know, messieurs."
"But yes!"
"True. But Mme. de Mailly is a far newer type. She is young, ingenue,
naïve; would not understand even that compliments were required. And
novelty, gentlemen, novelty, is what we all, not less than his Majesty,
require."
"That is true. I feel it necessary at this moment. Supper must surely
have been announced by this time. I go to seek 'la Poule',"* observed de
Gêvres, rising.
"Yes. She has just passed into the other room with d'Hénin."
M. de Maurepas had the honor of driving alone with the King. The
roads were bad, and the royal coach grievously heavy, so that the poor
minister came to be in difficulties for entertaining conversation towards the
last stages of the three-hour journey. Louis listened good-naturedly to his
various remarks, but at length took occasion to switch the topic round to
that one of all others which Maurepas had been trying to avoid.
"'Tis said, Phélippeaux," observed the King, blinking, "that our dear
friend the Duchesse de Châteauroux, and you, our other dear friend, are not
amicably disposed towards one another. How is this?"
"Relate it to me."
Louis, who was looking slightly amused, raised his hand: "Enough,
Phélippeaux. I am aware of some things. We shall try, during the
forthcoming week, to give you the opportunity of proving to madame your
entire innocence in that regrettable affair. I wish you to become reconciled
to madame, Phélippeaux, for, to be plain, I can do without neither of you."
During this soliloquy the royal coach passed the barrier and entered the
dark streets of the city. After twenty minutes of silent and rapid driving,
Louis touched his minister's arm.
"Look, Phélippeaux, there is the very house towards which, to-morrow,
I take my way."
And Maurepas' surmise was right. La Châteauroux was ill. A long and
fruitless course of d'Agenois, of repining for her lost position, of battling for
herself, single-handed, against the drawn ranks of the dames d'étiquette,
with but a momentary glimpse of the King on his way to mass after his
return, with the news of the beginning of the winter fêtes, and, finally, more
than all, the possibility that she had been effaced from Louis' memory by
the appearance of a rival—these things had preyed upon her woman's nature
till they threw her into a nervous fever which medicine but increased, and
for which there was but one remedy. Sad weeks, indeed, these were. Her
brave defiance was broken. Day after day, through the long gray hours, she
would lie in her bedroom, silent, impatient, answering sharply if spoken to,
otherwise mute, uncomplaining, and melancholy. Young d'Agenois was
with her constantly, and now importuned marriage till at times she was near
consent. What frayed strand of hope still held her back it were difficult to
surmise. How had it been with her had she accepted this young man's
eagerly proffered self? Had the tragedy of Versailles been doubled or
avoided? Had de Bernis or Richelieu won his wager? Useless to guess. At
eleven o'clock on this night of the 23d of November young d'Agenois left
his lady's fauteuil, and the light in the top story of the Rue du Bac went out
for a little time.
"Yes," was the reply. And so Bachelier waited in the lower hall.
"At nine o'clock this evening," was the message. And with it, and a nod
of satisfaction, the royal servant left the house.
He left much behind him that may be easily enough imagined. Enough
to say that the designated evening hour found the once gloomy little hôtel in
a most unwonted condition. The whole lower floor was lighted softly, with
not too many candles, for Mme. de Châteauroux's face bore the ravages of
anxiety and illness. The salon, in perfect order, was empty. Not so the little
dining-room, a charming place, with elaborate decorations of palest mauve
and gold, a crystal chandelier, and a tiny round table in its centre, heaped
with a profusion of flowers, and the most delicate collation that Mme. de
Flavacourt and the chef together could devise. No wines had been brought
up, for they were kept cooler below. But here, upon her chaise-longue, no
rouge upon her flaming cheeks to-night, hair elaborately coiffed for the first
time in many days, swathed all in laces, covered with a piece of pale,
embroidered satin, arms and hands transparent in the light, her whole form
more delicate than ever before, reclined Marie Anne de Mailly—waiting.
Minutes passed and the hour drew near. Madame moved nervously, her
hands wandering over the shadowy garments. The whole hidden household
breathed uneasiness, anticipation. Clocks chimed nine. The hour was past.
He was late—no! Mme. de Châteauroux sat up. There had been the faintest
knock at the door. Fouchelet hurried through the hall. For an instant the
Duchess tightly clenched her hands. Then her face changed utterly in
expression. All anxiety and eagerness slipped away from it. It had become
calm, cool, indifferent, showing strong marks of physical suffering. The
eyes burned with determination, but her mouth wore a peculiar, disdainful
smile that few women, in her place, would have dared to use.
Now a black-cloaked figure hurried through the salon, stopping on the
threshold of the room where madame lay. Here the protecting hat and coat
were rapidly thrown aside, and the new-comer hastened to madame.
The cheeks of la Châteauroux grew a little redder, her eyes a little more
brilliant. "Your Majesty will pardon me that I do not rise?" she said.
Madame drew away a little. "You wish that?" she asked, looking at him
keenly.
"Why should I? Life there was not at all easy. Many changes would be
necessary before I should consent to live again inside its walls."
"I did not refer to Monseigneur. It is Maurepas that I want sent off."
"He had all to do with it. He hates me, that man. I vow that until he has
left Versailles I will not show my face there at any cost."
Louis grew red with irritation. "You are absolutely wrong, Anne. De
Maurepas had no more to do with your going than I. I swear it!"
"Then who was the man that instigated Monseigneur to force his way
into your apartment?"
The King hesitated. Richelieu was a great favorite with him. Were it
possible he would have kept the truth of the matter from madame. If it were
not possible—he sighed, mentally—Richelieu must go. He could, at all
events, be spared better than Maurepas, who had the invaluable ability of
steering the water-logged ship of state very skilfully between the oft-
threatening Scylla of debt and Charybdis of over-taxation.
Presently Louis rose and moved over to the table. Here, after looking
absently about, he picked up an egg filled with cream (a new and delicate
invention). Taking up a knife, he struck off the egg's head. This was a
favorite trick of his, and one which he performed with unerring daintiness.
"Look, Anne. Had it been Maurepas who forced our consigne, this is what
we should have done to him." He smilingly held up the end of the shell for
her to see, and then, putting it down, began to eat the cream.
"I had not heard that any one had been beheaded of late. I thought it was
out of fashion," observed madame, with apparent interest.
"True enough. I'll send Maurepas to tell you about everything. But, look
you, if I have that person—exiled, if I present you with a list of courtiers for
you to do as you wish with, if I reinstate you mistress of Versailles, will you
in turn grant me two requests?"
He looked at her sharply, and she returned the glance with one that he
could not read. "The first—d'Agenois—pouf! You may have him. He
wearies me inexpressibly," she said, after a pause. "But Maurepas—
Besides, I have not yet signified a wish to return to Versailles. A month ago
I wrote to Richelieu that I never should."
"No. That is, I would not refuse, but that—I am not fond of M. de
Maurepas."
She had carried her stubborn insolence too far at last. The King
frowned, threw away his egg, and marched steadily over to where he had
thrown his hat and cloak. "It is as well. I gave you your choice, madame.
Maurepas is no Comtesse de Mailly. Neither you nor any woman can drive
him from my court."
At the tone of Louis' voice madame's heart had suddenly ceased to beat.
She saw her mistake. Was it too late? No. On the threshold of the doorway
the King, after a hesitation and struggle with himself, turned. She seized her
final opportunity without a pause. Holding out her arms with exaggerated
feebleness, she said, slowly:
And thus her danger must have ended, and Louis' point have been
satisfactorily gained; for it was past midnight when France left the Rue du
Bac, to proceed by chair to the Tuileries. "Maurepas will be with you at
noon; and may the god of friendship preside at the meeting!" were his
parting words to the Duchess, who nodded and smiled her approval. Then,
while Fouchelet and the second valet cleared the remains of the feast from
the little, disordered table, the mistress of Versailles, pale, burning with
fever, and exhausted with fatigue, every nerve quivering with excitement at
the life reopening to her, dragged herself to her bedroom, where Mme. de
Lauraguais and the round-eyed maid awaited her arrival.
The Marquis, very much put out, did madame that honor.
There was a little pause. The Marquis anticipated being asked to sit
down. Madame seemed to forget this courtesy. So, to his chagrin, Maurepas
continued to stand, concealing his awkwardness and his ill-humor as best he
might. At least the Duchess took no notice of his discomfort.
He spoke with a smile which annoyed madame, not for the first time.
"Monsieur, last evening his Majesty was here to request my return to
Versailles, and the resumption of my duties as lady of the palace of the
Queen. This, on certain conditions, I am willing to do. You will, however,
readily perceive how impossible it would be for me to return while at
Versailles dwells the man who brought about my dismissal from Metz, in
August. Do you not agree with me?"
"I ask you, monsieur, if it was not you who wrote the letter of dismissal
from Metz—that one delivered to me by d'Argenson?"
"Ah! I understand now. No, madame, I can freely say that I had nothing
to do with your dismissal in any way. I had not dreamed that I was
suspected of it."
Madame lay back, knitting her brows. The man before her had
unquestionably told the truth. She knew that as much from his indifferent
manner as from the lack of protestations in his denial. At first disappointed,
the Duchess became, after a moment's reflection, intensely curious.
A smile broadened Maurepas' lips. His eyebrows went up, and his
shoulders were lifted a hair's-breadth. "Madame—how should I know?"
"Ah, peste! In the same way that the whole court must know! Truly, I
should be a fool to go back to Versailles ignorant of the name of him who
had sought to ruin me. Every one would be laughing behind my back.
Monsieur le Marquis, you may either answer my question or return to the
King the message that I shall, after all, remain here."
Madame was angry. "You have heard what I say. You shall abide by it.
Tell me—or go."
The Duchess looked thoughtful. The words had been crisply spoken,
and had betrayed none of Maurepas' real discomfiture. "Certainly," said she.
"Monsieur le Marquis—"
"Madame!"
"I agree to your conditions. I give my word."
"Richelieu, madame."
With such speed did madame run the whole gamut of evidence: the last
morning at Metz; Richelieu's absence from the rooms; his imperturbability
before Chartres; her letters since dismissal scantily answered, and, some of
them, not at all; his failure to visit her since the return; and then, last night,
Louis' uneasiness at her curiosity. Yes. It was but too plain. Richelieu,
King's favorite, her own mentor, had turned traitor at last.
"Ah! The villain! The wretch! The traitor! The imbecile! Never again
shall he see me at Versailles! Monsieur, will you pour me a glass of water
there?"
Upon the little table at her side stood a high pitcher and a small silver
goblet. Maurepas hastened to comply with the request, and, as he handed
her the cup, he noted how eagerly she drank, how bright was the flush on
her cheek, how transparent the hand that she held to her face; and then the
rather grim question came to him whether, after all, Richelieu's banishment
would endure very long. But the thought was only transitory. After all, a
woman of twenty-seven, strong of body and stronger of spirit, is not carried
off at the very summit of her career by an intermittent fever. Thus, when she
returned the empty cup to the King's minister, and their glances met for a
second, he read in her face resolution and to spare to carry her through
much more than such a sickness as her present one.
"Have no fear of me, monsieur. I shall not betray you. Will you accept
my gratitude?"
Mme. de Châteauroux held out her hand, and, while the minister bent
over to kiss it, she smiled down on the powdered head with a look in her
eyes that he, could he have seen it, would have considered with something
like apprehension. "Our friendship is ratified, M. de Maurepas. Au revoir."
"Thank you. With Maurepas for one's friend, who could dread
anything?"
So, with a final salute, and a grim smile at himself for his undeniable
defeat at a woman's hands, Maurepas concluded his task, and, with relief at
his heart, crossed the threshold of the dwelling of the favorite of France.
CHAPTER VIII
Deep Waters
The 5th of December fell on Sunday, and proved a day dull enough for
all the court. For once their Majesties dined together in the Salle du Grand
Couvert, as Louis XIV. would have had them do. But the King did not
appear at his consort's salon in the evening. He merely informed her that it
was his pleasure that she should hold a special reception two nights later, on
the evening of the 7th, at which he would be present; why, he did not
explain. Though it would be the evening before the Feast of the Conception,
and therefore a time for extra devotions, Marie Leczinska gratefully
acceded to her husband's request, delighted at anything which should bring
him into her rooms. In the evening Louis supped in the small apartments
with a select company of privileged gentlemen, his pages of the Court,
Maurepas, and d'Argenson.
"It is a feast of nine, my friends—the old Roman number. Let us, then,
be classic in our drinking and our conversation," observed his Majesty, with
unusual loquacity.
The King did not at once reply. Finally, with a smile peculiar to himself,
he glanced at his favorite. "You shall choose the toast, du Plessis. Jove or
Venus?"
"Is it necessary? There is but one." The King negligently lifted his glass,
while only de Coigny of all the tableful breathed normally. "Marie
Leczinska, your Queen, gentlemen!"
Each face fell slightly. Glasses were emptied without a word, and the
silence continued as the dishes of the first course were passed.
"These birds are very fine, but there is no venison," remarked Louis,
helping himself to his favorite fillet of partridge.
The King looked quickly up. "Quite true. The councils have demanded
me. But I am arranging a hunt—a large hunt. What meetings to-morrow,
d'Argenson?"
"Ah, yes. You and Machault are diligent enough there. But the day after
—the 7th? I do not wish to be at council on that day."
"There will be none, Sire," responded the young man, obediently, the
interest dying out of his eyes; and Maurepas, with some amusement,
watched him begin to crumble his bread.
"Sire, this one person whom you so honor returns in the party to
Versailles—is it not so?" asked de Sauvré, bravely.
D'Argenson bowed.
The supper-list? Deborah was upon that. Richelieu breathed deeply. Was
he wrong in his fears? And yet, was it possible that this secrecy should be
used in the installation of a new favorite? Certainly none at that table except
Maurepas was any more enlightened concerning this affair than he was
himself. He scanned the faces around him. De Sauvré and Coigny were
unconcerned. Veiled curiosity was perceptible in the eyes of d'Epernon and
Penthièvre. D'Argenson, like a very young diplomat, appeared reflective,
and inclined to conjecture by analysis the real object of his forthcoming
interview with the King. And de Gêvres, whose face was invariably set in
an expression of bored indifference, had now something in the line of
mouth and eyes that gave his countenance a suggestion of alertness and
satisfaction. Richelieu concluded his scrutiny with even less hope than he
had begun it. However, since the table were eating with good appetite, he
made shift to follow, and forget himself as far as might be in a well-
seasoned ragout of pigeon.
The Duke shook his head helplessly. "I have never seen any there. I do
not think that it is she." Again he looked round the circle, and again was
Maurepas' the only intelligent face present. Richelieu bit his lip in anger;
but, as the second course and much wine now made its appearance, the
conversation turned to less ambiguous topics, and the drinking, with all its
conviviality, began. Many were the ladies to whom Louis deigned to raise
his glass, the Countess de Mailly being among the first of them. And when,
an hour later, the nine gentlemen rose from the table, the cares and fears of
all of them were lighter. After a bottle of old Tokay, a tender partridge, and
a successful epigram, who would not rise above a dread of the intrigues of a
fickle, unhappy King, whose best hours were spent with men, and to whom,
at such times, women seemed unimportant enough?
The King passed across to the window, and stood with his hand on the
sill, looking out across the court at the lights in the opposite rooms.
"D'Argenson, have you, beside the Choisy list, one of the entire Court and
all the families here represented?"
The King hesitated, seemed to reflect for a moment, and then, with his
eyes still fixed outside the room, answered: "Yes, that were as well. De
Berryer is in Paris, I believe. And, well, Monsieur le Comte—" the King
turned and faced him—"I have a mission for you to-morrow."
D'Argenson bowed.
"You will leave for Paris, at an hour as early as you find convenient.
Arrived at the city, go at once to the Prefecture, obtain the written list of the
Court from de Berryer—I will send you an order to-night—and proceed
with that to the Rue du Bac, numéro—."
His Majesty smiled. "Yes. You will find there Mme. de Châteauroux;
and to her you will present the list. She will be so gracious as to read it
through and to strike from it the names of those who have not the happiness
to please her. In the afternoon you will return to me with the revised list,
which—um—I shall put into execution on Wednesday, probably. That is all,
monsieur. I wish you good-evening."
The Count was about to leave the apartment, when the King himself
turned upon his red heel and abruptly left the room. D'Argenson, with a new
horizon to his world, moved weakly to the side of the room, and sank upon
a tabouret just as the door opposite to him swung open, and Richelieu, his
task completed, appeared from the King's bedroom.
"Hola, Marc! What is the matter? You need rouge," he said, wearily.
"I should prefer a glass of Berkley's English gin," responded the Count,
without animation.
"Yes."
"Well—your news?"
"Ah!" Richelieu hesitated for a second. Then he said, softly: "When will
the revisal of the list be carried into effect at Court? Do you know?"
"On Wednesday."
"One. The King hunts. We shall all be at Choisy. Madame joins us there,
you know, and returns with us—for the salon of the Queen."
"Naturally."
Richelieu was silent, and his face looked drawn. This sensation of
helplessness was very new to him. He seemed to hesitate. Then, after a few
moments he said, slowly: "No, I shall wait. One thing—will you do me a
favor?"
"To-morrow evening, when you return from Paris, show me the list."
"And to-morrow morning," added the Duke, as they left the room
together—"to-morrow morning, after mass, I shall go to the Œil-de-B[ce]uf
and remain there till you return in the evening."
D'Argenson smiled faintly; and then in silence they passed into the
Queen's antechamber.
Marie Leczinska's salon was not so brilliant as the one of two weeks
before. It was, however, sufficiently filled to put one in proper mood,
without danger of ruining hoops; which, after all, was a slight relief. Both
Claude and Deborah were here to-night, never together, but also never very
far apart. Mme. de Mailly had become one of the most-sought-after persons
in the Court, and her husband, while he conformed always to the
conventions by not approaching her in public, was, nevertheless, aware of
every person who spoke to her of an evening, heard every compliment paid
her by men, and a good many of the enviously malicious speeches that were
beginning to be made about her by the women. To-night Richelieu, on
entering the salon, made his way at once to Deborah's side. She had been
speaking with the Marquis de Tessé, while the Prince de Soubise hovered
near, thinking up a suitable gallantry with which to pounce upon her.
Richelieu adroitly forestalled him, however, and reached her first, well
pleased at being able to do so. The Duke was moving at random, for he had
found no plan of possible salvation yet. There only lay in his mind a dim
notion that, if safety should be his at the eleventh hour, it would come to
him through this same Deborah. The idea was surely instinctive, for it had
small reason in it. What could a little colonial, what could any woman—the
poor, pale Queen herself—do against Claude's cousin, the reinstated
favorite, the great Duchesse de Châteauroux, and that gently spoken,
inflexible, indomitable "Je le veux" which Louis of France had used? True,
Deborah had become a de Mailly, had been much noticed by the King, and
was talked of in peculiar whispers by all the Court. Nevertheless, what so
precarious as her position? What favors might she ask? None. And yet, here
was falling Richelieu hurrying to no Maurepas, no Machault, or Berryer, or
any powered man, but to the side of her who had been born, eighteen years
before, in a wide-roofed Virginia farm-house.
"Oh, I should like to go! I have seen Mlle. Sallé—last week. And Mme.
Pélissier also. She has such a voice!"
"Will you, then, you and monsieur, do me the honor to occupy my box?
We will have Mme. de Coigny and the abbé—"
"Oh no! Please—" Deborah began, impulsively, but, realizing what she
was doing, stopped short in embarrassment.
"Pardon me, I did not know that you and the little Victorine were—
uncongenial. Whom shall I ask?"
Richelieu looked at her curiously, and might have spoken his thought
had not Claude at that moment moved somewhat closer to them, and the
Duke, therefore, turned to him. "I am just praying Madame la Comtesse to
arrange a party for me for the Opéra to-morrow evening. Will you not join
us?"
"Thank you, I am engaged to St. Severin for a supper and the Français.
Madame, if she has no other engagement, will be delighted to accept your
kindness, I do not doubt," returned Claude, pleasantly.
Deborah turned a half-wistful glance towards her husband, but was met
with a gentle smile of refusal that suddenly changed her manner.
Richelieu bowed his thanks, and looked long into her honest gray eyes.
"I will call for you in my coach at seven, madame, if you will permit. I bid
you—au revoir." With a bow such as he would have given to a superior in
rank, he moved away, making room for M. de Soubise, who had settled
upon his compliment, and was itching to have it out before it should lose
flavor with silent rehearsal.
Richelieu did not remain much longer in the room. Towards the end of
the promenade his Majesty, his dog Charlotte under one arm, unexpectedly
made his appearance, negligent in manner, intent, as it seemed, on speaking
with Deborah. Richelieu saw the King with a new feeling. It was the first
time that he had ever thought of Louis as holding interests foreign to his
own. Hitherto they had been allies in every council, in every amusement.
Now, at last, in desire and intention, they were separated, and it was a
woman who stood between them. Richelieu shook himself. His thoughts
were becoming bitter. Cutting short an exchange of graces with Mme. de
Mirepoix, he left the rooms, and, informing the grand chamberlain that he
would be unable to assist at the royal couche that evening, sought his own
apartment, and was put to bed by his valet, not to sleep, but to plan, to twist,
to turn, and still, with a new, unconquerable dread, to anticipate the morrow.
Morning came late. Richelieu, in fact, rose with the dawn, for the King
was always roused at eight, and it was the duty of the first gentleman, since
he had been absent on the previous evening, to bring water in which his
Majesty should wash, and to put the royal dressing-gown about the royal
shoulders. Louis was in a quizzical mood, and tried, rather unkindly, to play
with the feelings of his favorite courtier. Richelieu's sang-froid was
imperturbable, however. He was now bound in honor to his own code to
exhibit no trace of the feeling which, last night, he had almost been guilty
of betraying, through nervous uncertainty.
Considering that the hour was before morning mass, the Œil-de-Bœuf
was unusually thronged. Both men and women were there, and the place
hummed with conversation. For the first moment or two Richelieu held off
from the company, judging, by means of his trained ear and his long
experience, the nature of the gossip from the key of the conglomerate
sound. It varied to-day, now high with laughter, now more ominous, again
medium with uncertainty. The omen was good. It boded no definite evils of
knowledge—yet. Thereupon the Duke permitted himself to be accosted by
M. de Pont-de-Vesle, of the King's formal household, an old man, tall and
lean, wearing his wig à la Catogan, and with a miniature of Ninon de
l'Enclos in his snuff-box.
"Thank you. Ah! You use civet. The King does not receive to-day. He is
in council. Machault reads the report," returned Richelieu, very civilly,
considering the fact that Pont-de-Vesle had addressed him in the form
which, of all others, he most disliked.
"Ah! When his Majesty has not hunted for a week we are all forlorn.
When he takes to council—Ciel!—it is like the beginning of a reign of
Maintenon. How do you perfume your snuff?"
"I come for it, my dear Count," returned Richelieu. "What do they talk
of in the Œil to-day?"
"That is more difficult. There are many rumors. It is said in Paris that—
Mme. de Châteauroux is to come back."
The Duke raised his eyebrows. "Paris! That is a curious news-mart.
What says Versailles?"
"We say," interrupted the other, quickly, "that there are other candidates
who would please better."
"For instance?"
"Well, for one, the little American, Mme. de Mailly. But, parbleu! the
post must not remain forever in one family! I think that this girl should
never have been taken up. What is her blood? Her husband swears to five
generations; but—the husband!—Pouf!"
"But the Queen was delighted with her, and—the King will be," cried
the young Count, pleasantly.
"Heavens!"
"Ah, well," decided d'Aiguillon, sagely, "after all, it will be the ladies,
not we, who will settle matters for themselves."
"As for me, I should like to find a woman who would refuse the post."
And with this Richelieu, who could see no advantage in continuing the
conversation, saluted his companions of the moment and passed on to
others, whose talk, however, did not much vary from the foregoing style.
By the time that the hour for mass arrived, and the Court wended a leisurely
way towards Mansard's chapel, the favorite Duke was comforted in mind
and heart. He hoped; though why, and on what grounds, he could not have
told. The Œil-de-Bœuf was densely ignorant of the King's real project. He,
Richelieu, knew it only too well. La Châteauroux was to come back. Paris
knew. How, then, had he any right, or any reason, to hope? And, with this
logic, the shadow of despair came over him again, and through it, as
through a veil, he heard the melancholy intoning of priests' voices and the
monotonous chanting of the choir.
Dinner passed, it were difficult to say how, and the afternoon began.
There was attendance on his Majesty, who alternately played with three
dogs and sulked because there was nothing further to do; a few moments at
English tea with the circle of Mme. de Boufflers; an enforced interchange
of polite hostilities with de Gêvres, in the Salle d'Apollo; and then, some
little time after dusk began to fall, Richelieu made his way down to the
landing of the Staircase of the Ambassadors, out of sight of the Suisses and
the King's guards, in the great vestibule below. He was intensely nervous.
With each beat of his heart a new shock thrilled unpleasantly over him.
D'Argenson must be returning soon now, and must come in this way.
Minutes only remained before he should know the end. The lights in the
great candelabra at the stair-top illumined the vast, lifeless ascent but dimly.
Dreamily Richelieu thought of the pageants that he had seen upon this stair;
wondered, indeed, if he should see such again. Before great dread, time
itself flies. It seemed no half-hour, but a few seconds only, to the waiting
man before a darkly cloaked figure entered into the vestibule, passed the
Suisses in silence, and came, with wearily dragging steps, up the stairs.
Half-way up, the candle-light gleamed for an instant into his pallid face.
Richelieu's heart quivered downward as he stepped out from his sheltering
pillar and stood before young d'Argenson.
"Then she—"
"And you—also."
It had come, then. The two men stood still on the stairs, facing each
other for an unnoted time. Then Richelieu smiled. "You are wet with the
rain, Marc. When you leave the King, come to my rooms. There you will
find Grachet and some hot rum. I must make my toilet now. I have a party
to-night—for the Opéra."
CHAPTER IX
Unable to rid himself of this curious notion, Richelieu alighted from his
vehicle in the Rue d'Anjou, was admitted by the porter, and proceeded up
the stairs to the de Mailly apartment. Claude was not there. Richelieu knew
that from his own statement. Madame alone was within. How much
depended on the next few moments the Duke could not surmise.
Nevertheless, he gently tried the door from the hall, without knocking. It
was open. Noiselessly he entered the antechamber, and, crossing it, would
have passed into the salon but for a sight which halted him on its threshold,
in the shadow of the hangings.
The room before him was half lighted, and contained one person, who
stood motionless, her back towards the antechamber, on the other side of
the room. It was Deborah, fully dressed for the evening, if Richelieu judged
correctly; but in an attitude which threatened to destroy the elegant
simplicity of her coiffeur. She was in front of a little cabinet which stood
against the wall beside the mantel-piece, her two elbows, in their cloudy
lace ruffles, resting upon one of the shelves. Her powdered head lay upon
her arms; and now and again her slight frame could be seen to quiver with
the depth of a long-drawn sob. What was the matter? What was she doing?
What was it that the cupboard contained? Richelieu wondered and waited.
Then he was struck with a welcome notion. Here was she in a sorrowful,
therefore tender, mood. He alone was near her. Their growing friendship—
why not cement it with a delicate passage, delicately arranged? Who so able
to manage this successfully as Richelieu? For Richelieu believed that he
knew all women.
"Chère Comtesse!"
The words were so delicately murmured that they could not startle her.
She only lifted her head like one awaking from sleep and looked slowly
about. Seeing Richelieu at her side, and remembering the evening, she
suddenly straightened, forced herself back into the present, and began, with
an effort: "Pardon, I beg of you, mons—"
As Deborah looked for an instant into the large, limpid brown eyes of
the man before her, her own fell. Her mood also changed. She was suddenly
inclined to be on her guard with this man, whom she knew best as Claude's
mentor.
"My grief was for many persons and things. 'Twas for home, my own
people, my old friends—there—across the water—" and she pointed
whimsically into the cabinet at her former treasures.
"Eh!—You mean—"
"And these," the Duke pointed to the contents of the shelf—"all these
are—medicines—or alkaloids?"
"They are both," she replied, with a hint of troubled hesitation in her
tone.
In the rear of the shelf he had spied the box of fungi. Drawing it towards
him, he took from it one of the shrivelled brown things and examined it on
all sides. Deborah watched him in silence, her feeling of uneasiness
growing.
"Monsieur, will you not put them up? I think it is time to go."
He was regarding her in such apparent amusement that, for the moment,
she was nettled by the suspicion of mockery. "They are now five months
old—what I have there. But two of them would kill a grown man to-day.
There is no perceptible effect till from four to nine hours after eating. Then
—then, monsieur," she said, dryly, "the agony is not pretty to behold."
"No. They are like leather now. Will you replace them in the cupboard,
monsieur?—and we will speak of other things."
Without further protest Richelieu obeyed her, putting the fungi carefully
away, replacing the scoparium among the other bottles, and closing the little
door of the cabinet after him. Its key was in the lock. He turned it. And then
—then—Deborah was wrapping a cloudy veil about her head; she was
turned from him—he suddenly drew the key from the lock and slipped it
into his pocket. It was instinct that bade him do it—perhaps. Five minutes
later a coach rolled away from the house in the Rue d'Anjou and entered
upon the Paris road.
The party of six returned, after the opera, to Versailles, in one wide-
seated coach. Arrived at the palace and Richelieu's apartment within it,
supper was found awaiting them; and the evening progressed with all
possible gayety. Later the Maréchal de Coigny escorted Mme. de Mailly
home; and, at four o'clock in the morning, long before the December dawn,
Deborah Travis slept.
His Grâce de Richelieu was not so happy. Before his salon was cleared
of the remains of supper and set to rights again, Grachet, his valet, had put
him gently to bed, all pomaded, perfumed, silken-gowned, and capped. But
the warming-pan had made the sheets too hot; and the champagne had more
than usually heated his head. He turned and tossed and twisted like any
mortal, the great Richelieu, for the two heavy hours which constituted his
night; and it was during that time that the Determination was born. The idea
and the will—the little bronze key and the desire to use it—had met. Crime,
or the planning of crime, hovered there in the darkness over the heavy
canopy. Satan, cloven-hoofed, laughing, reclined in a chair near his new
friend. Richelieu fell gradually into a drowsy state. Strange whispers poured
from his lips. Such a night he had not spent before, such would never spend
again.
Morning came, finally. The Duke rose, with relief, at a little past six,
and dressed by candle-light. Grachet wondered in sleepy silence as he
prepared the chocolate at such an unheard-of hour, but came near to the
unpardonable false step of an exclamation, when his master, toying idly
with an egg, said, suddenly: "Grachet, go and ask Mouthier—his Majesty's
chef—to come to me at once if he can. Rouse him, if he is not yet up."
When the man had left the room upon his unprecedented errand,
Richelieu flung down his napkin and sprang to his feet. To have seen his
face and heard his hoarse breathing would have been to judge him
physically in pain. He walked in great strides up and down the apartment,
refusing to struggle against his impulses, crushing out the final prompting
of a long-weakened Other Nature. Presently he came to a halt before his
chamber door, just as Grachet re-entered, bringing with him an imposing
personage, somewhat dishevelled as to wig, but attired in a very neat black
suit, with waistcoat of cherry silk, and the blue ribbon of his order
elaborately arranged thereon.
"Mouthier, you are, to-day, going to allow his Majesty to create a vol-
au-vent royal à la Châteauroux—is it not so?"
"No. The gods whispered it. But, Mouthier, the gods refused to go
further than the name. Therefore I come to you, that I may learn more of a
dish which a king will prepare for a duchess. Tell me, oh, prince of thy art,
is this dish of kings sweet or sour, thick or thin, cold or hot? I would match
my coat to its consistency. What ingredients does it contain? Of what is it
compounded?"
"Your Grace—" The cook hesitated painfully, but found his professional
instinct stronger than his reverence for rank. "Your Grace—if I might be
assured that Marin—had nothing to do with this affair—"
"Marin? Oh! I see! But you cannot deem Marin your rival? Mouthier,
between us, Marin is a no one, a second-rate man, unfit even for the taste of
M. de Soubise. How the cordon bleu ever came to be delivered to him—
bah! Mouthier, you would not imagine me as intriguing with—with a
Marin, eh?"
Grachet stole a terrified glance at the Duke. Mouthier, cut short at the
very beginning of a recitation delicious to his creative soul, looked with
pathetic appeal at the great man, saw him point relentlessly to the
antechamber door, with unmistakable command in his face, and so,
thoroughly disappointed, and scarcely, in that disappointment, finding time
to wonder, began reluctantly backing, and, still murmuring raptly,
"seasoned with salt, with black butter, delicate spice, with bay-leaves, and
covered with the sauce à—la—," disappeared through the doorway and was
visible no more.
"M—M—Monsieur?"
Then Richelieu left his apartment and strode away through the dim,
deserted corridors, carrying along with him a hollow, dreary echo.
Descending the grand staircase where yesterday he had waited for
d'Argenson's return, he passed the drowsy guards in the vestibule, and
entered into the gray, chilly morning. It was very cold. In the night the rain
had turned to snow, and the Great Cross Canal lay before him frozen to ice.
The esplanade, the star, and the park were covered with soft white, still
unbroken, for it was too early as yet for marring footprints. With blood
quickening in his veins, and breath smoking in the frosty air, Richelieu
hurried into the desolate park, emerging at length on the Avenue de Paris,
on the edge of the town of Versailles. The little city was barely awake. The
dwelling-streets were still. Nevertheless, two or three men whom Richelieu
knew, and who took as much pains as he could have wished to avoid notice,
were moving dismally, on foot or in chairs, to their respective rooms.
Shutters of shops were being taken down, and a single church clock
boomed a quarter to eight when the Duke halted before the house in the Rue
d'Anjou.
Richelieu had some difficulty in rousing the concièrge. When the door
was finally opened to him by a man in a red nightcap, he pulled his own hat
so far over his face and his cloak so much about his ears as to be
unrecognizable, and hastened up-stairs. At the door of the de Mailly
apartment he stopped, hesitating. Was any one up within? He was, perhaps,
ruining himself by coming so early; yet it was the only thing to be done.
From an inner pocket he pulled the little bronze key to the cabinet in the
salon so near at hand. The sight gave him courage, and he tapped at the
door. There was a pause. His heart beat furiously now. Presently he tapped
again. Thereupon, as much to his surprise as to his relief, the door was
thrown open by a tired-looking lackey. Richelieu walked swiftly into the
antechamber, passed through it, and paused in the salon, where the servant,
astonished and mistrustful, came up with him. Here the Duke removed his
hat.
Richelieu held out to the man a pearl pin containing stones of some
rarity, which, as a matter of fact, belonged to himself. The servant looked at
it and slightly shook his head, but, catching a peremptory glance from the
Duke, he went off, wondering why such a man as Richelieu had not sent a
servant on his errand.
The moment that he was left alone, the man who bore the family name
of Louis XIII.'s great minister turned sharply towards the little black cabinet
by the wall. With a cold hand, his limbs stiffened, all apprehension stifled
by his eagerness, he unlocked the door, thrust his hand inside to that little
box that lay just where he had placed it on the night before, extracted
therefrom four of the small, round, dry mushrooms, placed them in an inner
pocket of his coat, closed the door again, relocked it, put the key on the
mantel, in the shadow of a porcelain vase, and was sitting down, tapping the
floor impatiently with his foot, when the lackey returned—empty-handed.
"The pin does belong to madame, Monsieur le Duc. Her maid tells me
that she wore it for the first time last evening, and will thank you much for
returning it."
After all, du Plessis could not have disposed of his pearls to better
advantage. He had not been designed by nature for such a part as he was
playing now; and the affair could scarcely have been conducted with less
prudence. Providence—or Satan—had favored him in a most unexpected
way; for who was there now to tell of his early and unwonted visit to the de
Mailly household? Certainly not the clever person who had made five or ten
thousand livres out of it. On his return walk towards the palace, Monsieur le
Duc mused appreciatively on the past incident.
CHAPTER X
"Vol-au-Vent Royal"
As a matter of fact, this entire affair had been planned with the greatest
care by Louis himself, who, with purpose very different from usual in
visiting Choisy to-day, had taken care to leave no loophole for impropriety,
which, in its wholesale form, was the most distasteful thing that Mme. de
Châteauroux ever had to endure.
At eleven o'clock in the morning Mouthier, with his staff and extra train
of servants to assist those regularly installed at the château, arrived, and
entered immediately upon his duties. In a box which he himself had borne
all the way from Versailles on his knee, reposed twelve cases of fresh
pastry, with elaborate scroll-work patterns upon their sides and covers. One
of these, smaller by half than the rest, was a work of art such as only
Mouthier could have contrived. These were the foundations for the dish of
the day; and the special case was to be filled with a composition of the
King's own, for the delectation of the—so-called—most beautiful, certainly
the most far-famed, lady in France.
"I hear no horns. Have they shot nothing to-day?" cried one who could
not see.
"Ah!"
"Mon Dieu!"
"What is it? Who is it? Who is so late? Are not all here?"
Deborah had watched the arrival of the coach with some indifference. A
liveried footman leaped down from behind and opened the door. Thereupon
a woman, hooded and cloaked in scarlet velvet, sable-lined, her huge
panniers managed with graceful ease, her great fur muff held high in both
hands, stepped forth, alone.
"You belie her. Mme. de Mailly is not in love with the King," returned
the little Maréchale, quietly.
The Gontaut did not reply. She had no more time to waste upon
Deborah, who had ceased to be observed in the general tumult. The chorus
of exclamations fell now to a series of whispers, for la Châteauroux was in
the house. How to receive her? After so many months of utter disgrace was
she at once, without protest, to step, with all her old, disdainful insolence,
into the second seat at Versailles? Certainly it must have been at royal
bidding that she came here. The hopeless daring of the otherwise was not
conceivable. Nevertheless, this was a shock difficult to recover from. The
whispers, which, during the anticipation, had almost ceased, began to run
again round the room.
The costume of the Duchess was a marvel to see. But her face received
most mental comments: it was so thin, the eyes were so large, the cheeks
hotly flushed even through the regulation rouge, the patches emphasizing
strongly the marble whiteness of the temples and lower part of her face. An
ordeal like this, however, might have turned any woman pale. Deborah
realized it, as, dully, she watched Claude's cousin. A kind of pity, mingled
with anger at the women about her, came over her own unhappiness. These
women—what had they to lose by the arrival of madame? Not a husband's
love. Only a possible smile from the master of a miserable, helpless Queen.
And so they stood here, like statues, torturing a woman, for the pure malice
of it. Faugh! These Court ways were not Deborah's. A moment more and
two women, out of the twenty, had started suddenly forward to the
Châteauroux. The first was Victorine de Coigny; the second was Deborah
Travis of Maryland. As she courtesied to the favorite, and felt one of her
hands taken into the cold palm of that golden-haired cousin, a sudden
fanfaronade of hunting-horns and a cutting of hoofs through the crisp snow
to the road broke the stillness. The great Duchess drew a long sigh. Her
ordeal was over. In five minutes a stream of gentlemen was pouring into the
room after Louis, their King, who moved straight to the side of his lady,
raised her hand to his lips, and then said, in a ringing tone:
"We learn of your recovery from illness with the greatest happiness,
madame, and it is our pleasure to welcome you again to our Court, where
we trust that you will to-morrow resume your former duties, as usual."
Then his Majesty, dropping the Majesty and his voice together,
whispered a few words that brought a smile to the curved lips; after which
he stepped back to make way for the press of men and women, who were
fairly struggling with each other for the opportunity of speaking to their
dear Duchess.
Louis, on retiring from madame's side, found himself near Deborah. Her
piquant face had always pleased him. He bent over her now with a gallant
compliment. The girl, quickening with pleasure, dropped a courtesy,
murmuring, a little confusedly, "Your Majes—"
"And now, Mouthier, for the great dish. How does it go? What do we
need for it?"
"Upon this table, Chevalier, are arranged all the ingredients. They are
not, however, prepared as yet." Mouthier waved his hand over the special
table which was covered with a variety of utensils and the materials
necessary for the composition of the vol-au-vent. Louis went over and
began examining them with interest.
"In half an hour the dish might be completed. Here is the case of pastry
which was prepared beforehand."
The last words were addressed to the six men who now entered the
kitchen in a body. They were at once furnished with garments duplicating
those of the King, which they proceeded to don with much real or forced
merriment. For all the pages, it must be confessed, did not share their
sovereign's love for this plebeian art. No one noticed when Richelieu made
a deft removal of something unseen from the pocket of his hunting-coat to
that of his cooking-jacket; for Louis was fussing over the chicken, and the
others still jested with each other, or looked, with some distaste, over the
large room, with its rough stone walls and chilly floor, and at the great,
open fireplace, with its iron hooks and bars for kettles, its spits for roasts,
and iron pots swinging on chains or placed in the ashes, from which already
fragrant steam was rising. About this great place, which resembled a
volcanic crater tipped to one side, clustered a group of Mouthier's assistants,
busied over various dishes under preparation.
"Come, my friends, come! To work! We must not keep the ladies too
long waiting; and there is also the return to Versailles to-night. I am
famished now. Mouthier, once again read to us the rules for vol-au-vent."
Mouthier took a slight pause for breath and mental concentration, and
then, with joyful obedience, commenced: "Your Majesty will find before
him, in proper quantities, which I have myself unerringly measured, the
cooked chicken, the uncut sweetbreads and mushrooms, truffles whole,
selected cocks'-combs, essence of chicken jellied, wheat flour of the most
delicate variety, fresh butter, cream, an onion, a carrot, salt, pepper, mace,
ground spice, and a fine lemon. Now in this small kettle the flour and butter
must first be warmed together and stirred to a cream; and when it boils we
will add one-half the salt, pepper, and jelly of chicken, together with a
suspicion of carrot and onion, which must boil in a tout ensemble for some
moments—"
"Yes, yes, yes! I will do it at once!" cried Louis, seizing the kettle.
"Very well—very well! Marshal, you shall slice the carrot. You may
imagine that it is an English army. Sauvré—weep over the onion!—ah!
That progresses now!"
While he flung these rapid phrases about him, the King, with a by no
means unskilful hand, had thrown the flour and butter into his kettle, and
hurried to the fire, while an attendant made ready a bed of red embers in a
corner, where the hottest flames might be avoided. Here, over the first part
of his preparation, squatted the grandson of the Sun King, spoon in hand,
stirring vigorously, puffing with heat, and mightily enjoying himself. No
casual observer, looking into the room at this moment, could have
distinguished born cook from Marquis, scullion from Duke, chef from
King. M. de Gêvres, his delicate brow damp with the sweat of toil, sat
gloomily upon a wooden stool, a flat board on his knees, a villanous knife
in his hands, hacking vindictively at the helpless sweetbreads. De Coigny,
with a light touch, sliced carrots and carried on a laughing conversation
with M. de Sauvré, who, with nose tilted in the air, demolished a very large
onion with a very bad grace; while d'Epernon, near by, his usual blasé
manner gone, worked laboriously at the truffles, proving so slow at the
business that Penthièvre, after watching him for a moment or two, obtained
an implement from Mouthier, and went to his assistance. De Richelieu was
more exclusive. He, with board, bowl, knife, and four dark mushrooms, had
crossed the room and seated himself in a distant corner. Who was to note
any change in the appearance of four of his fungi? Who suspicious enough
and discourteous enough to question such a man about the contents of his
earthen bowl when the King, after much measuring, stirring, boiling, and
adding, finally called in excited tones for the mushrooms, truffles, and
cocks'-combs, announcing to the anxious de Gêvres that for five minutes
still he must work at the sweetbreads?
The three Dukes, each with his tribute, approached the fireplace, where
Louis knelt over the savory mixture, which had by now been transferred to
a larger kettle.
The King glanced into the dish, but the flames which danced before his
eyes made it impossible to notice the slight trembling of Richelieu's hands.
Slowly the contents of his bowl streamed into the rich mixture.
"That is all now. Your linen will burn," observed Louis, as the Duke
remained standing before him.
"And now the sweetbreads and the chicken!" cried his Majesty.
As the Duke helped his sovereign again into the green hunting-coat, he
took occasion to whisper, with well-concealed anxiety: "Will your Majesty
grant me a favor for the afternoon?"
"What's that?"
The King shot a swift look into his gentleman's eyes, and it seemed as
though he would speak. Richelieu knew from the glance that the fatal list
had already been seen, though not executed, by the master of Versailles.
"Sit where you choose. It will be as usual—hors d'étiquette," he said, at
length, with indifference. And then, when the others came up, after
recoating themselves, his Majesty led the way back to the salons.
His Majesty inaugurated the meal and an era with a toast to "Our dear
friend, Marie Anne de Châteauroux, and her happy recovery from recent
illness."
Every glass was promptly raised and the toast drunk after a murmur of
concurrence. Madame smiled slightly, in her peculiar way. She was
wondering with what heart certain gentlemen near her would have drunk
could they have foreseen the morrow. Her eyes travelled to Richelieu's
place. No doubt he still deemed her ignorant of the Metz treachery. He
should discover, later, his mistake.
At the conclusion of the toast the room was invaded by six footmen,
bearing, on silver platters, the first dish of the afternoon—the long-awaited
vol-au-vent. Just inside the door, however, they halted in two lines. There
followed a pause, an instant of delay, and then Mouthier himself entered
from the kitchen, bearing in his hands a round, golden plate, on which,
delicately smoking, was the King's pâtê.
"For you alone. I made it myself, Anne. Like it, then, for my sake!"
His words were audible to many around them, and from all sides came
little murmurs of applause and praise for such devotion. The favorite's heart
throbbed. Her misery was at an end. The old days had at last returned. The
waiting had not been in vain. As a footman from the right presented one of
Mouthier's pâtês to Louis, her Grace slid the pastry cover of her own dish
off, and, with a spoon of the same metal as her platter, dipped the hot and
creamy filling into her plate. It was not such food as, in her debilitated
condition, she should have had. This she was well aware of, and determined
that no morsel of any of the other complicated entrêes served hereafter
should pass her lips. This one thing it was her place to eat. As, for the first
time, she raised the fork to her lips, she was conscious of the fire of many
eyes. It was wonderful, indeed, that the gaze of Louis de Richelieu did not
burn her through all the others, so steadily fixed, so dilating with dire
prophecy was it. However, it was the big gray glance of Deborah de Mailly
that she caught, as the fork was lowered to the plate again. Deborah was
watching, with fascinated curiosity, this woman whom she saw for the
second time—this woman for whom Claude had been exiled.
"Mouthier shall have fifty louis from the treasury to-morrow," observed
France. "He invented it."
"I shall eat nothing else this afternoon," she added. And the King was
quite satisfied with his success.
She was true to her word, steadfastly refusing to try the numberless
dishes that followed the first. Richelieu, talking rapidly and brilliantly with
Madame d'Egmont, watched the golden spoon return to the plate again and
again, till that which he had helped the King to make was gone, and his die
and hers were finally cast, though the cups would remain over them still for
a little while.
The meal only endured for the space of an hour. Louis had become
visibly impatient and restless. His dish once made, served, and praised, he
was satisfied with his day, and would have been glad to start at once upon
the return to Versailles. Since this could not be, he made the tedium as brief
as possible. Certainly the affair was anything but lively. Deborah wondered
more and more why Claude had forbidden her coming here. Her first
suspicion that it was his plan to meet his cousin had been gradually
dispelled. Perceiving the King's intentions, he had had nothing at all to do
with her. The matter was puzzling. To be sure, much champagne and vin
d'Ai were being consumed by every one. The conversation flowed easily on
the edge of questionable topics, and the broadness of her neighbor's
compliments annoyed her. But Deborah had seen all this, and more, in
many other places. In fact, it was the common tone of Court society. The
bugaboo of Choisy and its wild carousings was rapidly being driven from
her belief.
At a little past five o'clock the King gave the signal for the breaking up
of the party, and, after a few moments of lingering in the halls over wraps
and hoods, coaches began to drive away from the royal retreat into the dark
direction of Versailles. The first vehicle to depart was that of the Duchesse
de Châteauroux; and in it, beside her, sat the King. Louis was very happy.
Marie Anne de Mailly was more to him, infinitely more, than either of her
sisters had been. Her type of character, her quiet hauteur, her indifference to
many things usually prized, the few demands that she made upon him, her
long periods of silence, the hours when he knew her to be suffering as much
from ennui as he was himself—all of her moods, in fine, were sympathetic
to him; and for this he had made her what she was. Both of them were
intensely cold-blooded. He knew that he lacked in feeling. He divined her
to be like himself. And this fact, which might have repelled many men,
pleased him, as he realized that it put him beyond all danger of rivalry, so
long as she was sure of an undivided sway over him.
"Your old apartments are ready for you, Anne; and I have also had
prepared for you two extra rooms in the little interior courts. In the absence
of Elise, our good Hen will be your companion. Your servants are already
installed; and I have commanded d'Argenson to meet you at the chapel
entrance. We shall not arrive publicly."
Madame tried to speak, but was obliged to make two or three efforts
before the muscles of her throat responded. "D'Argenson—goes to-
morrow?" she said, finally, with a dull intonation.
"She is unaware that her salon to-night is held in your honor. The Court
also is ignorant of that. I have planned it so that your appearance may be
that of a meteor in the heavens—the rising of an unlooked-for star, a new
planet."
"Mordi! She is only a machine for prayers. She does not think."
Silence fell on this remark, for the coach was rolling up the approach to
the palace. Passing the Court of Ministers, where was the grand entrance, it
entered another long, narrow court, a kind of cleft between the main
building and the north wing, halting before a little private door leading into
the hallway between the vestibule supérieure and the chapel itself. This
door was open, and by the light of the lantern hanging from an iron
projection above it might have been seen a man in household livery,
watching. As the King alighted from the coach the servant called softly,
"Monsieur!"
"You speak like a catechism, monsieur. How should I know the news?"
"You were."
"But am not."
"Nothing, monsieur."
"Ah, peste! I am still in every one's boat. I, also, know nothing. What is
one to do?"
Richelieu was just entering from the salon. As the light from the candles
in the antechamber fell upon his face Claude saw the expression, and
wondered a little. It was like that of a harassed animal who has been goaded
too far. Going up to de Mailly, he seized him by the arm, and, adroitly
avoiding the importunities of the other man, pulled him roughly to one side.
"Mordi! You hurt my arm! What in the world is the matter? How should
I have seen her? Do you think—here she is."
The Duchesse de Châteauroux was at the threshold of the antechamber;
stood there, quite still, for a moment, perhaps that those within the room
might see her. She was worth looking at, attired as she was in royal purple
velvet, her neck and waist girt with diamonds, her cheeks much rouged, but
her temples as white as her powdered hair. Her sister, Mme. de Flavacourt,
a foil in white, followed at train's-length.
"Ah, Claude!" observed Marie Anne, in a voice hoarser than usual, "I
have come to life again, you see!" She smiled, extending her hand. Claude
took it, wondering at its burning heat. There was no opportunity for
replying to her; for, the instant that she began to move forward, the few who
were in the small room pressed towards her, eager for a first word.
Those who saw her suddenly gasp thought it, perhaps, excess of
emotion. She made her way through the group in a quick, uncertain, almost
tottering way. She gained the threshold of the salon, seeing once more, with
failing eyes, that room, as she had dreamed of it so many times. All were
before her—Court, Queen, King. Yes. Louis' eyes met hers, and held them
for an instant. She must begin the advance now. But—but—this pain—this
new, hideous, torturing pain—this burning of her throat—this frightful
thirst! She had been uncomfortable for an hour past. This was unendurable.
Walking—standing—were impossible. Her clothes pressed her as though
they were of iron. The Court stood staring at her hesitation.
"Thy Glory"
Deborah lay in bed—thinking. It was two hours now since she and
Claude, with the rest of the frightened Court, had received a sharp
command from the ushers to depart instantly to their various apartments, in
the palace or out of it. That the ushers' voices were the echo of the King's
was beyond doubt; and that fact was reason sufficient for the prompt
obedience given to the bidding.
Thus Deborah, like every other witness of the evening's sensation, had
retired, to lie wide awake, and go, over and over again, through the little
chain of incidents which had passed before her eyes. Her meditations were
more involuntary, less purposive, than most, however. The sight of a human
being in great suffering had roused in her that keen instinct which had lain
nearly dormant now for so many months. After the fall, she had been one of
the first to reach the side of Claude's cousin. She recalled the press of
fluttering women and excited men. The King himself had been obliged to
force his way to her. The Queen, supported on either side by Mesdames de
Boufflers and de Luynes, remained in her chair, making frightened,
unanswered inquiries as to the Duchess' state. And through it all madame
had lain prostrate, writhing and shuddering, in her long velvet robes. It was
finally Mirepoix, with d'Argenson, white-lipped, Maurepas, very stern and
still, and Marshal Coigny, who, at a sign from their sovereign, lifted the
woman from the floor and carried her away from the eager, gaping throng
to her own rooms. The King, having despatched two messengers, one for
Falconet, the other for Quesnay, and having left the whispered command
with the ushers, himself departed after la Châteauroux, taking with him his
usual companion in all things, Richelieu. Hereupon followed the dispersal
of the Court, and here, later, was where the recollections and meditations of
the common courtiers ended, and only a fresh beginning could be made and
gone through, for future gossip and reference. It was different with
Deborah. Her heated brain had reflected the whole kaleidoscopic picture in
a flash, as a single impression, again, and once again. But it was not upon
small incidents, the acts or words of others, that her later imagination
halted. Instead, she was reviewing, moan by moan, shudder by shudder,
wild look and desperate closing of the eyes, the strange illness that had so
suddenly seized the woman Claude had loved. That guttural cry, as if the
throat had contracted suddenly—the fever-flush, visible to a keen gaze
beneath the rouge—the growing dulness of the eyes that contradicted the
theory of natural fever—the incessant, useless retching—the paroxysms that
had wrung a groan of pity from Louis himself—all these, incomprehensible
to those about her, Deborah had noted. And she found two things, two little
points, which seemed to convey, as out of some past, a shred of memory, a
suggestion that she had been witness of another such struggle—somewhere
—at some time. The first fact was that la Châteauroux, as the pain, after a
second's cessation, reattacked her with new fury, suddenly threw up her
arms and clutched, with stiffening fingers, at the air. Secondly, just after
this, a bright sweat broke out upon her forehead, and, as a great drop rolled
down her face, Deborah saw the body quiver as if with cold.
Such things—where had she seen them before? Who was it that had
passed through her life undergoing such experience? No shadow of grief
clung about the memory. No. There had been no death, then. Who had been
with her? Carroll! Sambo! The amanita muscaria pitted against the atropa
belladonna! It had all come back now. She had seen the symptoms of
poisoning by the deadly fungus again, here, in this France. She, even here,
possessed the means of saving life again, perhaps; if—if—if there was only
time!
Simultaneously with that last thought Deborah leaped out of bed, and,
holding up her long white gown, ran swiftly through her quiet boudoir and
into the salon, which was, as usual, faintly lighted with a night-lantern.
Seizing this from the table where it stood, she opened its door, snuffed the
candle within to greater brilliancy, and carried it over to the mantel-piece,
where she set it down. An instant more and the cabinet was open before her.
Inside, in their even rows, stood her bottles of liquids, and near them—near
them—the box of amanita muscaria. Deborah's eyes fell instantly upon this
object. Strangely enough, the thought had not heretofore struck her that she
possessed some of these things. The blood around her heart suddenly grew
cold. Who was it that had seen them not three days ago? Who was it that
had stood beside her here, had taken that box down from its place, and
asked her about its contents? How much had she told him about them? Had
—could he— No! Suspicion was carrying her too far. The thing was
preposterous—impossible. Nevertheless, with a hand that shook, and
fingers numb with cold, she took down the white box. In it there had been
—ten—of the—things. Now—she must look. Could she? Her eyes, that
should have sought the box, were raised for a moment. She saw that the
room was lighter. Behind her another candle burned. She faced about. Then,
seeing some one in the doorway, Deborah's over-wrought nerves gave way,
she shuddered convulsively, dropped the box and its contents to the floor,
put both hands pitifully out towards the figure, and swayed where she
stood. Claude sprang forward, and caught her just in time. For a moment or
two she leaned heavily upon him. Placing his light upon the mantel near the
lantern, and taking her in both arms, he carried her over to a small sofa near
the dark window. There, smoothing the tangled, half-powdered curls back
from her face and neck, and taking both the cold hands in his to chafe
warmth back to them again, he asked, gently:
"What is it, Deborah? What is the matter? What were you doing here?"
The figure in his arms trembled and stiffened. Deborah sat up, and then
rose to her feet. Drawing one hand away from his, she put it over her eyes.
"Claude," she said, in a-low voice, "pick up for me those—those things on
the floor and put them into the box. Hunt well—don't let any of them escape
you. Then—tell me—how many—there—are."
"Look well," she repeated. "As you believe—in God—do not miss a
single one!"
"How many?"
"Six."
Silence followed that word; and Claude, watching his wife, could not
see that a muscle in her body moved. Nevertheless, he dared not break the
stillness. When she spoke at last, it was in a normal tone.
"Claude, you must trust me. I know the sickness of your cousin. I can—
perhaps—save her life. Come with me now, at once."
"No."
Claude de Mailly sent towards his wife a glance that cut her like a knife.
"What do you know?" he asked.
"Everything."
"Tell me."
"No; I cannot do that. You must wait. Mme. de Châteauroux has been
poisoned. I know how—by whom—but not why. By making me wait, you
are killing her. Claude, you love her. I will save her life for you. Do you
hear? I will save the woman you love! Come!"
Claude looked about him feverishly. "I love her!" he muttered. Then
aloud he asked: "Who was it—that tried—to kill her?"
Claude de Mailly strode over to his wife's side and grasped one of her
wrists so tightly that she bit her lips with pain.
"Dress yourself. I will go!" he said, sharply; and then, after seeing her
fly away towards her room, he retreated to his own, to don heavy cloak, hat,
and rapier, for he had not yet undressed for the night. When, after some
moments, he returned to the salon, his wife, in her heavy pélisse and hood,
with muff under her arm, was standing in front of the still open cabinet,
looking at the bottles within. At last, from among them, she took one that
was half filled with clear liquid. Fixing its cork in tightly, she slipped the
flask into her muff, and turned to Claude.
They passed together out of their rooms, through the dark passage, and
down the stairs. It was scarcely yet midnight. The front doors of the house
were still unlocked, and the concièrge was just reflecting on bed.
"How shall we go?" whispered Deborah, as they stepped into the frozen
night.
They had gone but twenty yards up the street when, luckily enough, an
empty vehicle, which had just left a party of roystering nobles at a
gambling-house, came rattling towards them. Claude called out to the
driver, who stopped on hearing his voice.
"A louis d'or if you get us to the palace in ten minutes," cried young de
Mailly.
The coachman opened his eyes. "We shall do it in seven, Monseigneur,"
he said, eagerly.
Claude opened the door and Deborah sprang in before him. There was a
snap of the whip, a plunge of the horses, and for something like the time
designated they fairly flew through the darkness, from the Rue Royale to
the Avenue de Sceaux, and down St. Miche to the Boulevard de la Reine.
When they finally crossed the second Avenue St. Antoine, Claude drew a
deep breath.
In another moment they had drawn up before the grand entrance on the
Court of Ministers.
If Claude had been wise, he would have entered the palace by the
chapel, and so avoided the guards. But this adventure was not of his
planning. Deborah's desires he could only conjecture, for she had not
spoken during the drive. Therefore, tossing the coachman his golden coin,
he helped his wife from the coach, and with her entered the great vestibule,
which was filled with Suisses and extra King's guards. These saluted
respectfully enough as the couple entered the doorway; but, when Claude
proceeded towards the staircase, a musqueteer barred his way.
For answer, Deborah herself turned towards the soldier. "We may wait
here—in the vestibule?" she asked.
He drew her hurriedly into a narrow room off the vestibule, and from
there, three minutes later, through a small, panelled door that led into the
south wing of the palace. Here they were safely beyond the provinces of
guards; and, after passing through a long series of dimly lighted rooms, they
came presently upon a small staircase just off what is now the Cour de la
Surintendance. Up one flight of these, through two deserted rooms and a
short hallway at the end of the King's state apartments, and they halted
before a tapestried door.
Deborah put out her hand and pushed it open. They entered. The room
was brightly lighted, but empty.
"Madame!"
Claude had never heard so strange an intonation from his friend's lips.
He saw his wife start nervously and stand perfectly still, while the King's
gentleman took two or three steps backward towards the door which led
into the bedroom. Silence followed the exclamation. Antoinette, the maid,
astonished at this appearance of the young man whom she had once known
so well, together with a companion, a woman, whom she had never seen,
dared not, by reason of her place, voice curiosity. She whom Richelieu had
addressed simply as madame remained as if petrified, her large grayish eyes
burning into Richelieu's, her face colorless, her expression inscrutable. And
the Duke's eyes shifted—a thing that no one had ever seen before—shifted
from Deborah's feet to her face, from her to Claude, and then stared away at
nothing, while his white hands were clenched, and his graceful body
stiffened. Finally, after uncomfortable minutes, Claude lifted his hand and
pointed.
Richelieu drew back yet more closely against the door. "No one—is
permitted to enter," he said, in a low, dogged voice.
His tone seemed to break the spell under which Deborah had been
standing. "I will enter!" she said, moving swiftly towards him.
"Why?"
For answer she looked straight into his eyes; but he, though every
muscle in his body quivered, steadily held his own. Then she said, rapidly:
"I can save her life if only—there is time."
Deborah drew a sharp breath, and suddenly seized both his large white
wrists with her own hands. For an instant, by reason of the suddenness of
her move, it seemed as though he must yield. With an effort he regained his
equilibrium; and then all the strength which desperation might have put into
her could not have moved him one inch.
"Deborah, what are you doing?" came Claude's clear, sharp voice.
"Claude—help me!—I must pass that door. I must—I will pass that
door! Help me!"
Claude gazed at his wife as though she had gone demented; and
Antoinette, also astounded, stepped forward. "Pardon, madame, but his
Majesty is in that room, together with the doctors, Mme. de Flavacourt, and
Père Ségand. Monsieur le Duc had orders to allow none to pass to-night."
Suddenly she stopped. The door opened from the inside. Richelieu
straightened himself and stepped forward, as out of the bedroom came a
man, tall and stoutish, in square wig and loose black suit which made him
appear old. This was Quesnay. Closing the door behind him, he stood
looking in some astonishment at the new-comers. Presently recognizing
Claude, however, he bowed slightly. Claude returned the salute; and no one
stirred as the doctor crossed the room and flung himself upon a chair with
the manner of one who has made up his mind on an important point. It was
Richelieu, who, after a doubtful glance at Deborah, asked, gently: "She is—
worse?"
Quesnay hesitated. Then, with a shrug, he replied, gruffly: "She's lost. I
say so. She's lost. That fool Falconet—would continue his insane bleedings
and cuppings. He no more knows her sickness than I do. Let her rest in
peace now, say I—till the end."
Richelieu bowed low. Nothing could have expressed his secret terror at
leaving that room, which contained Deborah de Mailly and the King,
together—with none to prevent her speaking if she would. Nevertheless, he
departed on his errand without protest. After the exit Louis seated himself
in the chair that Quesnay had left, his head bowed on his hands, his attitude
precluding any idea of speech on the part of any one present. Thus the four
—Quesnay, Claude, Antoinette Crescot, and Deborah—stood there for ten
long minutes about their master, like him waiting for Richelieu's return.
When the Duke re-entered the apartment, Bachelier was alone with him.
Maurepas and d'Argenson, neither of them dressed, were to follow
presently. On seeing his valet, the King beckoned the little man to his side,
whispered to him inaudibly for several seconds, and then dismissed him on
some errand. Just without, in the antechamber, Bachelier encountered the
two ministers. There was no speech between them, but looks, in a Court, are
capable of astonishing development. When Maurepas and d'Argenson
appeared in the Persian boudoir they were prepared for many things.
Neither made any sign at sight of Claude and Deborah. The King, bowed
and deeply troubled, was before them, in his chair. After the salute there
was a short silence, which Louis, with an effort, broke:
With these final words the King, after glancing solemnly around the
semicircle of mute figures, rose slowly and moved towards the bedroom
door. As he opened it all behind him saw Falconet, the royal physician, turn
and face his Majesty, whispering something. Louis started back for a
second, and covered his face with his hands. Then, turning about, he raised
one hand in a summons that was understood by all those who stood in the
adjoining room. The little party moved forward into the sleeping-chamber
of her who had ruled Versailles. Maurepas and d'Argenson stood aside for
Deborah and her husband to enter; then they followed, with Quesnay close
behind. Antoinette Crescot, waiting to be last, saw Richelieu, whose face
had grown ghastly white, falter to the threshold of the door. There he
stopped, hesitating, struggling with himself. Finally, with an effort that cost
him all that remained of his nerve force, he stepped quickly into the
bedroom and halted just inside, his back to the wall. Antoinette, who had
sent one glittering look, like a dart, through the man in front of her,
followed him into the bedroom, and passed him, as he stopped beside the
wall.
Around the great bed of the third of the de Nesle sisters stood those who
had just entered into that room, the spell of the hour, the flickering candle-
light, and the terrible scene before them weaving a spell of slow fear about
them all. The heavy velvet bed-curtains had long ago been pulled down, to
give madame air in her agony. Up near the pillows, to the left, her face
hidden in her hands, utterly exhausted with the horror of what she had seen,
knelt Mme. de Flavacourt. At the other side was Père Ségand, the confessor,
who had administered the last sacrament two hours before. Beside him
stood Quesnay's superior, M. Falconet. Directly behind was the King, his
eyes, like those of the rest, fixed upon the face of the woman he had loved.
Marie Anne de Mailly-Nesle lay rigid on her bed. Her golden hair,
shaken free from powder in the last four hours, framed, in shining waves,
her face. That face! Dusky, wrinkled, gray; the eyes, half-open, catching the
candle-light, and glittering, glassy black, beneath their frozen lids; the
shapeless lips, two drawn, gray lines, from beneath the upper of which the
white teeth peered forth; was this visage that which once had been the
peerless countenance of the most superb woman of her time?* And one
thing more there was, which seemed a mark put on her by some master will
to stamp the life which she had led unmistakably on her in death. Below the
left corner of her mouth, unloosened in her life-struggles, was a black patch,
cut in the shape of a crescent, named by the Court fop who had originated
it, the "coquette."
* Description taken from a medical report of the coma produced by the amanita
muscaria.
And so, through these December midnight hours, the little circle
remained about that bed, gazing, in tremulous fascination, at what lay
before them. Maurepas knew, now, why they had been admitted here. Who,
ever after, would voluntarily gossip of such a scene as this? Who would
willingly recall it to memory? Prudent-wise with a terrible wisdom was this
King of theirs become! Maurepas, standing here, recalled, even as Claude
was doing, another death which had taken place in this palace of Versailles:
that of little Pauline Félicité de Vintimille, sister of this woman, seventeen
years old, a mother, who had also left her bright world behind because of
the unhallowed infatuation of the unapproachable man who stood here now
—Louis Bourbon, King of France.
And in the room six, like her, waited for some reply. It came; not from
the lips of Quesnay or of Falconet, but as an articulate breath from Deborah
de Mailly, "Not yet—not yet—but soon."
Again the silence and the chilling spell, to be broken, this time, by the
voice of the little golden clock from the mantel across the room. Two
strokes rang out. The winter dawn was yet many hours away. Then, as if she
had been waiting for a sound, the corpse-like figure on the bed suddenly,
without apparent effort, sat up. The sightless eyes opened and were turned
towards him whose scene this was. Louis shuddered under the look. Mme.
de Châteauroux stretched out her gray lips in a long, slow smile. Then, in
the voice of one speaking from the hereafter, she said, audibly, with
uncanny lack of expression, "Thou—knowest—if—I have—wished—thy—
glory."
It was the end. Père Ségand caught the body as it fell, and laid it gently
upon the pillow and sheet. Then, high over her, he raised the crucifix that
hung suspended from his waist. Those in the room sank to their knees.
Mme. de Flavacourt's sobs were the only ones heard. Minutes passed, and
Deborah felt hot drops from her eyes trickle slowly down her clasped hands
and fall to the floor. Then came to her ears the tones of a hard, monotonous
voice, in which all tears had long since been petrified to stone.
It was the voice of a King; and of such was the glory of Versailles.
CHAPTER XII
Claude and his cousin sat together in the Marquis' salon in the Hôtel de
Mailly. Before them, on a table, were various liqueurs and some untasted
cakes. The two young men had returned from a visit to the Ursuline convent
in the old city, where lived and repented Henri's sister, Claude's sister-in-
law, Louise Julie de Mailly, once queen of the little apartments in Versailles.
Four days ago the funeral of la Châteauroux had taken place, with quiet
unostentation, in the Rue du Bac, the body being carried to St. Cyr. Henri
and Claude were now in black, though their period of mourning, according
to Court etiquette, could last but a short time.
The Marquis sipped his cordial tentatively. "Claude," said he, after the
pause which had followed his cousin's foregoing exclamations, "we have
not been much together since you came home."
"No. Of course, it is very different from the old days. One is so much
more bound when one is married."
"I have not found it so," was the dry response.
"And yet," said Henri, contemplating a panel, "yet the Countess has not
been backward in comprehending the forms. Do you think so?"
Henri's eyes fell from the picture and sought his cousin's face. His look
was very kindly, but he made no reply to Claude's question.
"What do you mean? Do not hide from me what you know. We have
been as brothers always. Nom de Dieu, Henri, speak!"
Henri passed a hand over his forehead before he said, slowly and with
weariness: "What one hears of—most women."
"Ah!" The exclamation was like a sharp cry. Henri had a glimpse of
Claude's face grown very white, and then Claude's head sank forward till it
rested on the table, encircled by both arms.
The Marquis sat and looked for a little on the bowed figure. Then he
rose gently, moved to his cousin's side, and laid a hand upon the black
shoulder. "Forgive me, Claude; forgive me. It was brutal. It is probably
untrue. Gossip from the Œil-de-Bœuf! Who credits that? Claude—Claude
—"
"Ah, yes—so do we all. But 'tis not worth what we give for it. I am
growing older, Claude. I see many things differently from what I did in
youth. I should deeply rejoice at peace, honesty, fidelity, truth; but, since
those things are not, and cannot be, I am satisfied with what I have—
money, life, clothes, wines, dinners, a good bed, and a man who really
knows how to prepare perfect snuff. I let women alone. I am wiser than
you."
Claude looked sharply at his cousin. Certainly, if this were his creed, he
was changed. The words and tone, however, served for the moment to still
his own growing disquietude. He leaned dully back in his chair. "I should
like to go down for a week or two to my estate—to Languedoc—if I dared
leave," he observed. "It is an entire year since I was there."
"I went in July. They were doing well with it. Take madame, Claude,
and live there for a month or two. It would be an idea."
"In all the cold? With a wolf-pack between us and every neighbor?
Peste! What are you dreaming of? We should die. No. Some time Henri—
some time, soon, now, when Versailles has become unbearable to me, I
shall sell my ancestral possessions in la belle France, and with the proceeds
I will sail away, over seas, to King George's colonies, perhaps; and there
take up my abode among the good colonials, in the honorable capacity of
tobacco-planter; a king in my own right, my plantation the kingdom, and
the serfs all of ebony hue; with an overseer for intimate, and—not a little
apartment in all my red brick palace."
"I am sorry. I should have liked to keep you here for the night."
"A thousand thanks. It is impossible."
"Before you go, tell me something of the Court. What occurs? How is
the King? What is—said of the death?"
De Mailly rose and began to pace the room. He did not speak at once,
but, after a thoughtful pause, began, soberly: "I have not been at the palace
till yesterday since the night—of her death. Yesterday Deborah and I were
in the Œil-de-Bœuf for fifteen minutes. It was extremely dull. Only such
creatures as old Pont-de-Vesle, la Vauguyon, Charost, two or three petty
Chevaliers, and some of the Queen's women were there. His Majesty has
not appeared, even in the circle of the Queen, of an evening, since. Marie
Anne is never spoken of. She is forbidden as a topic. You know—they say
—she died here, in Paris. All the journals—d'Argenson's, the Boufflers',
Maurepas', de Luynes'—as many as were known—were examined, and the
entries changed. I had that from Coigny. The Nouvelles à la Main for the
week was suppressed. In the next, it is said, there will be an officially
'authentic' account. Berryer or Maurepas, of course, will write it. Richelieu
has gone away for a time—on what business no one knows. It is not for the
King; for it seems that d'Argenson has written him, at royal command, that
his Majesty misses him frightfully. Of course, there are a thousand
conjectures, one as absurd as another. I have heard that he was going to
marry. Meantime the younger women of the Court are preparing fresh and
elaborate costumes. You know what the struggle will be. But—but—"
"I—cannot tell. I see her looked at, whispered after, sought by men,
shunned by women. Her invitations to suppers, to the Opéra, the Français,
are numberless. I, Henri, am not included in them. Mordi! I will not think!
Next month the King must wake from his lethargy for the marriage of the
dauphin."
"She is expected to arrive here by the day of the feast of the Conversion
of St. Paul."
"The 25th, then."
"Well, then, I will part from you in laughter, after all. Good-bye—or, au
revoir, cousin. Come to us when thou canst."
Claude seized cloak and hat, and hurried towards the door. Henri
followed him. They clasped hands in silence. Claude sent a deep look into
his cousin's eyes. The Marquis smiled, bitterly. "Were I you, Claude, my
friend, I should trust the wife. She—has honest eyes."
This same afternoon was spent dully enough by Deborah, who sat for
two hours in her salon, drinking tea and being entertained by a somewhat
incompatible couple, arrived together by chance, and remaining through
perverseness—M. de Bernis and the Duc de Gêvres.
These were exciting days for the fertile-minded abbé. The imminent
danger of the reaccession of la Châteauroux had not troubled him, because
he had known nothing of it till all was over. Just now his curiosity on that
subject was insatiable. But, had it been never so moderate, it must have
starved outright in the end, for nothing from any one could he learn. To
every question, subtle or frank, the inevitable, instantaneous reply was
given: "Madame la Duchesse died in her hôtel in Paris of malignant fever,
on December 4th—or 8th—whichever day he pleased."
"Chut! Then it must have been on the 8th, dear abbé," was the lean and
grinning response. "And let me suggest, monsieur, that you do not discuss
the matter with imprudent ones. There have been whispers of Bastille for
those who waste too much breath—in speech."
And Pont-de-Vesle, delighted at being able to mystify some one as
much as he himself was mystified, leisurely took snuff and turned away.
De Bernis, thus warned, grasped enough of the situation to keep him out
of difficulties. Meantime, all doubt about the future of some new favorite
being now removed, he employed himself during the days of the royal
retirement in a most thoughtful manner. He visited the Comtesse de Mailly
at her own apartment with some frequency. This was in great measure the
result of the conversation of the snuff-boxes on the evening of M.
Vauvenargues' salon. If Richelieu himself considered Mme. Deborah so
eminently qualified for the post, she was certainly a person to be treated
with consideration. The abbé might be, with prophetic instinct, rather
stubborn in his ideas concerning Mme. d'Etioles, to whom he clung loyally;
but he was none the less broad-minded enough to be very thankful for two
new strings to his bow.
The old string, the first which he had used at Court, that which had shot
his first keen arrow into an inner circle of the great Court target, had
become unsafe now, frayed at the ends. He dared use it but little. He felt
that it kept him from trying his real strength. He was tired of treating it with
care. He meditated on how he should take it off the wood and throw it
entirely away. Some day, not far distant, that must be done. Yet, as the cord
had served him long and faithfully, and he had once been very proud of it,
perhaps some touch of sentiment, rather than a wish of appearing freshly
equipped at just the right moment in the contest, prompted him still to
hesitate in being rid of it.
Poor little Victorine! These days of hers had become endlessly forlorn.
Her face grew pale and pinched. She lost the piquant, fretful prettiness that
had been hers a year ago. A year ago she had not yet lived. Now—she had
lived too long. After that first meeting with de Bernis in her woman's dress,
had followed eight months of fierce, golden happiness, as beautiful to her as
they were wrong. Then, with the first, faintest suspicion of weariness on his
part, the first breath of fear, of unhappiness, crept over her. Its growth had
been gradual. It was none the less sure. From the beginning Mme. de
Coigny had been very quiet about her love. Now she was still more quiet in
her growing misery. She spoke of it to no one, least of all to the abbé. But
he was not so blind as to be unaware that the misery was there; and the
knowledge was not pleasant to him. He was acting according to the
strongest quality of his nature—ambition. Nevertheless, there were
occasional rebellions from the side of humanity that caused him sleepless
nights and wearisome days. At such times he would, perhaps, spend a
morning at Victorine's side. But the afternoon was sure to find him,
conscience appeased, either on his way to the château of Sénart or to the
apartment in the Rue d'Anjou.
The dull December days passed, and Christmas week, with its religious
festivities, drew near. The Court roused itself into interest. At last the King
must come forth from his retreat, and then— And then? This was the
indefinite and suggestive question which most of the young women of the
Court were asking themselves, as they devised fresh ways of expending
gold—or credit—upon already priceless toilets. In many families it was
impossible that madame and monsieur should dress with proper
magnificence. Thus, at this period, there sprang to life certain Paris houses,
backed with good capital, where single garments or entire costumes of any
design, color, or elaboration might be rented for a day or evening, at from
five to fifty louis. Each costume was guaranteed unique, and no article was
ever worn twice at any time by any one. It was the most madly extravagant
period of the most extravagant reign in the history of France. Monseigneur
de Chartres appeared one evening in a coat which was valued at thirty
thousand livres. He was not particularly marked in it. But, when he was
guilty of wearing the thing just as it was a second time, he excited the
sneers and the malicious wit of the Œil and of every salon in Paris—prince
of the blood though he was.
Of all the women who hoped and planned to entrap royalty in royal
Versailles, none was supposed to have more justifiable hope of success than
Claude's colonial wife, the last eligible de Mailly. She was watched,
commented on, envied. Wherever she was seen, a train of followers was to
be found. Her style in dress, which still, though none but Claude knew it,
was an adumbration of Maryland fashions, began to be copied. Extremely
curly hair, and great neatness as to bodices and petticoats, with a lessening
of hoops, became gradually more and more common. Deborah was
unaffectedly demure. It had been instilled into her from babyhood as the
proper manner for a gentlewoman. The French notion of simplicity, which
was no more than a new form of coquetry, became something which was
practised everywhere. Despite imitative flattery, however, Deborah was not
sought after by many women. She had more than one bitter enemy at Court,
had she known or cared for it; and many were the spiteful whispers current
about Mme. de Mailly's dull stupidity.
True, Deborah lacked French verve. Nor did she possess French
deceitfulness. But, as Louis de Richelieu had disastrously discovered, she
was neither heavy nor stupid. During the days that followed the death of
Mme. de Châteauroux, while the King lived in retirement, the Countess de
Mailly existed dully, as in a dream. It seemed as though the night that
followed the return from Choisy had blunted her sensibility. She could not
understand her apparent want of feeling; and Claude was no more surprised
at her than was she at herself. They had never afterwards discussed the
incidents of that night, though both had intended to open the subject—some
time. Yet, had Claude questioned her again as to her discovery, and the
manner of it, Deborah could not be sure that she would have told him. They
seemed now to be growing always further apart. Claude, unhappy and
lonely, went his own way. Deborah permitted herself to be tossed,
unresistingly, on the waves of circumstances. Only two things she dreaded.
One was the sight of that cabinet in the wall, wherein still stood the row of
bottles and the white box. The second was the return of Richelieu to
Versailles. How would the great Duke meet her, and how was she to treat
him upon that inevitable return? A difficult question, this last. And yet
Deborah need not have worried upon it, for it was Richelieu himself who
would determine the affair; and, though it seemed impossible that he should
ever reap as he had sown, yet the two weeks that he spent away from
Versailles were two which, in later years, he never permitted himself to
contemplate in memory.
For three days Vitry was amusingly dull. For three more it was
endurable. And for seventy-two hours after that Richelieu and his suffering
Grachet remained in their impossible inn. Under a diet of salt meat, hard
black bread, a rare egg or two, and milk soup, the Duke's gout-twinges left
him, he found himself able to leave off half his usual rouge, and his
conscience became stifled under the fiercer pangs of ennui. Then, into this
wilderness, there came a letter—from Marc Antoine d'Argenson, in reply to
one of Richelieu's.
* Authentic
On the afternoon of the 23d the King walked the length of the great
gallery with M. de Chartres and the Cardinal de Luynes, permitting himself
to be seen by the whole Œil-de-Bœuf. That night, for the first time since
December 8th, he slept in the small bedroom, removing from the state
apartments in which he was always so forlorn. On the following day, to his
great delight, Richelieu reappeared, and was the first of the little entries to
be admitted between breakfast and mass. The Duke seemed perfectly well,
and in better spirits than ever before. Louis brightened under his very
glance, and kept him talking for an hour, to the displeasure of the ministers
in the antechamber. When Richelieu finally emerged from the cabinet he
was seized upon by d'Argenson, and accompanied that gentleman willingly
enough into the empty Salle du Jeu, where, with a desire for mutual
conversation, they sat down opposite each other at one of the square tables.
Richelieu grew a shade more serious. "Let us thank the gods," he said,
dryly.
"He is pale. He looks ill. We must rouse him, amuse him, get rid of this
ennui. In that case he will forget soon enough."
"We intrust the task to you, then. None of us has been successful."
"We shall see. Now, put me in touch with events. What has happened?
Who is turned devotee? Who is the last unfaithful? Also, and principally,
what is the last development in the contest for the post of King's lady?"
"Can you ask? Mme. de Mailly is to replace her cousin. Every one says
it. The King talks of her, her youth, her naïveté, her freshness, continually.
You are to be congratulated. She was your choice, was she not, from the
first?"
"Well, let us depart now for the Œil. I am anxious to behold all the
gossips once again."
The two rose and passed together into the corridor, which opened on the
great gallery. "Ah! By-the-way," observed d'Argenson, as they went, "his
Majesty has begun to cook again."
The small room was crowded. Every one went there for the hour
preceding mass—a service which had lately become highly popular, it being
the only place where his Majesty was visible. Richelieu was given but an
instant's survey of the throng before a group closed in upon him. But in that
instant he had found what he sought—the figure of Deborah, who stood
under the Bull's-Eye, de Gêvres on her right hand, Penthièvre on her left, de
Sauvré in front, and Claude ten feet away, against the wall, talking
abstractedly to d'Argenson's impossible and still unmarried cousin.
It took Richelieu ten minutes to reach the centre of the room, and even
such speed necessitated not a few curt replies to questions, and some very
brief salutations to several ladies who had hoped for much more. Mme. de
Grammont, receiving from him only a bow, glared angrily; and half a dozen
others sniffed with envious significance as de Sauvré made room for his
friend before the unconscious Deborah.
The color fled, to the last drop, behind the rouge on Deborah's face. Her
knees shook, and her hands became suddenly cold and moist. The Duke
was bowing profoundly—giving her time. When he raised his head again
she also had straightened, and her face was well under control.
"I congratulate Versailles upon the return of Monsieur le Duc," she said,
after a strong effort.
To cover the strain of the moment she made herself extend her hand. He
took it on the back of his, felt its icy coldness, and muttered "Brava!" to
himself while he lifted it to his lips. Then, as he moved closer to her, the
other gentlemen, with reluctant politeness, drew to one side.
"No, monsieur."
"To-morrow?"
"No."
"I beg, madame, that you will grant me an audience at any time."
"No, monsieur.
"You need have no fear," was her reply, as she looked him steadily in
the face, her poise regained. "In the world—we are friends."
It was the man who was disconcerted. Her presence, her self-possession,
amazed him; though no more, indeed, than they did her. Her behavior had
been an inspiration. Happily, at this moment, an usher appeared.
After mass, at which their Majesties sat together, the Court, much
relieved in conscience, scattered for dinner. The de Maillys, having no
engagements for the next two hours, returned by coach to their apartment.
The drive was accomplished in silence, neither having anything new to say;
both, for different reasons, avoiding any remark upon the return of
Richelieu, which was the only thing offering field for discussion. On
reaching home they retired to their separate rooms to make some slight
preparation for the tête-à-tête dinner. As usual, Deborah was ready first, and
seated herself in the salon to await her husband. Almost immediately upon
her entrance her first lackey appeared and advanced hesitatingly into the
room, carrying something in his hand. At a little distance from madame he
coughed discreetly.
The servant grinned, and held out to her a box—a carved sandal-wood
box—on top of which was fastened a half-blown rose.
"The King!" echoed a hoarse voice beside her. "The King!" Then,
suddenly, the box was furiously struck out of her hands. The lid fell open.
Deborah and Claude, both pale, both trembling, the one with dread, the
other with uncontrollable passion, stood facing each other, the box between
them, and a shower of chocolate candies rolling upon the polished floor.
CHAPTER XIII
For the next seven weeks life in the de Mailly ménage was anything but
agreeable. Monsieur and madame addressed each other, when necessary, in
rigidly polite terms. Ordinarily there was silence between them. Claude's
jealousy was very real, and, if one judged by Court gossip and the manner of
the King, instead of Deborah's acts, it was by no means unfounded. Claude
always knew where his wife was and to what solemn functions and small
parties she went. If questioned absolutely, he would have admitted that he
believed her true—as yet. But he lived upon the extreme edge of a volcanic
crater, and the existence was not tranquil. He grew morose, irritable, and
habitually silent. Rarely was he to be found in his usual haunts, in his usual
company; but remained at home, or in Paris with Henri, when he was not,
with all too palpable anxiety, following his wife. His new manner was
speedily remarked by the Court.
"Poor fellow! It is a pity he has such good taste in women. He courts his
wife like a lover."
"Ah!"
But the King was, at any rate, not ready yet. When he came out of his
retirement he found many things demanding immediate attention; and the
chief of these was something which promised great and brilliant gayety for
the Court. It was the approaching marriage of the Dauphin, whose betrothal
to the Infanta Maria Theresa Antoinette Raphaelle, daughter of Philip V. of
Spain, had been arranged to obliterate the memory of the insult to the
younger sister of the Princess, who, designed for the wife of Louis XV.
himself, and brought up in France, had been returned with thanks to Spain, at
the instigation of Mme. de Prie, who had fancied herself, for a little while, a
successful creator of queens. Preparations for the celebration of the
Dauphin's wedding were therefore begun on the most elaborate scale which
the King and Richelieu together could devise; and with the beginning of the
new year came a series of entertainments given at Versailles, or by great
families in Paris hôtels, which allowed the Court no time for anything but
thoughts of the splendor of existence and the details of new costumes.
It was not till February, however, that the Dauphiness Infanta arrived in
France; and on the 20th day of that month the King rode to Etampes to meet
her. She and her sixteen-year-old Dauphin were married in the Chapel of
Versailles on February 23d, in the presence of their Majesties and as many
persons of blue blood as the place would hold.
"Oh—he does not know a pretty woman when he sees one, thanks to the
good Père Griffet and his mamma."
"Certainly. The world will be there. They say that it will be a finer ball
than that in the Galerie des Glaces on Saturday."
The two smiled and crossed themselves. The ceremony was over.
Mme. de Boufflers was right in her conjecture that Mme. d'Etioles would
be at the ball at the Hôtel de Ville. Much to the pretty woman's discomfiture,
she and her stout husband had not been bidden to any of the festivities in
Versailles, thus proving that one needed sometimes something more than
Mme. de Conti to secure a foothold among the noblesse. Some half-dozen
ancestors had served better. Nevertheless, at this, her first opportunity, Mme.
d'Etioles had determined to accomplish wonders. It was to be a bal masqué,
and the choice of costume, therefore, was perfectly unrestrained. Madame
designed her dress without consulting monsieur. She would go as the
huntress Diana, with Grecian drapery of China silk, falling in folds scant
enough to show all the pretty, rounded lines of her figure. Over her left
shoulder hung a golden quiver, and she would carry the classic bow in her
hand. It needed but little imagination to picture all the possibilities for
coquetry which these accessories to her toilet would open to her. Lancret
himself consented to design her Greek coiffeur, and to designate the exact
spot from which her crescent must shine. And in the end Mme. d'Etioles was
able to regard herself with high satisfaction, when she stood before her
mirror fully dressed, at nine o'clock on the momentous evening of the last of
February.
An hour later the Hôtel de Ville presented a gorgeous spectacle. Its great
hall, where the dancing was to take place, was hung from floor to ceiling
with priceless tapestries. Above these, as a frieze, were festooned the old
battle-flags of France, tattered banners of many a sturdy knight and many a
long-past warrior-king. On the west wall, in the place of honor, just above
the royal platform, hung the flag and pennants of Louis XV.'s own guard,
used in the last campaign. The dais below these formed a centre of interest to
the throngs of glittering and perfumed men and women who were by now
pouring, in a steady stream, into the room. The platform was raised
considerably above the floor, and was mounted by a little flight of six steps
that extended across the front of the raised space. This was entirely covered
with a carpet of white silk and gold, draped and fastened on the sides with
golden rosettes, while over the whole hung a voluminous canopy of purple
velvet, in the fashion of Louis XIV.'s time. Below, in the centre of the
platform, stood the throne, a great gilt chair, with cushion and footstool of
purple, around which were grouped the stars of the evening, twelve of the
prettiest women of the bourgeoisie. All of these ladies were in the classic
garb which had been wont so to delight the heart of the great Louis; and
among them, conspicuous alike for beauty of figure and of dress, was Jeanne
Poisson d'Etioles, a little chagrined at the thought that her place proclaimed
her class, but pleased with the assurance that the King must perceive her as
soon as he entered the room. Like her companions, and, indeed, every one
else in the room, she wore a small mask—of stiff, white silk. And with
masks, as with everything else, much may be done.
"Beautiful huntress," cried the King, advancing nearer to her, "the arrows
you discharge are fatal!"
Mme. d'Etioles returned the little missile to its place. Louis XV. was
close beside her. With a quick, catlike movement, she raised one hand to her
face. The white mask came off.
"Ah!" murmured his Majesty.
The mask was slipped into place again. Diana, free at last, slipped into
the throng, leaving her handkerchief (a serious bit of anachronism,
considering her character) at the feet of the powdery miller.
Louis looked rather quizzically down at the lacy thing. He had hunted
and been hunted many times before, but never just in this way. However, he
was not a king to-night. Stooping down, he picked the costly offering from
the floor and stood for a moment examining it. It bore no mark, but he
needed none to assure him of the identity of its owner. Neither, perhaps, was
he unaware of the light in which she regarded him. Ah, well! Generally a
king is a king. Sometimes he is a miller. Smiling to himself, Louis tied a
loose knot in the handkerchief and then hurried into the crowd in pursuit of
the Diana, who had left Olympus for good. He was not obliged to go very
far. She stood upon the outer edge of the open floor, watching the dancers.
Between him and her was an open space of twenty feet. He raised his hand.
"Take care, your Majesty!" cried a daring voice from one of the sets. It
was from the lips of a tall Capuchin monk.
The King flushed. Every eye in the room was upon him now, he felt. The
heart of madame beat furiously. Yet—no—the royal arm was not lowered.
Louis, with a bow, tossed the handkerchief to her feet. A dozen hands sought
to give it to her. Again from the irrepressible dancer came a cry which was
echoed in laughter from every part of the throng.
Deborah, meantime, found the evening flying all too rapidly. Masked
balls were by no means such hackneyed affairs to her as they appeared to be
to most of the Court. That given at Versailles three nights before was the first
in which she had participated; and the little mysteries occasioned by
unguessed partners during the promenades amused her greatly. To-night she
was able to pierce the disguises more easily; and yet, all unknowing, she had
danced with Richelieu, who was well pleased with this opportunity of being
with her. She, like all the others, recognized the King by his voice.
Nevertheless, at the throwing of the handkerchief, she laughed, and cried the
catch-word with the others, evincing so little concern at the success of her
rival that de Gêvres' admiration for a self-control that was not hers rose high.
Deborah danced the fourth minuet with a Turk, who persisted in carrying
on conversation by signs. When, however, in the midst of the dance, her
companion was obliged to laugh at one of her observations, she understood
his reason. It was the King again. Evidently Claude had pierced this new
disguise when she did. He, in a plain white domino, had followed her all
evening, danced in the sets with her, and rendered her as uncomfortable as
she was to be made by his surveillance. The King himself noticed, without
recognizing, this watcher. After the fourth dance, therefore, he made
inquiries of de Gêvres, who happened to be at hand:
"Peste! That man is a nuisance. There will come a time, de Gêvres, when
Count Claude will be quite de trop."
"Again," responded his liege, turning on his heel and walking away.
"Alas! poor Claude!" And de Gêvres stood still for an instant, musing,
with a philosophic smile, on the history, past and present, of this house of de
Mailly, whose women were all too fair—and too femininely weak.
Deborah was now accosted by a black domino with a silver mask, who
had just left the side of Mme. d'Etioles. She granted his request for a dance,
and then joined him in the promenade. He proved to be very complaisant and
very gallant. Deborah quickly recognized his style of compliment, and the
pretty couplets, with their epigrammatic turns, which flowed as easily from
his lips as wine would have run into them. It was none other than the man of
many strings—the Abbé de Bernis. He was in high spirits with his evening,
with Mme. d'Etioles' odd experience, and the quick popularity which it had
engendered among a certain set pleased him nearly as much as it did Diana
herself.
Victorine was in a dull maze of thought. She was living far away, to-
night, in a land where it seemed as though she could look back upon herself
and her past life. She suffered neither mentally nor physically; and she did
not realize how she was pressing towards a great mental climax, presaged by
this calm. Nevertheless, in the midst of the commonplace throng, she
thought much. While she watched, now from one point, now another, the
movements of the black domino, and while she talked with intelligence,
even with wit, to a series of partners, she was reviewing, with calm,
methodical precision, the history of the single human connection which had
brought happiness into her child's life. From its inception to the present
moment every scene in the drama which they two, de Bernis and herself, had
acted, passed now before her mental eyes. She recalled, with a wondering
thrill, the great, perfect happiness of the first months; and she perceived,
with slow, sure precision, the later undeniable lessening of her hold upon his
affections. The reason for this? That question she had never asked before.
Now the answer came at once, quite plainly. It was not jealousy that made
reply. No, no. She saw truly. It was only—ambition. She could not help him
higher. She had given all that was hers to give, and more, perhaps. Had he
quite ceased to profit by it? Was it quite finished? Victorine caught her
breath and looked around her. De Bernis, drawn by accident, was just beside
her, still talking to Deborah, towards whom the King was again advancing.
At the same moment Victorine beheld a gentleman of Henry IV.'s time
approaching her. His walk resembled that of the Marquis de Mailly-Nesle.
Divining his purpose, she frowned with displeasure to think that he might
keep her from her newly formed project.
"Madame," said Henri, bowing, "may I ask your hand for the next
dance?"
"Monsieur," she returned, with a slight courtesy, "I remember that the
King of Navarre was wont to enter into mad dances with Night. If you have
not M. de Sully to accompany us, I am afraid to venture."
De Bernis, from whom the King had taken Deborah, caught this remark,
and, without turning to the speaker, stood still, listening.
"Madame, in my old life Night was never cruel; though I admit that she
was never half so fair."
"Ah, you are wrong! The stars are very pale, to-night."
De Bernis started.
"Then, monsieur, you should claim it at once to avoid further mistake!"
observed the Marquis, rather irritably. And, bowing to the lady, he turned
upon his heel and walked away.
Mme. de Coigny and the abbé faced each other. Victorine did not speak.
De Bernis, after a moment, did so from necessity. "Madame has done me the
honor to make me a convenience. Does she wish, in reality, to dance?"
"It has been your custom, François, to dance with me during the evening.
Can you not recall the time when you begrudged me a single minuet, a
single promenade, with another?"
"One may remember many useless things, madame." If the Fates gave
opportunity so soon, de Bernis was not the man to refuse to take it. If he
broke with her to-night, the morrow would be free.
They crossed the room to the now deserted dais, and here, behind the
purple folds of the canopy's drapery, they halted and stepped apart. In this
recess they were well screened from the throng, which they could see
passing, repassing, mingling, circling in the space before them. And here,
safe from curious eyes, Victorine removed the mask from her pallid face,
and turned to the man. De Bernis also pulled off his silver disguise,
breathing with relief as the air, hot though it was, touched his cheeks.
Her breath was caught by a sob, and her throat contracted spasmodically
before she could make reply. "Spiritually, it is the same thing. I have loved—
only you."
"What have I done to turn you away? I have never wept before you,
never complained to you, never showed jealousy of any one connected with
you. What have I done?"
"Nothing, Victorine."
There was a moment's silence. The woman waited. The man, with a
physical effort, gathered himself together. At length, stepping a little back
from her, and looking, not into her eyes, for that he could not do, but at her
low, white forehead that was crowned with the dusky hair and the bright
crescent, he spoke: "Victorine—Victorine—you are mistaken in this matter.
Well as you believe that you know me, after the long months that you have
had in which to study me, you can no more judge me or my motives than
you can read the mind of monsieur your husband. You say that you have
never shown jealousy to me. You were right not to do that, for there has
never been need of it. You are probably the only woman for whom I shall
ever care enough to regret having injured. You, I do regret. Believe it. It is
true. But, madame, our connection is over. It has been over for me, as you
surmise, for some weeks. I love no other woman. But there is something
which I do value above all things, yes, above you. I am very frank, because
it is necessary. My ambition, my desire for place, is what I live for. There is
no room for you in that life of mine. You force me to say it. After to-night,
Mme. de Coigny, after to-night, do you understand that I wish to meet you
only as an acquaintance, as a woman of the world, of Paris, Versailles, the
salons? I would have you quite understand this, now, since we are speaking
together, alone."
Victorine heard him without interruption, her eyes fixed upon his finely
featured face. When he ceased to speak, those eyes closed for an instant. She
passed her hand across her forehead. Then she said, in a tired voice: "After
to-night, François. Yes. I understand."
He watched her refasten her mask. Then she turned to him with a little
inclination of the head. "Au revoir."
"Thank you, no. I shall find an escort." And she walked away.
"To the Rue Bailleuls, the house at the corner of the Rue Jean Tissin."
CHAPTER XIV
The Abbé de Bernis did not keep a regular body-servant, for the
excellent reason that his somewhat slender means did not admit of one. This
fact was wont to pique his vanity not a little, and numberless had been his
unheard sighs of envy when Monseigneur This and Monsieur That raised
their voices in lofty protestation that a perfect valet was worth more than a
perfect woman, but that no valet in the kingdom, save Bachelier himself,
deserved butter for his bread. There are, however, certain times when
solitude is a boon to every one. Such a time to de Bernis were the last hours
of this last night of winter, after his return from the brilliant evening at the
Hôtel de Ville. He was in a mood that did not admit of company. His swift
walk homeward had, in some way, stirred his blood more than all the
dancing had done; and when he reached his rooms he found himself in no
mood for sleep. Leisurely, then, by the flickering light of the two candles on
his table, he removed the black satin suit which he had worn beneath his
domino, took the wig from his aching head, put on a somewhat worn
dressing-gown, and seated himself before the mirror of his dressing-table.
A very different man was this François de Bernis from what he appeared
to be in company. The affectation, the disguise, were dropped. Here, at last,
was the actual man, whom only one other besides himself had ever seen: the
peculiar head, with its clipped crop of bristling black hair encircling the
tonsure; the dark, Southern face, with its straight brows, keen eyes, long
nose, and firm, straight, stubborn mouth, with an anomalous curve of
weakness somewhere lurking in it. And his hands, unpowdered and
unsoftened now by the falling ruffles of lace, showed for what they were—
bony, dark, long-fingered, and cruelly strong. Not so handsome, not so
elegant a man, after all, was M. François en négligé.
For some time he sat looking at himself, thinking—less of himself, for
once, than of the woman who had so easily accepted her dismissal. After all,
the want of a scene had hurt his vanity. Could she be as weary of him as he
was of her? Was there some other—to her? The night outside grew blacker.
It lacked more than an hour to dawn. The candle-flames flickered in the
darkness. The hour was dreary enough. It were as well to get to bed. De
Bernis rose slowly, intending to finish his laggardly preparations for the
night. He had not yet taken a step when there came a light, quivering knock
on the door of the outer room, his salon. He stood perfectly still, listening.
The knock was not repeated, however, and he decided that it had been a
mistake. Ah! What was this? The handle of his bedroom door was being
turned; the door was pushed slowly open. There, in the space, stood a slight
figure, cloaked, hooded, and masked in black. Two white hands were raised
to the stranger's face. The mask dropped to the floor.
"Why not?" The lips parted slightly, and he caught a gleam of teeth.
"You could not have imagined that that—at the ball—was the last?"
"Not that tone, please. You have no right to use it—to me."
She made a sound in her throat which he took for a laugh. Afterwards,
shivering slightly, she moved nearer to him, and at sight of her face he
started back into an attitude of defence. He would have repeated his
question, when suddenly she answered it.
"You gave me to-night. 'After to-night,' you said. Well, it is not morning
yet. We shall finish to-night."
"What do you mean?" He stared at her figure, at her working hands, as
though he expected to discover weapons about her.
Then her voice and her face both changed from reckless hardness to a
kind of pitiful, childlike pleading: "Why, François, are you so unkind? You
gave me this time. You must not be cruel yet—till I am ready."
She was silent for some time, till he thought she had not heard him.
When he was about to repeat his words, however, she said, with the faintest
hesitation: "I want—to pray—here, if you will listen. I can never pray alone,
because I need you—I need you when I am before God." She saw him
shudder, and went on, imploringly: "Oh, François, let me pray here, once, for
the last time! Is it so much to ask? Let me set myself a little more right—
before you."
"Will you not be setting yourself more wrong? Can you pray?" he asked,
sternly, after a troubled pause.
Her answer was to fall upon her knees before a chair near which she had
been standing. The seat of this she grasped painfully with both her thin,
delicate hands. When she began to speak her voice was so low that the man
could barely hear it. Gradually, however, it became more distinct:
"God, thou art called merciful. Hast thou mercy for me, who have
wronged none but myself? Ah, why was I decreed to be born and grow to
womanhood? It has been useless. You will see. I—I—will not—I can—" She
was beginning to gasp, sobbingly. The abbé, who had heard her in silence,
came forward.
"I know. I know. I cannot pray. God—will not—let me!" Her words
came convulsively, and she shivered with cold. He picked her up in his arms
and carried her over to the largest chair in the room. Here she remained,
helpless and passive; and he left her, to return presently with a glass of
cordial. In obedience to a look from him she took it, without protest. When
he had set aside the empty glass, he turned to her and spoke:
Looking up at him, she smiled—as she had sometimes used to do. "Not
yet," she said, with pretty decision.
"Not yet! Mon Dieu! what can you do? Why do you stay?"
"Because in my last hours I wish to be with you," she said, softly and
lightly, with old-time playful tenderness.
She sprang lightly to her feet, went to him, and placed her hands on his
shoulders. He felt the force in her merely by her touch. It seemed as though
fire from her fingers were trickling down through his flesh to his heart.
"Yes, you are right; I have something to ask, something to tell. You have
heard it before, but this last time you must learn it well, and must remember
it. François—I love you. In heaven or in hell, wherever I go, I shall love you.
I will not forget—and you shall not. This is the last night here. But—out,
somewhere—in the infinite—I wait for you. Now, sit here."
She pushed him, gently, inflexibly, over to the chair whence she had
risen. Then she passed to the table, where stood the two candles that lighted
the room. Her great gray eyes fastened themselves burningly, steadily, upon
those of de Bernis. Under the gaze he sat still, fascinated. "Victorine—you
are mad," he murmured once, vaguely.
Hearing the words, she smiled at him, but never moved her eyes. At
length, when he had become passively expectant, she lifted her hand.
"Remain there—do not move—" she whispered. Then her fingers moved
over the candle-flames. They flared and went out. There was a sound of
rustling garments, a faintly murmured word from the man, a long breath, and
then silence, heavy, absolute, in the thick darkness.
It lasted long. All about that room, for miles in the blackness, the great
city lay sleeping through the hour before dawn. The lights of the Hôtel de
Ville were out. King and valet alike rested. Mme. d'Etioles and Marie
Leczinska had forgotten triumph and trouble. Richelieu, devil and monk, lay
abed like an honest man. And Deborah de Mailly, under her canopy,
dreamed, in the Versailles apartment, of the fresh quiet of her room at Trevor
Manor, the golden dawn over the Chesapeake, and the lapping of the river
against the banks that were lined with drooping willows and peach-trees.
The first sound that broke the stillness in the room of the Rue Bailleuls
was the same as that on which silence had fallen—the long-drawn sigh of a
woman. Then de Bernis whispered, imperatively: "Madame—you must go.
Morning dawns."
A second after came the gentle reply: "Yes, François. Have no fear. I go."
As the gray dawn came up at last over the eastern horizon, a coach
rattled through the city streets upon its way to the Sèvres barrier. Inside,
upon the cushions, her reclining figure covered with a heavy velvet robe, her
drawn face showing paler than the day in its frame of disordered hair,
covered with the black hood, lay Mme. de Coigny. Her eyes wandered
aimlessly from one window of the coach to the other. Without thought,
without feeling of any kind, she beheld the tall, narrow houses with their
wooden galleries and crazy, outer staircases; the shuttered shops, the narrow,
lifeless streets. As they neared the barrier they passed the first market carts,
laden with butter, milk, eggs, cheese, and meat. There were no green things
at this time of year. And yet—it was the first day of March, the first day of
spring. The long winter was at an end. Summer would presently be back.
The panelled coach passed out of the city without difficulty, and entered,
upon the country road. The pale yellow light along the end of the distant
horizon grew brighter. Victorine regarded it dully. The coach jolted and
jarred over the frozen ruts in the road. Bare-branched trees swayed in the
biting morning wind. The inhabitants of the rude houses and taverns along
the way still slept. The sweet, frosty air of very early morning came
gratefully to the lips of the woman; but, as she breathed it in, she shivered,
and drew her coverings a little closer. Presently they drew near to Versailles,
and smoke began to rise lazily from the chimneys of the houses and to drift
slowly upward. A few moments more, and the cumbrous vehicle stopped
before a house of stone. It was Victorine de Coigny's "home." A footman
leaped from the back of the coach to the ground and opened the door for her.
With a strong effort she alighted, leaning heavily on the servant's arm.
At her knock the concierge, just dressed for the day, bowed her into the
house, looking sharply the while at her pinched, expressionless face. She did
not see him. Before her were the stairs. By the strength of her will she
ascended them, and was presently admitted to the apartment on the first
floor. To the slight surprise of the waiting valet, she forbade him to call her
maid; and then, without further commands, passed into her own room. Here
she flung off her hood and pelisse. Then, with quiet, stealthy steps, she
crossed the passage into her husband's room.
Marshal Coigny, weary with the long night at Paris, whence he had
returned an hour or two since, conscience-free, careless, from long training,
of his wife's whereabouts, lay in a sound sleep, dreaming of her, perhaps. He
had not heard her return to the house; and he was perfectly unaware of her
quiet entrance into his room.
She passed him without a look, and went straight to the cabinet where he
kept papers, orders, medals, trophies of the last campaign, his sword, and his
duelling pistols. One of these last, silver-mounted weapons, loaded for
possible use, Victorine took, weighing it in her hand a second before she
began her retreat. She could not leave the room as she had entered it, without
a glance at him whose name she had borne for three years. For an instant she
paused beside his bed, looking a little wistfully at the face that was half
turned from her.
"Jules," she said, so softly that de Coigny, had he been awake, could not
have heard her, "Jules, I have been very wicked, very cruel to you. May God
put it into your heart that I tell you so—now. Perhaps, somewhere, some
time, you will find a good woman who will love you as I did—him. When
that time comes, Jules, try to think a little kindly of me—sometimes."
Then, with a faint, tired sigh, she turned from him and went back into her
own room.
Three or four minutes later the Marquis de Coigny was roused from his
sleep by the sharp crack of a pistol-shot. Opening his eyes dreamily for an
instant, he rolled over again, murmuring, "Magnificent—your Majesty!"
Then there came the sounds of a man's sharp cry and a hurrying of feet in
the passage, and the Maréchal started up as a lackey rushed into his room.
"Monsieur—monsieur—madame—madame la Maréchale—"
"It was—madame's—shot!"
CHAPTER XV
Deborah
For three days it was the supreme topic in the Œil-de-Bœuf, and the
Maréchal gave another day's interest by himself taking her unconsecrated
body back to the château where she had spent sixteen of her nineteen little
years, for burial. No one of the Court had caught so much as a glimpse of de
Coigny before his departure; but certain valets, news scavengers of
Versailles, spent much time with the Marshal's servants, and learned from
them that their master's hair was gray beneath his wig, that he was starving
himself, and that none save old Gérome could make him speak.
"I always said that he had the bad taste to be in love with her," observed
de Gêvres, with a superior shrug.
"Will the abbé be called out, or did the affair lie in another direction?"
This, in substance, together with the complete story of her death, and
endless conjectures as to its immediate cause, was all that was anywhere
repeated, in Bull's-Eye or salon. Naturally enough, then, people began to
grow weary of the subject, and at length little Victorine, with her hopeless
tragedy, was laid aside, to become one of that company of ghosts who, as
memories, haunted the corridors of the great palace, to be recalled
occasionally from oblivion upon a dull and rainy day.
And now another topic, one by no means new, but freshened in interest,
was introduced, by hints, to the general room from the King's cabinet, for the
entertainment of the scandal-mongers. This was the de Maillys once more.
For many weeks, now, his Majesty had purposely suspended the long-
awaited choice, and had paid his court with equal gallantry to half a dozen
women. After the incident of the "throwing the handkerchief," a topic long
since threadbare in the salons, Mme. d'Etioles, bourgeoise though she was,
seemed to stand a fair chance for the post. Thereafter, periodically, she had
been rumored as being separated from her husband, of living now at Paris,
now at Sénart, again at Versailles—perhaps in the palace itself. Nothing
definite was known in the Œil or the Queen's circle. D'Argenson looked
wise, and Bachelier blinked occasionally, but the matter got no further, and
nothing was proclaimed. All this, however, was later, through the last of
March and the beginning of April. Some time since, during the first week in
March, indeed, the Cabinet du Conseil learned something of royal intentions
in another quarter. On a certain Friday some orders were given, a paper
made out at Majesty's command by de Berryer, and from Maurepas certain
others demanded, the subject of which made even that imperturbable person
start with surprise. Such papers were expected to be in readiness by Saturday
afternoon.
"Oh, you are wrong. The matter is nearly arranged. We shall see, my dear
Count—we shall see—"
"When?"
"Yes, probably. Monseigneur the Dauphin will be asked to take his place
after the fourth minuet. And you, Marc—do you know what part in the affair
is to fall to you?"
"Alas, yes—I can conjecture it. I had not feared that it would come so
soon. The husband—Claude—will be my task."
"I am, indeed, sorry for it. Once before, you remember, he fell to me.
Mon Dieu! He took it manfully enough then; but this is worse. Unhappily, he
is fond of his wife."
"Never, Monsieur of the Interior. In heaven there may be such. But then,
in heaven, I am told, there are no kings."
"Yes, and there will soon be thrushes in the bosquet of the Queen!"
The other smiled and shifted his position. "It is more apropos than you
think. Observe—there is de Coigny returned."
"We shall not be seconds after all, then. Let us go and speak with Jules."
Thus the evening wore on in customary fashion, and, as the hour for
supper approached, a little quiver of expectation fell upon the hearts of
certain people in the great room, who, so far as an outsider could have
determined, were in no way connected with each other. D'Argenson had
been missing during the early part of the evening, but made his appearance
at eleven o'clock. De Berryer and Maurepas, during the ensuing quarter of an
hour, each approached and casually addressed him. De Gêvres did not go
near him, but received a nod from across the room that seemed to be
satisfactory to both. The King himself, during a promenade, paused for an
instant on his way to whisper something that his partner herself could not
hear, into the ear of Marc Antoine. The answer was simply, "Yes, Sire," but
the King moved on with new gayety after hearing it.
The Marquis gave a slight, cynical smile. "On the contrary, dear Claude,
I have now lost my last excuse for worry, care, or melancholy. What more
could the gods devise for me?"
"Ah! I know!" returned the other, very gently, as he laid one hand upon
Henri's shoulder. "You must think—only—that she is happier now."
Henri quivered suddenly and shook the hand away. "Stop, Claude. I—I
—no, not even from you," he ejaculated, harshly.
"Forgive me."
"Good-evening, gentlemen."
Henri faced quickly about as Claude bowed to the man who had
approached them. It was d'Argenson.
"You look very serious, Monsieur le Comte. What is the matter? Do the
powers of Europe threaten the last treaty, or is one of the King's lapdogs
dead?" inquired Claude, with his most catching smile, and anxious to give
Henri a moment to change his thought.
He stopped. Maurepas had told him that this man would behave well. It
was not so. Claude had turned deathly white. Both hands had flown to his
head, and he reeled where he stood. Henri sprang forward and caught him
about the body.
"No. I will have nothing." For a moment the three stood motionless and
silent. Then Claude opened his eyes and looked upon the King's minister.
"The letter—invites me—to travel?"
D'Argenson bowed.
Claude slowly drew a handkerchief from his pocket and wiped his lips
with it. "May God damn to hell the King of France! All the armies in his
kingdom shall not drive me from it till I've got back my wife!"
After he had spoken these words d'Argenson was not sure that Claude
had heard them. The young man stood for a minute or two staring at him
stupidly, with a look of heavy indifference. Then his body began to
straighten, he breathed sharply two or three times, and d'Argenson's muscles
stiffened as he prepared to avoid an attack. Claude's hand opened and shut
convulsively, but he made no move forward. After a long time, when the
tension had grown almost past bearing to his cousin and the minister, de
Mailly, with a dignity that Louis himself could not have equalled, said,
measuredly: "Well, messieurs, I go home to await my wife. If her choice is
free, if she is not forced, she will return to me. This is inevitable. Henri, let
us go."
"Monsieur, if Mme. de Mailly does remain, all the bolts, all the bars and
walls of the Bastille will not be enough to save Louis of France from death
at my hands. Tell him so."
In the mean time Deborah had not reached the supper-room. De Gêvres
was her escort from the Hall of Mirrors, supposedly to the Salle du Grand
Couvert; but, when they stood upon the threshold of the first corridor, he
bent over her, saying, in a low voice: "Madame, the public room will be
crowded and disagreeable. In the Salle des Pendules there is to be a little
supper, to which I am instructed to invite you. Will you do me the honor to
accompany me?"
"It must be a small party, or are we the first?" asked Deborah, as they
entered the room and paused before a closed door.
De Gêvres did not answer. Instead, he knocked twice upon the panel.
The Duke pulled open the door, and Deborah passed before him. The
door closed again, softly, behind her. She was alone with the King.
Louis, who stood at the end of the room, his back to the fire, smiled at
her. "Oh, there are no terms of etiquette to-night. We are only very good
friends, you and I, my dear little Countess. Do you see? Now let us sit down
together at this little table, where Mouthier has prepared a most delicate
repast; and as we eat and quaff together some of the golden wine of
Champagne, we will talk. Will you not thus honor me, madame?"
Deborah, who had grown very white during the King's speech, looked
anxiously about her.
"We are utterly alone. None can hear us," observed his Majesty again,
with the idea of being reassuring. He did his companion unguessed injustice.
She had been thrown into a sudden panic of fear.
"Pardon, your Majesty, I—I do not desire to eat. I am not hungry. When
M. de Gêvres conducted me here, I did not understand what he meant. If you
will grant me permission, I will go."
This speech pleased the King incredibly. Here at last was a woman who
would not fall at his feet, whom it were worth his while to win. Her fear was
certainly genuine. She was actually moving towards the door. He did not stir
from his place, wishing not to alarm her further.
"My dear Mme. de Mailly, how cruel to leave me quite alone! As your
sovereign, I might command. As a man, however, I only entreat. Try, for me,
one of these rissoles, which I myself assisted in making. Ah! That is better."
Deborah, something reassured by the quiet tone and the apparent liberty
which was hers, looked doubtfully over to the little table whose glass and
gold shone brightly under the great chandelier. The King was holding a chair
for her. Flight now, were there really nothing intended by this gallantry,
might be a little awkward to explain next day. After a moment's thought,
Deborah went slowly over and sat down at the table. Louis, with a sigh of
comfort and relief, placed himself beside her; and, taking her plate, filled it
with portions from a number of dishes. The girl looked down at them with a
troubled expression. She was thinking of Choisy.
"Lady of the palace of the Queen," repeated Deborah, slowly, her large
eyes fixed upon the King's face.
"Yes, I have said it. Your appointment is here," he replied, tapping the
breast of his coat. "Now tell me what else there is in the world that you wish
for. Ah—there is something, I know. Estates—money—servants—what will
you have, my little one?"
Deborah shivered with cold. She realized the situation now, and the
nerves beneath her flesh were quivering. Pulling herself together with a
strong mental effort, she sat up, rigid and stiff, before her untouched food.
Her mind was quite clear, her path well defined.
"What is it that you want? I read desire in your eyes," repeated the King,
thinking to win his suit more easily than he had at first believed.
"No, no. There is nothing. I—thank your Majesty for your kindness.
There is nothing that I want. Indeed, indeed, there is nothing."
He was put out, and yet there was a little twinkle in her eyes that became
her wonderfully, and seemed, too, to give him hope. After an instant he felt
that anger was unnecessary, and thus recovered his ardent dignity as best he
could. "I beg of you—be serious. Since you will name for me nothing that
you wish, I will at least tell you in what you are lacking. When you hear
these things—desire will be born. Madame—read this."
From his coat Louis took a broad paper, folded and royally sealed.
Deborah, her face troubled and her hands shaking slightly, rose to receive it,
and, after a moment of hesitation, at a most impatient nod from the King,
broke the seals, and found the inside of the document covered with the neat,
legible writing of Maurepas. She glanced quickly over its lines:
"The right to confer titles of honor being one of the most sublime
attributes of supreme power, the Kings, our predecessors, have left us divers
monuments of the use they have made of it in favor of persons whose virtues
and merits they desired to extol and make illustrious. Considering that our
very dear and well-beloved cousin, Deborah Travis, wife of the Comte de
Mailly, issues from one of the greatest families of a nation closely allied to
us, whom we delight to honor; that she is attached as lady of the palace to
the Queen, our very dear companion; that she is united by marriage to one of
the most ancient and illustrious families in our realm, whose ancestors have,
for several centuries, rendered important services to our crown; and that she
joins to all these advantages those virtues and qualities of heart and mind
which have gained for her a just and universal consideration, we take the
highest satisfaction in proclaiming her succession to the title and estate of
that esteemed and honored lady, her cousin, Marie Anne de Mailly, and we
hereby invest her with the Duchy of Châteauroux, together with all its
appurtenances and dependencies, situated in Berry,"*
* This form is taken from the letters-patent used in the case of Marie Anne de
Mailly.
Deborah, having finished the perusal of this document, let it float from
her fingers to the floor, while she stood perfectly still, staring at the face of
the man seated before her. Her expression, first of amazement, then of
horror, was changing now to something puzzled and undecided, which the
King beheld with relief.
"Madame," he observed, "you should thank me. I make you first lady of
the Court. I give you title, wealth, power. I place a Queen below you in my
own esteem. I give you ministers to command, no one to obey. I make your
antechamber a room more frequented than my own cabinet. I leave it for
you, if you wish it, to rule France. And what is it that I ask in return?
Nothing! Nothing that your own generosity will not grant without the asking.
Think of what you are, and of what you will become. Have you, then, no
word in which to thank me?"
He also had risen now, and was looking at her, as she stood, with a
mixture of curiosity, admiration, and impatience.
Deborah was still—so still that she might have been taken for a man-
made thing. And by the expression of her face Louis knew that he must not
speak more now. She was fighting her battle; his forces must win or lose as
they stood, augmented no further. Before her had risen the picture of two
lives, the one that was opening to her and the one that she had thought to
live. As she thought, the real life, for a little, grew dim, distant, unimportant.
The other, with its scarce imaginable power, glory, position, became clearer
and still more clear till she could see into its inmost depths. Adulation,
pleasure, riches, ease, universal sway, a court at her feet, a King to bar
malice from her door, an existence of beauty, culture, laughter, light,
founded on—what? ending—how? Yes, these questions came, inevitably. To
answer the first, she looked slowly over the man before her, as he stood in all
the beauty of his young manhood and majesty. Nevertheless, through that
beauty his true nature was readable, showing plainly through his eyes, in the
expression of his heavy lower lip, in his too weak chin—that sullen, morose,
pettish, carnal, warped nature, best fitted for the peasant's hut, destined by
Fate, lover of grim comedy, for the greatest palace of earth. This man, who
had no place in her soul-life, must build her pedestal, must place her thereon.
And the end of all—when end should come—ah! Now Deborah saw again
the bed of Marie Anne de Châteauroux, with the Duchess upon it, as she had
lain there for the last time. And Marie Anne de Mailly had been Claude's
cousin—Claude's—
Then she turned upon him with that which for the moment she had let lie
dormant in her heart, now all awake and quivering with life—her love for
Claude. It was, perhaps, God, who was helping as she asked.
"I am saying that I refuse to listen any more to your insults. I am saying
that I am ashamed—utterly ashamed—that you should so have thought of
me that you dare offer them. I am not Duchess of Châteauroux!" She placed
her foot on the fallen paper, and stammered over the French words as she
spoke, for she was thinking in English now. "God save me from it! I am no
lady of the palace of the Queen—I am not of Versailles, nor of France. I owe
allegiance to no French King. I come from a country that is true and sweet
and pure, where they hate and despise your French ways, your unholy
customs, your laws, your manners, your dishonoring of honest things, your
treatment of women. I am honest. I hate myself for having lived among you
for months as I have done. I am going away, I will leave here, this place, to-
night. If my—my husband will not take me—I shall go back alone, by the
way I came, to my country, where the men, if they are awkward, are upright,
if the women have not etiquette, they are pure.—Let me go!—Let me go!"
"'I AM NOT THE DUCHESS OF CHATEAUROUX'"
Louis, in a sudden access of fury, had sprung forward and seized her by
the wrists. Deborah's temper was fully roused at last; her blood poured hotly
through her veins. Her life had become a little thing in comparison to the
laws for which she was speaking, the sense of right which seemed to hold no
part in this French order of things. Bracing herself as she might in her high-
heeled slippers, she suddenly threw all her weight forward against the man,
taking him off his guard, and so forcing him back that he was obliged to
loosen his hold of her in order to regain equilibrium. The instant that she was
free Deborah turned and fled to the door. She flung herself bodily against it.
It was locked from the outside.
Deborah looked into the uplifted face of the King. Certainly it was
marvellously handsome—beautiful enough to have turned the heads of many
women. Perhaps, after all, there was excuse for those poor creatures, the
three sisters, who had yielded to him. Perhaps, after all, pity was their only
just measure. But she—Deborah Travis—had known handsome faces before.
Indeed, she had come near to life-long unhappiness through that which she
had known best. Suddenly, as in a picture, she beheld there, beside the King,
the head of Charles Fairfield. Yes, Louis was the finer-featured of the two.
Nevertheless, all temptation was gone.
"Monsieur le Roi," she said, clearly, and with a kind of cynicism even
through her nervousness, "you are too late. I have been courted before, and
I've plighted my troth and given my heart into some one's keeping. You are
too late."
"Leaves to-night!" A dark flush spread over Deborah's face. "Leaves to-
night! Mon Dieu! When—where—how? Oh, I will go now! You shall let me
go to him, do you hear? At once! Why, I shall be left here alone! I—I—shall
be like Mme. de Coigny. Your Majesty—" suddenly she grew calm, and her
voice gently sweet—"Your Majesty, let me go."
"Open it, then, or—there is another!" she pointed across the room to the
door in the opposite wall which led into the royal suite.
The King moved about quickly, placing himself in front of it. The act
was sufficient. It showed Deborah that she had neither pity nor mercy to
hope for, nothing but her own determination on which to depend. And, as the
knowledge of helplessness became more certain, so did her will become
stronger, her brain more alert. She looked about the room. Was there a
weapon of defence or of attack anywhere within reach? On the supper-table
were knives and forks of gold—dull, useless things. On one side of the room
was a great clock; on the mantel stood another. There were also stiff chairs,
tabourets, an escritoire, and the table—these were all. What to do? She must
get home, get to Claude, as rapidly as possible. Would he be there? Would he
have trusted and waited for her? If not—what? She would not think of that
now. She must first escape through that unlocked door guarded by the King.
How to do it? Strategy, perhaps.
Deborah gave a slight, pretty smile. "I have only decided that I should
like to finish Mouthier's comfits. We have not even touched the cream," she
said, coquettishly.
"Louis," she said, suddenly, looking at him with a significant smile and
eyes half closed, "pick up for me the paper that I dropped upon the floor. I—
have not finished reading it."
The King was enchanted. She was surrendering at last. If she chose to
make it easier for her vanity by treating him like a servant—why, he was
willing. He rose at once and went back to the spot where Maurepas'
document had fallen and been spurned by Deborah's heel. He stooped to pick
it up. There was a crisp rustle of stiff, silk petticoats. He looked up just in
time to behold his prize fling open the north door and hurry through it into
the room beyond. This was the King's bedroom, and in it, at this hour, were
only Bachelier, Levet, and two under-footmen. These four, in open-mouthed
amazement, beheld the flying figure of a lady burst in from the Salle des
Pendules, run across the royal room, and escape into the council-chamber,
just as the King, purple with anger, shouted from the doorway: "Beasts!
Fools! Idiots! Could you not hold her?"
"No, imbecile! Should the King's valet be seen chasing a woman through
the corridors of Versailles at midnight? Ah! It is abominable!"
"Henri, two hundred thousand is too much for the estate. The château is
impossible—you are giving me money. I'll not have it—"
"Ah! She has not come—she does not come—she does not come! I shall
go mad. I shall shoot myself if she does not return! Mon Dieu!—Mon Dieu!"
"Claude, be calm. There is time. She could not yet have got away. Be
calm. She will come, of course."
Henri spoke soothingly, but, as the minutes passed, and still Deborah
delayed, his heart sank. What to do with his cousin? Claude would, in a little
time, be actually unbalanced, he feared.
Claude made a quick dash for the table, on which, amid a pile of varied
articles, were his duelling pistols. He picked one of them up. Henri sprang
from his place and seized his cousin round the shoulders.
"Idiot!—Put it down!—Stop!"
Claude was struggling to free himself from the grasp. The strength of a
madman seemed to be in his arms. Henri felt his hold weakening. He was
being repulsed.
"Mordi! you shall not!" growled Claude, furiously. "I tell you she is not
coming! I will kill myself! Let me—let me go!"
The weapon clattered to the floor. Claude held out both arms, and
Deborah, dazed, weary, utterly happy, went into them and was clasped close
to his heart.
"Claude—we must go away," she whispered, her lips close to his ear.
"Where—where—Claude?"
"I have no longer a country, my wife. But I know that which is there for
us over the sea—that wherein I found you first."
Deborah gave a little sob of relief; and, as her lips met those of her
husband, Henri de Mailly, who had kept him for her, sharply turned away.
EPILOGUE
THE END
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE HOUSE OF
DE MAILLY ***
Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will be
renamed.
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright law
means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the
Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States
without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying
and distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the
PROJECT GUTENBERG™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for an eBook,
except by following the terms of the trademark license, including paying
royalties for use of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge
anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is
very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project Gutenberg
eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may do
practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected by
U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
especially commercial redistribution.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a
constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check the
laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement before
downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or creating
derivative works based on this work or any other Project Gutenberg™
work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the copyright
status of any work in any country other than the United States.
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear prominently
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work on which the
phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied
or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived from
texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not contain a notice
indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the
work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without
paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a
work with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on
the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs
1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
Project Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other than
“Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version posted on
the official Project Gutenberg™ website (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at
no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of
exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work
in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format
must include the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph
1.E.1.
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing,
copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works unless you comply
with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to
or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided that:
• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the
use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the
owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to
donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days
following each date on which you prepare (or are legally required to
prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly
marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, “Information about
donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does
not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ License. You
must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works
possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all
access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works.
• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution
of Project Gutenberg™ works.
1.F.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in
paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING
BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR
FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works,
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, that
arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do or cause
to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b)
alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any Project
Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
The Foundation’s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to date
contact information can be found at the Foundation’s website and official
page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have
not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against
accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us
with offers to donate.
Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation methods
and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including
checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit:
www.gutenberg.org/donate.
Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed editions,
all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in the U.S. unless a
copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in
compliance with any particular paper edition.
Most people start at our website which has the main PG search facility:
www.gutenberg.org.